3F IS CORNELL UNIVERSITY LIBRARY BOUGHT WITH THE INCOME OF THE SAGE ENDOWMENT FUND GIVEN IN 1891 BY HENRY WILLIAMS SAGE Cornell University Library BF575.L3 S95 Essay on laughter. Its forms. Its causes 3 1924 028 924 888 olin DATE DUE £- ^\L5^-^^96frM r- GAYLORD Tl^ PRINTED IN U.S.A. The original of this book is in the Cornell University Library. There are no known copyright restrictions the United States on the use of the in text. http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924028924888 -7 2^^^ e c ^ ^ U AN ESSAY ON LAUGHTER BY TEE SAME AUTHOR. THE HUMAN MIND a. : Text-book of Psychology. 2 8vo, 21*. vols. OUTLINES OF PSYCHOLOGY. Crown 8vo, 9s. THE TEACHER'S HANDBOOK OF PSYCHOLOGY. Crown 8vo, 6s. 6rf. STUDIES OF CHILDHOOD. CHILDREN'S WAYS Childhood". top, 4s. : 8vo, 10s. 6d. being Selections from "Studies of With 25 Illustrations. Crown 6cJ. LONGMANS, GBEEN, AND LONDON, NEW CO., YORK, AND BOMBAY. 8to, gilt AN ESSAY ON LAUGHTER ITS FORMS, ITS CAUSES, ITS AND ITS DEVELOPMENT VALUE JAMES SULLY, M.A., LL.D. AUTHOR OP "THE HUMAN MIND," "STUDIES OP CHILDHOOD," LONGMANS, GREEN, AND 39 PATERNOSTER ROW, LONDON NEW YORK AND BOMBAY 1902 ETC. CO. ^fi. ^Ai; (?3 13 /= 76' L3 S96- TO MY CHILDREN AND MY PUPILS IN THAT IF THE HOPE THEY CULTIVATE BOTH BEAIN AND HEART, AND HAVE A QUICK EAB FOB THE MUFFLED MOANINQS ALONG THE BOAD, THEY MAY HEAR ALSO, ABOVE THE DEEPEB MUSIC, THE BLITHE NOTES OF LAUQHTEB. PEEFACE. The work is, I believe, the first attempt to on a considerable scale the whole subject of Laughter, under its various aspects, and in its present treat connections with our serious activities and interests. As such, it will, I feel sure, lay itself to the criticism that it open lacks completeness, or at least, proportion. A further feel equally sure, it will criticism to which, I expose itself, is that it clearly reflects the peculiarities of the experience The of the writer. anticipation of this objection does not, however, disturb me. to It seems to be not only inevitable, but desirable —at me least knowledge of the subject that one who attempts to understand an impulse, of which the intensities and the forms appear to vary greatly among men, of which the workings are often subtle, and of which the sigat the present stage of our — nificance making is full by no means obvious, should, while use of others' impressions, draw largely on his own experience. Portions of the volume have already appeared in Keviews. Chapter I. was published (under the PREFACE viii a Theory of Laughter ") in The Philosophical Review, 1900 Chapter V., in the Reme Philosophique, 1902 and Chapter VIII., in title " Prolegomena to ; ; The parts of The International Monthly, 1901. the psychoof treat which Chapters III. and VI. logy of tickling appeared in the Compte rendu of the Fourth International Congress of Psychology (/F™' Congrhs International de Psychologie), Paris, 1901. Some of the ideas in Chapter X. are out- an article on " The Uses of Humour," which appeared in The National Review, 1897. Some of my obligations to other writers and workers have been acknowledged in the volume. For friendly assistance in reading the proofs of the work I am greatly indebted to Mr. Carveth Eead, Dr. Alexander Hill, Prof. W. P. Ker, Mr. Ling Eoth, Dr. W. H. K. Rivers, Miss C. Osborn, and Miss Alice Woods. lined in H6TEL DU Weisshokn, Val d'Anniviers, August, 1902. CONTENTS. CHAPTER I. Intboduotoey. PAOK Objections to a serious study of laughter 1 .... Previous treatment of subject by philosophers Their way of dealing with facts Examination Common ' an illustration given 6 by Dr. Lipps 9 defects of theories Difficulties of Scope of i . 17 attempt to treat subject scientifically 19 20 of inquiry CHAPTER II. The Smile and the Lauqb. Need of studying the bodily process in laughter Characteristics of the movements 25 , 26 of the smile Expressive function of the smile Continuity of processes of smiling and laughing Characteristics of the movements of laughter Concomitant organic changes during laughter 27 . 27 . 30 33 .... .... Physiological benefits of laughing 31 EfEects of excessive laughter 37 The laugh as expression Relation of expression to feeling in laughter Interactions of joyous feeling and organic concomitants Deviations from the normal type of laugh . CHAPTER 39 40 44 48 III. Occasions and Causes of Lauqhteb. Laughter as provoked by sense-stimulus : tickling Ticklish areas Characteristics of the sensations of tickling Motor reewjtions provoked by tickling . . 50 52 53 56 CONTENTS How far attributes The mental of sensation determine laughter of tickling factor in effect of tickling Objective conditions of successful tickling Tickling as appealing to a particular 2. mood . 60 . 62 Other quasi-reflex forms of laughter Varieties of automatic or " nervous " laughter Common element in these varieties relief from strain : 3. 67 73 Prolonged laughing fit The essential element in joyous laughter Occasions of joyous laughter (a) Play (6) Teasing as provocative situation (c) Practical joking and laughter . ... . 75 76 76 . 77 78 . (e) 64 65 70 Varieties of joyous laughter {d) FAOE 57 59 Laughter as an accompaniment of contest Occasions of unusual solemnity as provoking laughter Physiological basis of laughing habit CHAPTER 78 79 80 IV. Vaeieiies of the Laughable. The objective reference in laughter 82 Universal element in the laughable 83 Groups 87 87 88 (1) (2) (3) (4) (5) (6) (7) i(j^8) (9) (10) of laughable things Novelty and oddity Bodily deformities Moral deformities and vices Breaches of order and rule Small misfortunes Beferences to the indecent Pretences Want of knowledge or 91 94 96 98 skill Relations of contrariety and incongruity Verbal play and witticism Co-operation of different laughable features (11) Manifestations of playfulness in objects (12) Spectacle of successful combat CHAPTER .... .... .... 101 102 107 Ill 114 116 117 V. Theories of the Ludicbous. 1. The Theory Degradation Aristotle's theory Theory of of Hobbes Hg 120 120 CONTENTS Xli PAGE 121 122 Prof. Bain's theory Critioism of theory of degradation 2. Theory of Contrariety or Incongruity Kant's theory of nullified expectation 125 Critioism of Kant's theory 126 .... 12e Function of surprise in efiect of the ludicrous Schopenhauer's theory of incongruity Criticism of Schopenhauer's theory Difierent forms of the incongruous Summary of criticism of theories 129 130 132 .... 134 ,'13^ Attempts to unify the two principles as failure to comply with a social requirement 136 a39:; . The laughable How primitive laughter comes into efiect of the ludicrous 140 . rTIi) Belation of sudden gladness to release from constraint Element of contempt in effect of the ludicrous Laughter and the play-mood The play-mood in the efiects of the ludicrous Summary 142 . 145 149 153 of results of inquiry into theories CHAPTER VI. The Obighn op Laughter. Problem of the origin of laughter in the race Supposed rudiments of mirth in animals 155 The dog's manifestations of a sense The mirthful displays of the ape 159 of fun 156 162 First appearance of laughter in child Date .... .... : date of the first 164 smile 166 of the first laugh The laugh Order of the two in the evolution Conjecture as to genesis of the How the primitive Problem 168 as following the smile smile may of 170 the race human 171 smile have grown into the laugh of the evolution of the laughter of tickling 173 176 . . 177 Effects of tickling in animals Date 177 of first response to tickling in the child .... Tickling as inheritance from remote ancestors Value of evolutional theories of tickling How laughter may have come into tickling CHAPTER 178 . 181 183 VII. Development of Laughteb dubing the Pibst Thbeb Years of Life. Problem of the early development of laughter in the individual Development of smile and laugh as movements . 186- 188 CONTENTS ~ xii process of emotional development Relation of laughter of joy to that of play The general Development of laughter of joy Emergence of laughter of surprise First laughter of release from strain 'Crude form of laughter of jubilation Development of laughter as accompaniment . . . • l"" 19'^ of play .... of The mirthful greeting of sounds Early responses to the funny in the visible world First enjoyment of pretences Early laughter at the improper Dim perceptions of the incongruous and the absurd Early sense Summary ' of verbal 198 198 201 laughing impishness First manifestations of rowdyish laughter <Jerms of roguish laughter First crude perceptions of the laughable Early forms FAQE 189 194 '^^ 203 205 207 .... .... 209 212 214 215 216 217 fun 218 of results CHAPTER VIII. The Lauobteb of Savages. Sources of our knowledge of savage laughter Diflerent views of travellers on the subject Laughter as a salient characteristic Descriptions of their Abundance •ft _ of good movements of savages of laughter 220 220 223 227 228 spirits Laughter as accompaniment of shyness Laughter and fondness for teasing 228 Rough practical jokes The way in which laughter 230 232 Laughter of superiority is 229 accepted and contempt 233 Indecent character of jocosity Appreciation of the laughably odd 234 Ridicule of foreign ways 237 Laughter at the doings of the white man Laughter of the expert at the ignoramus Savage society and the white man's gaziclierie Germ of sense of the absurd 238 The 244 285 ridiculing of fellow-tribesmen Reciprocal laughter of the men and the women dry humour Organisation of laughter as entertainment Example of 240 241 242 245 246 247 CONTENTS Germs of Zlll the mimetic art Difierentiation of professional jesters, etc. 247 249 Amusing songs and 260 stories . . . Co-existence of different levels of laughter 251 How 252 to manage the savage by laughter CHAPTER Laughtbb IX. in Social Evolution. Connection between laughter and social life Contagiousness of mirth as social quality 255 Social uses of laughter 256 254 Class-difierentiation as condition of laughter How social grouping widens the field of 258 the laughable Utility of reciprocal group-laughter r Screwing up members of other groups Tjaughter of superiors at inferiors . . . .;.... 261 26S Quizzing of authorities by subjects Mirthful turning on task-masters Woman's laughing 259- 261 ^ 264 265 retort 267 Corrective function of laughter of inferiors 268 K- Conciliatory service of group-laughter 269 271 Summary Laughter Social of social utilities of laughter of other groups as corrective of self-importance movements . . . as influencing laughter Changes of fashion Fashion and custom Merry aspects of movements 273 275 of fashion 276 Droll side of descent of fashion to lower ranks Laughter at the old-fashioned The movement 272 272 27T 279 279 of progress Mirthful greeting of new ideas and practices v.Laughing away effete customs 280 281 Influence of mirthful spirit on social changes 288 Effect of evolution of culture groups 283 286 Efiect of minuter subdivision of sets Eflect of progress in breaking dovm group-barriers .... Droll aspects of transition of society to a plutocratic form . . 286 287 Beiining effect of culture-movement on hilarity 288 Decline of older voluminous merriment 290' between popular mirth and authority Combination of standards in popular estimate 291 Conflict Preparation for individual laughter of laughable . . 293 295 CONTENTS CHAPTER X. Laughtbb of the Individual HuMona. : PAGE 297 humour -Characteristics of humour Definition of Intellectual basis of Humorous contemplation The 298 humorous sentiment 300 . 301 as binocular the laughable for the humorist Modification of the conative attitude in humour 302 field of Complexity Problem of humour as feeling .... 301 305 of fusion of dissimilar feelings 307 Facts explained by our analysis of humour Variations of humour with race and nationality 310 Temperament and 313 Humour individuality in as enlarging range of laughing activity The' finer detection of the The 311 humour amusing in character appreciation of unfitness of men 315 315 . .... to circumstances 317 Character-study as a pastime Laughter as permeating sphere of serious Effect of kindliness in extending range of laughter Scope for amusing form of self-scrutiny 818 319 . Laughter as mode How humour 320 321 322 325 326 328 of self-correction aids a man in dealing with others Laughing away the smaller troubles . humour in the greater troubles Humorous contemplation of social scene Service of . 330 Amusing aspects of the fine world The journal as medium of amusing self-display The social spectacle of the past and of the present 331 334 . 337 Humour in contemplation of social scene in seasons of stress The manifestations of war-temper as humorous spectacle . CHAPTER Thb Laughable • in 337 338 XI. Art : Comedy. Source of impulse of comic art Scope for laughter in art as a whole 343 •Origin of jocose literature 346 The dawn of comedy Comic incidents as development of child's play Comic value of repetitions Elements of trickery and dupery Comedy as reflecting movements of social laughter 345 346 347 348 .... 349 351 CONTENTS XV PACJS Oomio dialogue as display o£ wit 353 Theories of wit 354 Wit as intellect at play Wit and word-play 354 356 Oharaoter as oomio material Mode 357 comedy .... of representation of oharaoter in 358 Comic oharaoter as type Development of character-drawing in classic comedy Treatment of character in early English comedy MoliSre as comic portrayer 359 359 861 His art 364 of constructing character .... 364 Contrast of the anti-social person and the social world The abstract and the concrete in Molifere's characters 365 The comic denouement 368 in MoliAre's plays . Moli^re's point of view Characteristics of Comedy Lamb and Macaulay Justification of of Restoration on moral aspect Lamb's view of 365 368 370 371 373 . comedy Comedy of Restoration The social as distinct from the moral point of view Slackening of social restraints by comedy Limitations of field of comic presentation The comic point of view in fiction 373 Laughter 380 376 . 377 378 . of mixed tone in literature satire : .... Different degrees of seriousness in satire 381 Method of virulent Wit in satire 382 satire 383 Contrast of satirical and humorous literature The relation of wit to Boundaries Humour of satire Humour and humorous 385 literature as ingredient of prose fiction The boundaries of 384 humour humour of fiction . .... and in other species of literature CHAPTER of philosophy 386 387 390 390 XII. Ultimate Value and Limitations of LAuaHTBR. Need of bringing in philosophic point of view Philosophy as completion Room 392 Ji^ of individual criticism of life 393 393^ for laughter in philosophic contemplation Philosophy as belittling our everyday world Reasons why philosophers are not commonly humorists Speculative Idealism as robbing our common world of interest Relation of Optimism and of Pessimism to laughter 394 Possibilities of laughter in philosophic Scepticism 399 . 39^ 396 397 CONTENTS xvi Conditions of development of philosophic Humour in the final evaluation of Service of philosophic humour . . . • life 403 humour •^ Justification of the individual point of vievf Legitimacy of an amused contemplation of one's world Amused contemplation as favouring the survival of the unfit . The philosopher's preference . . . . for retirement Point of view of contemplation of things by philosophic humorist The contemplator Points of view of by his social world humorist, comedian and satirist as held PAGE 401 402 . .... Question of total value of laughter 405 405 408 408 409 409 410 411 Alleged purifying function of comedy 411 Corrective function of social laughter to-day 413 414 Bidicule as a test of truth Estimate of helpfulness of private laughter Place of laughter among human qualities Eelation of laughter to social affections Restraint of laughter by society Control of laughter as part of moral self-regulation Prudential reasons for controlling laughter The promotion of a love of laughter in others The claims of the agelast to be let alone —ISlae cultivation of laughter in the young The status of laughter to-day T Causes 415- 416 417 .... 418 420 422 423 ,-424 426 427 mirth Characteristics of laughter of the hour ci p, Possibility of death of laughter 428 430 How its 432 of decline of pop^llar conservation may be effected 431 CHAPTER I. INTRODUOTOBY. A WHITER who undertakes to discourse on laughter has to encounter more than one variety of irritating objection. He dismay that a considerable part of his species, which has been flatteringly described as the laughing animal, finds to his has never exercised its high and distinguishing capacity. Nay, more, he soon learns that a good many oppose themselves to the practice and are laughter-haters. This kind of person (o fitaoyekms;) is so possessed with the spirit of seriousness that the opposite temper of jocosity appears to him to be something shockingly wrong. All audible laughter is for him an ill-bred display, at once unsightly as a bodily contortion, and, as a lapse of mental degradation. thing unseemly is from the gravity of reason, a kind This estimate of laughter as some- well represented in Lord Chesterfield's which the writer congratulates himself on the that since he has had the full use of his reason nobody Letters, in fact has ever heard him laugh. In some cases this feeling of repugnance towards mirth and fun takes on more of an ethical aspect. all The laugher is identified with the things worthy and condemned as morally bad illustrated in the saying of Pascal : " scofier at —a view Diseur de bons mots, mauvais caract^re ". Now it seems is bound evident that one who discourses on laughter to notice this attitude of the laughter-hater. 1 If INTRODUCTORY 2 he believes that the moods of hilarity and the enjoyment human of the ludicrous have their rightful place in ex- perience, he must be ready to challenge the monopoly of wisdom claimed by the out-and-out sticklers for seriousness, and to dispute the proposition that the open, honest laugh connotes either a vulgar taste or a depraved moral nature. Perhaps, however, our discourser need not distress him- about these rather sour-tempered laughter-haters. self these days we have we have In opposition as the refrainer from laughter, the non- As laugher pure and simple. his suggests, this rather (dye'kaa-TO'i) unknown much Instead of the denouncer of mirth as vulgar indifference. or wicked, to confront not so Greek name "agelast" annoying type was not In merry England, too, Shake- in ancient times. speare had met with the agelasts who would Not show their teeth in way of smile, Though Nestor swear the jest be laughable. , Yet in latter only of is it its full force. late that the variety has appeared To what scanty proportions days the band of laughers has dwindled name which gested by the for " humorist " "eccentric". is now commonly if is sug- given them, meant not so long ago an odd fellow or Indeed, one of our living writers suggests that " as the world becomes more decorous tongue-tied and obsolete "} Even in these we grant humour becomes that the " gelasts " are getting reduced to the dimensions of a petty sect, the consideration need not deter us from choosing laughter as our theme. Those who have the perfect ear for music are probably but a tiny portion of the 'Article 318-26. on human "Humour" family; yet nobody has suggested in the CornMll Magazine, vol. xxxUi., pp. FOES AND FRIENDS OF LAUGHTER that this 3 an argument against the writing of books on is musical form, the science of thorough baas and the rest. The friends of laughter have, however, always existed, and even in these rather dreary days are perhaps more numerous than is often supposed. In support of this idea one may recall the curious fact that, as the essayist just " " quoted remarks, we all shrink from the awful imputation implied in the words "You have no sense of humour". This recognition of the capacity for appreciating a joke as a human attribute course, very far which it is well not to be without Yet existence of this love in a respectable this urge his it at least attests the number of their fellows. true friend of laughter (o ^tXoyeXo)?) own of from being proof of a genuine love of fun in the recognisers themselves. Now is, objection to may our proposed discussion, an objection less irritating perhaps than that of the zealous laughter-hater and of the indifferent agelast, but on the He other hand of a more penetrating thrust. not unnatur- ally dislikes the idea of his daily pastime being made the He feels in its acutest form the natural man on seeing his enjoyment subject of grave inquiry. resentment of the brought under the scalpel and lens of the He scientific inquirer. humour are the human things and that to try urges with force that the chucklings of very lightest and flimsiest of to capture looks them and much hand would subject ; them to serious investigation like the procedure of the chUd whose impulsive and examine his dainty soap bubbles. To these objections from the true friends of the mirthful god one owes it to reply courteously and at length. Yet seize A the answer cannot well be given at the outset. on laughter can remove by showing thought in its may own this kind of objection, if discourse at all, only treatment of the subject that serious touch even the gossamer wing of the merry * INTRODUCTORY 4 and not destroy sprite ; that all things, are things to be comprehended, right points of view; and so the only if we lightest, can reach the and that the problems which rise above the mental horizon, as soon as we about man's humorous bent, have a quite peculiar interest, an interest in which all who can both laugh at things and begin to think ponder on them It may be expected to share. seems evident that one in man, and to extract It fications. is its who is to probe the spirit of fun meaning, should have special quali- by no means sufficient, as some would seem He must to suppose, that he should be able to think clearly. couple with the gravity of the thinker something of the intellectual lightness to say, mood he must be in itself, hensively Now and nimbleness of the warm realising his subject at once vividly by help and compre- who have teach us the secrets of laughter have ofiiered to commonly exhibited these qualifications in a conspicuous measure. of It is the whimsicality which seems to run through affairs that is of a rich personal experience. cannot be said that those it That jester. touch with his theme, the jocose a part human the spirit of fun should be misunderstood not merely by the avowedly indifferent and the avowedly but by those who, since they offer to elucidate its hostile, ways, might be expected to have some personal acquaintance with it. The combination of a fine feeling for the baffling behaviour of this spirit with a keen as is scientific analysis, such found in Mr. George Meredith's Essay on Comedy, seems to be a rarity in literature. This want of the familiar touch is especially observable good deal of the treatment of laughter by philosophic writers. It is not necessary to dweU on the sublime subtlein a ties of the "moment" metaphysicians who in the dialectic process conceive of the comic as a which the aesthetic "Idea" SOARING ABOVE THE SUBJECT has to pass through. The account the Idea has to describe, of 5 of the gyrations when once it passes out of which that state harmonious union with the sensuous image which we call " Having, for the beautiful," reads strangely enough. reasons that are not made away from too clear, torn itself peaceful companion (the image), and set itself its up as antagonist to this in "the sublime," the august Idea encounters the unpleasant retaliation of the image discarded in "the ugly," where we of the injured party to defy its late the end, revives from it the " companion swoon " into behaviour of the image has plunged legitimate claims —with which —in what we outset dissatisfied I it has it see the determination it, which this rude and recovers would seem call " though, in ; it was the ludicrous its at the ". have here tried to put the speculative subtleties of these Hegelian writers, so far as I into intelligible favourable am able to catch their drift, Enghsh, and not to caricature them. critics of these theories have found not to treat them with some amount of irony as I am ; it Even difiicult and, so far aware, no rehabilitator of Hegehan thought in England has as yet been bold enough to introduce to our insular they mind may a chapter of the sacred mysteries which, as well suspect, so easily lends itself to profane jesting. How remote this kind of conception of the ludicrous is from the homely laughter of mortals may be seen in such attempts as are made by these Hegelian thinkers to connect Hegel himself, in touching on the nature of comedy, asserted that "only that is truly comic in which the persons of the play are comic for themselves as weU as the two. This seems to mean (it is always for the spectators". hazardous to say confidently what a Hegelian pronouncement does mean) that a large part of what the world has INTRODUCTORY 6 foolishly supposed to be Molifere, are It not so.^ much perhaps, too is, comedy, including the plays of to expect that the aspiring metaphysician, when, as he fondly thinks, he has gained the altitude from which the dialectic process of the Worldidea seen to unfold is itself, should trouble himself about But laughter so vulgar a thing as our everyday laughter. has mild retaliations for the negligent, and the comedian its of to-day, as of old, is more likely to pluck from those who tread the speculative cloud-heights material for his merri- ment than any further enlightenment on the mysteries of his craft. It however, more to the purpose to refer to those is, theorists ordinary who make some show man understands by the by an appeal their theories of explaining ludicrous, to recognisable examples. instructive to note the cautiousness with is will what the and of testing sometimes venture on the slippery " It which they empirical " ground. Schopenhauer, for example, in setting out his theory of —a theory which first volume the ludicrous on— ^in " the superfluous " of we his shall deal chief to illustrate his theory with later work, thought by example. second volume, however, he comes to the help of " intellectual sluggishness " of his readers And what to furnish illustrations. is the first to be selected ? it In the the and condescends does the reader suppose The amusing look of the angle formed by the meeting of the tangent and the curve of the circle ; which look is due, he tells us, to the reflection that an angle implies the meeting of two lines which, when prolonged, intersect, whereas the straight line of the tangent ' See B. BoBauquet, History of Esthetics, p. 360, where we are told that modem ooraedy, such as Moli^re's L'Avare, is, according to Hegel, serious wanting in this characteristic. MIS-HANDLING OF FACTS and the curve of the circle are able merely to graze at one point, where, strictly speaking, words, the we laugh face is 7 they are In other parallel. here because the angle which stares us in with the idea of a meeting irreconcilable and a curved With a charming candour The ludicrous in this case is, no doubt, extremely weak; on the other hand, it illustrates of a tangent the writer proceeds : line. " with exceptional clearness the origin of the ludicrous in the incongruity between what ceived is thought and what is per- ".1 The significance of this invention of his own illustration by Schopenhauer is that he was not a metaphysical recluse, but knew the world and its literatures. Other theorists have not shown the same daring, but have contented themselves with finding their instances. Yet in too many cases the arbitrary way in which illustrations have been selected, while instances making against the theory have been ignored, shows clearly enough that there has been no serious effort and firm This to build on a large may basis of observation. be illustrated not only from the works of Germans, but from those of a people which has claimed, and with justice, to be the laughing nation par excellence. In a recent volume, marked by great ingenuity, M. Henri Bergson,^ an accomplished thinker, attempts to reduce aU forms of the ludicrous to a substitution in our movements, speech and action, of the rigidity (raideur) of a and variability of an organism. machine for the pliancy The writer has no difficulty in finding examples of the stiff mechanical effects which amuse us, say, in gestures ing thing group of is and carriage. facts, astonish- the instances of excessive spontaneity and ^ Die Welt ah Wille und Vorstellung, Band 2 Le Bi/re, But the that he never refers to the complementary published by F^lix Aloan, 1900. II,, Brstes Buch, Kap. viii. 8 • INTRODUCTORY repression and The exuberant freedom of movement where a certain mechanical uniformity are looked childish boundings of the clown, for. an excess of emphasis or gesture in social intercourse, these and the like are surelyof the signs of a full play of want just as comical as the may be in other circumstances. Perhaps an even worse offence than ignoring facts is trying to twist them into a shape that will fit an adopted life This occurs, theory. on our too, Here subject. is theorists. when we laugh at a clown an open door, we do not laugh merely According to a French pushing hard against and frequently, among writers an example among recent essayist, at the absurd disproportion between the task to be accom- amount of efibrt put into it. We only laugh when our minds pass to a second cmd reflective stage, and recognise that the man does not perceive the door to plished and the be open, when, consequently, we are able to view the dis- proportionate and quite needless exertion as natural.^ A more movement of common men's laughter it would be difficult to find. As we shall see, theories of laughter, like theories striking instance of inability to understand the swift of Shakespeare's genius, have frequently come to grief by projecting behind the thing which they seek to account for too much of the author's Perhaps wont we own habitual reflectiveness.^ shall the better see to ignore and how theorists have been to misunderstand the laughing ex- periences of the plain man if we examine at some length 1 See an article " Pourquoi rit-on ? " by Camille M^linaud, in the Bemie des deux Mondes, 1895 (Tom. 127, p. 612 fi.). The theory of M. M^linaud seema to resemble closely that of Jean Paul Kiohter and others, which Lotze criticises, Geschichte ^M. Bergaon furnishes der ^sthetik, p. 346. some striking illustrations of the forcing of a theory on reluctant facta in his treatment of the laughable aspect of the red nose and the black akin, op, cit., p. 41 fE. PHILOSOPHER AND PLAIN MAN mode the who of dealing with the subject adopted among contemporary holds a high place 9 by a writer psychologists. Prof. Lipps has recently elaborated a theory of the ludi- some crous, illustrating it at may This theory length.^ be described as a modification of Kant's, which places the cause of laughter in " the sudden transformation of a tense expectation into nothing". the " comic '' when " According to Lipps, little " the measures itself thing else and so steps into the daylight. we have with some- There is a mental movement (Vorstellungsbewegung) from a presentation relatively great or important to one relatively unimportant ; little the nullification of the latter through its contrariety to the former and the disappointment which this involves. may What —which the reader the important one — always comes be called the belittling idea bear in mind or and the impression of the comic depends on is must first, the beUttled or nullified one, always second. In order to illustrate his point he takes among other examples that of a hat on the wrong head. by a child's small cap, and a A man topped child covered with a man's big equally comical. But the reason is two cases. In the first, starting with the perception of the worthy man, we expect an adequate headcovering, and this expectation is nullified by the obstinate presence of the tiny cap. Here, then, the funny feature, the hat are, he tells us, different in the In the second case, just the reverse. We belittled thing, is the diminutive cap. however, the movement of thought is here set out with the perception of the headgear, not with that of its wearer. It is the dignified man's hat that now The lefereuces here are to one of a series of articles entitled " Psychologie Komik " in the PMl. Monatshefte, Bd. XXIV. See p. 399 fi. The The point articles have been elaborated in a volume, Komik tmd Humor. here dealt with is touched on in this volume in Kap. iv., s. 558. ' der INTRODUCTORY 10 the obtrusion of the child beneath when we expect the proper wearer which is the comical feature. In other words, when a man puts on a baby's cap it is the cap which is absurd, when a baby dons first fixes our attention, and his father's cylinder This the baby which it is ingenious, one is it is must confess, is absurd. but does it not involve some twisting of facts ? Would the unphilosophic humorist recognise this account of ^he ways of laughter ? Has this account the note of familiarity with these ways ? Let us see. At the outset one may enter a modest protest against the quiet assumption that the two incidents here may selected are be urged that, to the laughable in an equal degree. It grown-up spectator the sight of the at least, crowned with the whelming headgear of measurably more amusing than the little one his sire is im- Here the author other. strikes one as proceeding rather hastily, as he seems to do also when he assumes that an exceptionally big and an exceptionally little the laughable. nose are equally palpable examples of This is, to say the least, disputable. One can hardly think of a comedy turning on the smallness of a person's nose, as the Cyrano de Bergerac of turns on its bigness. But this objection M. Rostand need not, perhaps, be pressed. Passing, then, to the explanation of his offered by the author, we are first two examples of all struck by the apparent arbitrariness of the supposition, that the move- ment of thought which he assumes should in the one case take exactly the reverse direction of that taken in the Seeing that both are instances of a grotesquely other. unsuitable head-covering should one not expect the enjoy- ment them of activity ? to spring out of a similar kind of mental THE COMIC IN THE HAT 11 The author probably means to say that we tend to fix the attention on the more dignified feature in each case, the man beneath the tiny cap, and the man's hat above the tiny head. But that is far from being certain. And in any case there are good reasons against assuming a " contrary motion" of thought here. Dr. Lipps will no doubt allow, a trained psychologist, that these intellectual as movements are subject duction from these is One to well-recognised laws. de- that the sight of a hat will suggest human figure to which it belongs much more and more powerfully than the sight of the figure the idea of the certainly I believe will suggest the idea of its appropriate covering. that everybody's experience will confirm this. A hat seen even in a shop-window starts the impulse to think of some wearer ; but across the theatre, who would say that seeing a dinner-table or in an prompts us to think of its human adjoining head, say stall proper covering ? at the Special circumstances, such as the presence of an exceptional baldness appealing to pity, must be added before our thoughts flit to the out-of-door receptacle. interest and In other words, the whole significance of a hat lie in a reference to a wearer, but not vice versa. We must, then, reject the idea of a double and opposed movement of thought here. If any movement takes place it must be assumed to be in each case a transition from the perception of the hat to the idea of its customary and proper wearer. Now, are we aware when we laugh sights of carrying out this at either of these movement of thought ? odd Keeping to the indisputable case of the child's head under or in the man's hat, do we, before the agreeable spasm seizes us, first mentally grasp the hat and then pass to the idea of its rightful wearer ? I, at least, cannot find this to be true in INTRODUCTORY ' 12 may be due to the absence of a sufficiently delicate introspection. Let us then my own But such experience. inability try to test the point in another way. amusement with which we greet this the dissolution of the idea of the from spectacle comes expect the enjoyment of the should adult male figure, we If the smile of ludicrous aspect to be especially conspicuous when the hat appears an instant before the child- wearer, and so thought is compelled to travel in the required direction. Let us suppose that a child in his nursery puts on his father's hat and stands on a and that you enter the room and chair, catch a glimpse of the hat first, say above a piece of furni- and for a brief moment expect to see an adult beneath. No doubt you will be aware of a definite movement of thought in the required direction and of the dissolution into nothing of the expectant idea. But will the element of clear anticipation and its annihilation intensify your ture, feeling of the funniness of the spectacle, or even funniness more patent You ? case, experience a little shock, the full prise, and that might add volume You the moment. heartily, for in, as excitement of sur- to the whole feeling of might, too, not improbably, laugh more you would have a sense of having been taken and there would be a side-current against yourself. make the would, no doubt, in such a But of hilarity directed I venture to affirm that the spectacle such would not impress you as being one whit more ludicrous when wearer, than if What seems seen in this way, first the hat and then the your eye had lighted on the two together. to happen when we are amused by comic scene in the nursery a grotesque whole, viz., ? Do we this little not at a glance perceive a hat on the wrong head, and is not our amusement too swiftly forthcoming to allow of our singling out a part of what is seen and going through the A HAT-COMEDY EXAMINED process of thought described theory ? by the ingenious author of this what common observa- Science seems to bear out tion discovers, for the first 13 moment newer psychology teaches that in the an object we obtain not a distinct of perceiving apprehension of parts, but a vague apprehension of a whole into which detail and definiteness only come later and gradually. An up ensemble, which can only be described as a whole made of ill-fitting parts, this seems to be the object on our attention is focussed when we laugh some rapid at the child under This intuition involves, no the needlessly capacious hat. doubt, which seizing of details: but the attention to parts is not to separate objects, as the language of Dr. Lipps suggests, but to related parts, to the hat as worn in relation to the wearer. This seems to be an adequate account of what takes place so far as moves us it is the palpable unfitness of dimensions which But to laughter. it may be urged, and rightly more than this, that what tickles us is the uncustomary and topsy-turvy arrangement of things. And here, it may be said, there certainly is implied a movement of thought, namely, to something outside the spectacle, to what is customary and in order. urged, that the laughable spectacle is The supposition is a highly plausible one. Since, morewhat we perceive is a whole, it is reasonable to assume that if such a movement occurs it must be, not, as Dr. Lipps over, supposes, from one part of it as rightly composed. from the present some other whole to another, but whole as oddly and wrongly composed Do we not, it to may be asked, here carry out a process fairly well described in Schopenhauer's theory of the ludicrous, that is, conceive of gruity between the real object and implication, go back to this idea ? its idea," "an inconand so, by INTRODUCTORY 14 To would reply this I that, so far as I can analyse my own mental state at such a moment, I do not find the presence of any idea of another and normal whole to be a necessary element in a full enjoyment of the grotesque my Such a second whole would, one same hat on the right head, or the same head under its proper covering, and I find that I am perfectly well able to enjoy the comedy of the child crowned with the tall hat without making present to my whole before eyes. supposes, have to be either the mind either of these combinations. Here, again, I think, a better scientific theory bears out Psychology the result of one's individual self-examination. has made it clear that in recognising crossing the road on which to have present to our we mind an object, are walking, say a weasel we do not need (in addition to the perception of the object) a pictorial idea or image of a weasel formed from past observations. Owing of a certain perceptual disposition —a readiness to see an object as a familiar one, as of a particular "sort" instantly greets it as a weasel. as to the organising In other words, —our mind we recognise by the help not of images present to the mind at the moment, but of certain ingrained " apperceptive " tendencies things or attitudes. All the higher animals seem to share with us this highly useful capability of immediate and instantaneous recognition. Now I take it that there is another side to these apper- ceptive tendencies. Not only do they secure for us, without up distinct ideas, these instant the necessity of calling recognitions of a sort of thing, they enable us as weU intelligent animals mentally to reject presentations do not answer to wax " the sort of figure is not a of the living thing ". I can say that this man without having any man present to as which distinct my consciousness. image This ability FURTHER INSPECTION OF HAT-COMEDY what we to recognise thing, without calling see as not of a particular up a 15 kind of definite idea of this kind, extends combinations and arrangements of parts in a whole. to When, after my servant has dusted my books and rearranged them on the shelves, I instantly recognise that they are wrongly placed, may I at the moment be quite unable to say what the right arrangement was.^ According to my which Dr. Lipps As such, they that view, the perceptions of the laughable ^ illustrates are instantaneous perceptions. may, and commonly do, arise immediately, without any reversion to the idea of what is, is the customary or normal arrangement. But the reader may urge with of charming this than a perception of the unusual and we enjoyment force that the the irregular. not at least apprehend the fact that the hat merely tion unfitting, of the behaviour because believe ? the we fix And child I the deliciously the the mental eye on this element of makeif so, does not this imply that we may we have of the hat, perceptions do, this idea is apt to emerge. has been implied above, the sight of the to not whimsical just mind the proper belongings the father's head and figure ? readily agree that when we make our reflective, as tend Is not superior? of so present to the mz., is Do and grotesquely wrong, but a usurpa- prerogative of more involves bit of childish pretence suggest the idea of its tall As hat does usual wearer, and in lingering on this quaint bit of acting we may not im- probably catch ourselves imagining the hat on the right 1 The point that when we judge two successive impressions to be different we do not necessarily represent both simultaneously, has been recently emphasised by G. F. Stout and T. Loveday, who quote the views of Wundt and Schumann. See Mimd, N.S., ix. (1900), pp. 1-7, and p. 386. INTRODUCTORY ' 16 head, especially as we see that it is the child's playful aim to personate the privileged owner. And the same thing might occur in laughing at the father topped with more probably be a child, which the least to be cap belongs. much more in might naturally enough small child's head reinstate in imaginative thought the to who would fgr the laugher, the small child's hat; this case This combination seems at likely to recur to the imagination than the other combination, which retaining the wearer substitutes the idea of the right hat. How far any distinct image of the hat thus mentally transferred to the right wearer enters into the apprecia- humorous tion of this Different from minds my own may would be hard spectacle, it behave differently here. to say. Judging experience I should say that at most only a vague " schematic " outline of the proper arrangement be what one might naturally expect. conceive of living it, fastens wearer that position wearing child. is we more ; to Laughter, as I upon something human. It is the emphasised in the comical juxta- naturally his father's hat, And me This seems to presents itself to the imagination. describe it as the child than as the father's hat on the for the comic effect it is recognise the hat to be the father's. sufficient that This we we can do mentally picturing the hat as worn by the The hat has become a symbol, and means for us the man's hat and the dignity which belongs to this, without father. though we as may have at the time no mental image of worn by its rightful possessor. Our examination seems to show that simple example of the laughable is it this apparently very inadequately accounted for by supposing a movement of mind from one presentation or idea to another which contravenes and INSPECTION OF HAT-COMEDY CONCLUDED nullifies what is the It first. may 17 be added that, with respect to when we certainly present to our consciousness, look at this bit of child's play we do not find the relation of A part to part to be merely one of contrariety. not as yet fully studied by the psychologist, curious fact, is what may be called the inter-diffusion of characters between the several The parts of a complex presentation. figure of a finely dressed lady in a gathering of poor people may either throw by contrast, or redeem it from its shabbiness by lending it some of its own glory. The latter effect is favoured by a certain conthe shabby look of the latter into greater relief templative attitude which disposes us to look at the whole as such, and with the and their amount least When we relations. of inspection of details regard the child in the big hat a semblance of the dignity which of the latter is seizure of this transferred look of dignity essential to a full is the child's hat, moment over it is ; and the mental by the spectator enjoyment of the show as a make-believe, of innocent hypocrisy. disposed to laugh, a meaning in the lies transferred to the small head little Similarly, if contemptuously, at the bit of we are man in because the hat throws for half a the heavy and lined face something of the fresh sweet look of infancy.^ It has seemed worth while to examine at some length the attempt of Dr. Lipps to deal with a simple instance of the laughable because, in spite of a recognisable effort to connect theory with concrete facts, it illustrates the to adapt the facts to the theory common tendency ; common tendency and, further, the no less to overlook the rich variety of experience Dr. Lipps seems half to perceive this mode of interaction among parts complex presentation when he says that the cylinder appears to renounce its dignity (Wurde) as man's head-covering when it stoops to 1 of a adorn the head of a child {loc. cit.). 2 * 18 INTRODUCTORY which our laughter covers, the multiplicity of the sources of way in which these may co-operate our merriment and the As in the enjoyable contemplation of a ludicrous object. we shall see, theories of the ludicrous have again and again broken down from attempting to find one uniform cause a domain where the operation of " Plurality of Causes '' ia is particularly well marked. It may be added that such theories, even if they were not one-sided and forced accounts of the sources of our merriment, would still suffer from one Lotze says of Kant's doctrine,^ they defect fatal : make no attempt as to show why the dissolved expectation or the failure to subsume a presentation under an idea should make us laugh, rather than, let us say, cough or sigh. a psychologist, was a physiologist, and Lotze, besides being it may be added, a humorist in a quiet way, and the reader of his lines may have had the ironical who knowing him will see again pout and the merry twinkle of the dark the privilege of little eye behind the words. We have agreed that the discourser on the comic, how- ever gravely philosophic he desires to finely Yet mankind. it may must touch both The we know of well be thought, in the light of the attempts made in the past, that this much. be, and comprehensively the common experiences relish for things is demanding too which feed our laughter is As the Master him that hears it more than in the tongue of him that makes it ". The facetiae of earlier ages fall on modern ears with a as tells us, " A a very variable endowment. jest's prosperity lies in the ear of sound as dull as that of an unstrung drum. be that persons ' who pass a large GeschichU der JEsthetik number It may well of their hours m Deutschland, p. 343. SOME VAGARIES OF THEORISTS grow incapable abstruse reflection in commoner of the 19 enjoying of many Their capability varieties of laughter. of lapsing into the jocose vein becomes greatly restricted may and take directions that seem out-of-the-way to the more habitual laugher. Schopenhauer's funny little at- tempt to extract a joke out of the meeting of the tangent and the some circle On seems to be a case in point. reading by the German mind, one is forced to conclude that the writers had their own peculiar, esoteric modes of laughter. When, for example, Herr St. Schiitze, whose "attempt at a theory of the Comic" is pronounced by the renowned of the definitions of the ludicrous contributed fertile Th. Vischer to be " excellent " (vorziiglich), his subject in this way writer's sense of fun. proceeds to define The comic is a perception or idea, which after some moments excites the obscure feeling that nature carries on a merry game with man while he thinks himself free to act, in which game the circumscribed liberty of man is mocked (verspottet) by a reference to a higher liberty," 1 one seems to measure the scope of the worthy relation to our desires certain : of A " That the irony of things in their and aims has amusing aspect its who that knows anything human mirth could ever think but forms of all ; them under so is of the diversified of trying to drag narrow a rubric ? vivid perception of the variability of the sense of the laughable in man, of the modification, in the case of individuals and of races, of the range of standards to which of influences it subjects itself, its temperament and habits of repel not merely the philosophic recluse life, who be expected perhaps to have followed far the 1 and play, of the by a thousand unknown Versitch eiiier Theorie des Komiscli^n (1817), s. may well can hardly many 23. wild INTRODUCTORY 20 excursions of the laughing impulse, but others as well. Have we not, it may be asked, in the appreciation of funny or laughable a mode of sensibility pre-eminently erratic, knowing no law, and incapable therefore of being understood ? Do not the more grotesque attempts to frame theories of the subject seem to mock the search for what is law where no law The is drawn conclusion ? may difficulty is be admitted whilst the practical rejected. Certainly no thinker will succeed in throwing light on the dark problem who does not strenuously fight against the narrowing influences of his " subjectivity," who does not make a serious effort to get outside the bounds of his personal preferences, and to compass in large vision the far-ranging play of the mirthful spirit, and the endless difierencing of But a his if man its manifestations. can only succeed in doing this without losing head in the somewhat rollicking that need repel him from the task scene, there is nothing ; for reason assures us that here too, just as in other domains of human experience where things looked capricious and lawless enough at the outset, order and law will gradually disclose themselves. A serious inquiry into the subject, such as to make, must, it is We supposition. evident, start from take the language of everyday imply that human laughter, notwithstanding its seeming caprices, is subject to law. objective region of " the laughable," that relations of objects laughter in us which are all alike. fitted laughable, and to define propose We is life to its variability, speak of an of objects and and which tend to excite It will be one of our chief pro- blems to determine the characteristics of this But a we this scientific pre- its field of the boundaries. serious inquiry will take us farther than this. While we do well to insist that the lightness and capricious- A SERIOUS TREATMENT OF LEVITY 21 ness of movement, the swift unpredictable coming and going, are of the essence of laughter, will be one it show how our mirthful of this inquiry to main object explosions, our sportive railleries, are attached at their very roots to our Laughter, looked at from this point of serious interests. view, has and ism, We its significance as a function of the human organ- as spreading its benefits over all the paths of must probe this value of our laughing moments life. if we are to treat the subject adequately. In thus proposing to give to laughter a purpose in the scheme of human life, one must face the risk of offending more deeply. To these laughter is so precious and sufficing a good in itself, that to propose to connect it with some extrinsic and serious purpose its friends yet looks like robbing ing it to its of its delicious freeness it traditional these objectors it may excess foe, away the spare moments and enslav- seriousness. To say at the present stage suffice to that their apprehension appears to laugh of me to be groundless. To will continue to be to the laughter-loving the same delightful pastime even should we succeed in showing that On its train. it brings other blessings in the other hand, to show that these blessings may it does bring turn out to be a handy argvmentmn ad hominem in meeting the attacks of the laughter-hater. He could not, one supposes, give himself quite so the look of flouted virtue laughter, own when perfect if we freedom much of could convince him that is guaranteed it in its legitimate territory, will unasked, and, indeed, un- wittingly, throw refreshing pastures of life. and healing drops on the dry Perhaps some thought of these benefits — was present to the Greek philosopher the very same who was for banishing Homer and other poets from his ideal commonwealth when he uttered the pretty conceit that — " INTRODUCTORY 22 the Graces in searching for a temple which would not fall, found the soul of Aristophanes. Our subject is a large one, and we must endeavour to keep all parts of it steadily in view. To begin with, we who will try to avoid the error of those on the comic idea forgot that laughter disquisitions bodily act, entities as in their subtle a is and not fear to allude to such unmetaphysical lung and diaphragm, where they seem to be a central fact in the situation. A examination of careful the very peculiar behaviour of our respiratory and other organs when the feeling of the comic seizes us, seems to belong to a it scientific investigation of appears to me the subject. these gentle and enjoyable shakings of the mind, do well to which spirit of The start, are, to Further, gros it Indeed, that in trying to get at the meaning of we shall so to speak, with the bodily shakings, say the least, much more accessible to study. seems desirable to study the utterances of the fun through the whole gamut of rire, its expression. the cacophonous guffaw, must not be re- The attempts garded as too vulgar to be admitted here. in the past to build up a theory of the ludicrous have commonly failed through a fastidious and highly artificial restriction of the laughable attribute to the field of wit humour which the cultivated man in is and the refined habit of enjoying. Nor is this all. It may possibly be found that no satis- factory explanation of our enjoyment of the laughable is obtainable without taking a glance at forms of mirth which have preceded laughter is it. Among the strange things said about surely the sentence of Bacon : " In laughing there ever precedeth a conceit of something ridiculous, and there- proper to man That the father of the inductive philosophy should have approached the subject in this way fore it is ''. PLAN OF INVESTIGATION is 23 one of the ironies that meet us in these discussions; allowing that he we must The is surely recognise that his reason conceit which man right as to his fact that only is Bacon here talks about for, laughs, hopelessly weak. is, we all know, by no means a universal accompaniment of laughter and, what is more important, even when it occurs it is wont to grow distinct rather in the form of an afterthought than in ; Among that of an antecedent. laughter ought least of humble all all The importance all of thus sweeping into our scientific net grades of laughter will be seen recognised that the one promising way to trace its development is crudest forms. If we begin when very likely to many fail it is of dealing with this from its earliest and at the top of the evolutional scheme, and take no account of the lower grades, as so its kinsfolk. specimens of subject things human, surely to be afraid of recognising we are to penetrate to the core of the laughable, have of our predecessors only stoop to consider its failed. But if we will manifestations at the lowest dis- coverable levels, and then confine ourselves to the more modest problem may : How did the first laughter, mindless as it well seem to us, get developed and differentiated into the variety of forms which of civilised It will make up the humorous experience man ? we may win a modest success. be evident that any attempt to pursue this line of inquiry will have to take note, not only of facts obtainable from the realm of primitive laughter infancy and the savage state, as represented by but of those social forces which have had so much to do with shaping the manifestations of mirth. The common and illustrate how it has insinuated many movements of social life. reason we shall need to discuss to some extent attest its social character itself into For a the like directions of our laughter 24 INTRODUCTORY 1- the place of laughter in Art, and the treatment of the sources of merriment by the comedian. Lastly, this larger consideration of the subject will, shall probably fiiid, we take us to an examination of certain ethical or practical questions, viz., the value which is to be assigned to the laughing propensity, and the proper limits to be set to its indulgence. The it will subject so conceived is a large and complex one, and be hard to deal with it at once thoughtfully and familiarly, with the genuine ring of laughter ever present to the ear. The present writer will account himself happy where so many appear to have missed success, if, in a line he attain to a moderate measure of it. 25 CHAPTER II. THE SMILE AND THE LAUGH. To treat the facts with proper respect seems to be than ordinarily more incumbent on us in dealing with the nature and the significance of our laughter. This means, some inquiry be made into the act of laughing itself, the manner of it, and the circumstances which accompany it, and that this inquiry be carried out in the most comprehensive way possible. as already hinted, that We grave elders are wont to think of laughing and smiling as something quite occasional, a momentary lapse once in a while from the persistent attitude of seriousness. This view form. apt to be expressed in too unqualified a is Simple types savage, frequently much larger would suggest. space A of the child and the humanity, show us mirthful laughter in the day's filling a hours than our view jolly boy, the subject of chronic high which are apt to try the patience of sedate seniors, might perhaps say if indeed he could be brought to frame a theory of life that laughing is the proper way spirits, — — to pass the time, sity in and that seriousness is a tiresome neces- which can be tolerated only now and again. any case such a And view might be said to represent the mental attitude of those happy idiots whom we persistently joyous read that they " are and imbeciles of and THE SMILE AND THE LAUGH 26 benign," and constantlj' laughing and that smiling, or i countenances often exhibit a stereotyped smile ". Yet, attractive as this theory may be for a lover " their of laughter, it itself to cannot well adjust stern physio- The full process of laughter is, like coughing, sobbing and other actions, a violent interruption of As the rhythmic flow of the respiratory movements. logical facts. such, function in the its human organism seems limited to that of an occasional spurt. smile, quite apart would, smiler, from its with the smooth on-flow of the has been not really named the amount to hardly be compatible " everlasting barren simper we laugh. shall see, Hence we does " this. The Smile and the Laugh, viewed as as What vital processes. physiological events, stand in the closest relation one to the other. is, perpetual insipidity for others than the speaking, strictly Even a to be rightly regarded shall as A smile an incomplete do well to study the two together. Smiling involves a complex group of facial movements. It may istic suffice to remind the reader of such character- changes as the drawing back and slight lifting of the corners of the mouth, the raising of the upper which partially uncovers the teeth, and the curving lip, of the furrows betwixt the corners of the mouth and the nostrils which these movements involve. must be added the formation of wrinkles under the eyes a most characteristic part of the expression which is a further result of the first movements. The (the naso-labial furrows) To these — brightness of the increased eyes is probably the effect of their tenseness, due to the contraction of the adjacent and the pressure of the raised cheek, though muscles 1 See Darwin, Expression of the Emotions, p. 199. PHYSIOLOGY OP SMILING 27 may an acceleration of the circulation within the eyeball have something to do with it. These facial common to the smile and to the more violent forms of laughter the under their lachrymal suffusion the changes are laugh, though in the eyes are apt to lose sparkle which the smile brings. As a is characteristic movements the smile the primitive and a pleasurable or happy state group of facial excellently well suited for its purpose most universal expression of of mind. feelings. able, It forms, in respect of certain of its features at marked Thus it a least, — from the contrast to the is far expression of opposite removed, and so easily distinguish- facial expression during weeping, viz., firmly closed eyelids and the wide opening of the in the form of a squarish cavity ; as also from the the mouth face's be- trayal of low spirits and "crossness," in the depressed corners of the mouth, the oblique eyebrows and the furrowed forehead. I as have spoken here of the primitive unsophisticated smile it may be observed in children and those adults who have not learned to control the primitive and instinctive movements of the face. civilised community, strained and modified, confession of the gladness. With Among the cultivated classes of a this primitive smile is not only re- but serves other uses than the elemental experiences of pleasure and the contemptuous smile, the slightly ironi- cal smile of the superior person, the bitter, sardonic smile, we to It is enough shall have happily but little to do here. remark that these difierentiations answer closely to those of laughter, and so further illustrate the organic aflSnity of the two. We may now laugh. That pass to the larger experience of the audible this action is physiologically continuous with THE SMILE AND THE LAUGH 28 the smile has ahready been suggested. is The facial expression approximately the same in the broad smile and the gentle when laughter grows immoderate that marked addition of other features, viz., the It is only laugh. there is a strong contraction of the muscles about the eyes leading and the shedding of tears. How closely connected are smiling and moderate laughing may be seen by to frowning, the tendency and the we ments of laughter. out, there is when we reach the broad smile mouth to start the respiratory moveAs Darwin and others have pointed experience fully open a series of gradations from the faintest and most decorous smile up to the full explosion of the laugh.^ One may, perhaps, go farther and say that the series of gradations here indicated finding is an ordinary laugh. rapidly, in it diflScult gone through, more or Persons who laugh less slowly, to "let themselves go," can be seen to It has been said by an ingenious American inquirer that laughter may begin either with the pass through these stages. eyes or with the mouth, the frequency of the former mode, compared with the as being as 7 to It may latter, in the instances examined 5.^ be added that, to this continuity of form in the actions of smiling of function. As and laughing, there answers a community will be shown more fully by-and-by, both are in their primitive forms manifestations of pleasure, laughter being primarily the expression of the fuller meas- happy or gladsome state, and varying in energy and volume with the degree of this fulness. The chronological relations of the reign of the smile and ures of the the laugh in the life of the individual will occupy us See among other authorities, Baulin, Le Bire, p. 28. See art. " The Psychology of Tickling, Laughing and the Comic," by G. Stanley Hall and A. Allin, American Journal of Psychology, vol. ix., p. 1 ft. ' ' THE LAUGH AS EXPANDED SMILE Here presently. relations may it allow us be enough 2& that these to say think of smiling at once as the to The precursor and as the successor of her kinsman. smiles are a step hood towards away from the exceeding gravity full hilarity, the last are hilarity to the stolid It would seem composure of by a step back from this senile infancy. to follow that the sharp distinction often drawn between smiling and laughing led first of baby- its Chesterfield, Society, is artificial. may emphasise the difference between the incipient and the completed process, allowing the one and forbidding the other to regard them but the natural ; man is inclined as one. The recognition of this identity of the two actions is evidenced by the usages of speech. We see in the classical languages a tendency to employ the same word for the two, laughing Hke smiling being regarded primarily and mainly — —as an object of visual perception. at least This larly clear in the case of the Latin " ridere," which means to smile as well as to laugh, the form " is particu- subridere " being rare. This tendency to assimilate the laugh and the smile as facial expressions was naturally supplemented by the employment, both in Greek and in Latin, of a separate word for audible laughter {" Kaxd^eiv," " cachinnare ") in cases needful to emphasise the fact of sound. where In some languages the relation of smiling to laughing is it was modem precisely indicated as that of a less full to a fuller action (Italian, " ridere " and " sorridere " ; French, " rire " and " sourire " ; German, "lachen" and "lacheln "). Possibly the existence of two unrelated words in our own and some other modem languages points to the fact that certain races have been more impressed by the dissimilarity between the audible and the inaudible expression than by the similarity of the visible manifestations. THE SMILE AND THE LAUGH 30 worth noting that even after the two expressions have been distinguished by separate names there is a tendency to use the stronger metaphor " to laugh," rather than It is the weaker one " to smile," in describing the brighter aspects of nature's beauty, such as painter, the whom Dante first in meadows when A in flower. meets in Purgatory, and recognises as the art of illumination, gracefully transfers this by saying that the leaves " (piu ridon) than his more laugh distinction to a brother painter which the latter painted " own.^ We may now turn laughing, that sounds. is to the distinguishing characteristics of the production of the familiar series of is, Like sighing, sobbing and some other actions, it an interruption of the natural rhythm of the respiratory which inspiration and expiration follow one The obvious feature of this process, in another at regular intervals. interruption in the case of laughter the series of short, is spasmodic, expiratory movements produced. These are, by which the sounds are however, preceded by a less noticed inspiration of exceptional energy and depth. These inter- movements involve the large muscles by those which secure the ruptions of the ordinary respiratory an unusually energetic action of which the chest is expanded, viz., contraction and so the descent of the dome-shaped diaphragm, and those by the action of which the ribs are elevated. The production of the sounds by the spasmodic expiratory movements shows that the passage from the trachea the pharynx, The quality cords, is partially closed. ^ Pwgatorio, Canto planet (Venus) is into the glottis or chink between the vocal viz., xi., lines 82-3 said to have ; c/. Canto i., of the sounds line 20, where the made the whole East laugh copied by Chaucer, The Knightes Tale, line 636. poetical use of " laughter,'' Spectator, No. 249. —a is lair figure Addison touches on this THE SOUNDS OF LAUGHTER 31 explained by the particular arrangements, at the of moment the vocal apparatus, and more the cachinnation, of particularly the shape of the resonance chamber of the mouth. we Familiar though are with them, we should find it hard to give an accurate description of the sounds of To begin laughter. with, they seem same person and in the case of the diiFerent persons. to vary considerably still more Laughter has not yet lent in that of itself to the methods of the experimental psychologist, and so has not been may studied with scientific precision. By-and-by, we hope, the phonograph will capture its sounds, and enable us to observe them at our leisure. a very rough account of them Taking the laughter Meanwhile, only is possible. of the adult male, which is perhaps more frank and better pronounced, we find the more common forms of iterated sounds to range from the broad vowel sound aw sound (in " (as in " seems to the long me ee law ") to the sharp a The long go "), involving the rounded mouth aperture, common. to be far less and (in " bat "). ai sounds, The same applies to and those which seem to be most closely allied to them. These variations appear, so far as I can judge, to go with alterations of pitch. The broader sounds, e.g., aw, seem naturally to ally themselves to the hardier deep-pitched more cackle-like utterances in the higher parts of the register. This connection shows explosion, the others to the itself, too, in the change in the vowel-quality when, as frequently happens, the laugh runs through a cadence of pitch from a higher to a lower note. These considerations will prepare us to find that the vowel-quality of the sound varies in general with sex and with age. According to Haller and Gratiolet the sounds of THE SMILE AND THE LAUGH 32 women and the laughter of children, which correspond with their higher vocal pitch, approach in vowel-quality to the French i and e.^ Considerable variations from these typical forms would seem to occur now and already referred the to, In the American returns again. mode of laughing described presented by such odd symbols as " tse ! tse ! " etc. These singularities, are intended to represent habitual are, gah " ! if, gah as ! it " "iff is re- iff ! " ! seems, they modes of voicing mirth, one suspects, hardly referrible to natural differences of vocalisation, but are probably the result of the interfering we know, have much to do with fixing the form of mirthful expr^ssio^. agencies of nervousness and affectation which, as The description of laughter here offered applies pnly to the typical form. It would have to be modified consider- ably to suit the attenuated forms to which the expression is reduced in " poUte society Of ". Even where the vocal outburst these, more presently. retains its primitive spon- taneity and fulness considerable variations are observable, connected with differences in the whole respiratory and vocal apparatus. The intensity and volume of the sound, the pitch and vowel-quality, the rapidity of the successive expirations, the length of the mencing and of ending, may help to different make series, all the mode of com- exhibit variations which the laughter of one person or of one race from that of another. We may now pass to some other accompaniments of the muscular movements of laughter. study these with care if we wish It is of importance to to estimate the precise value of the hilarious explosion in the economy of human life. ' Gratiolet, De la Physionomie, p. 115. Benedick instances as interjections oflaughing " ha ha I he " Mvxh Ado About Nothing, IV., 1. ! I ORGANIC EFFECTS OF LAUGHTER 33 Since the movements of laughter are sudden and violent interruptions of the smooth rhythmic flow of the respiratory process, we may organic effects, expect to find that they have important involving not merely the mechanism of respiration, but also that of the circulation of the blood. Here, all it seems, (we are which, as we have to do with a double effect. told), this series of we have spasmodic expirations seen, the First of —during glottis is partially closed increases the pressure within the thorax or chest, and so impedes the entry of blood from the veins into the heart. This effect is seen in the turgidity of the head and neck which appears after prolonged and violent laughing. In the second place, the exceptionally deep inspirations tend to ex- pand the limgs with air, veins into the heart. actions, the and to drain The manner off the blood from the in which these two deepened inspiration and the prolonged expira- tion, alternate during a fit of laughter, appears to secure a ( considerable advantage in respect both of accelerated circuj lation and riiore complete oxygenation of the blood. The; movement of the blood after laughter has recently! been observed in some experimental inquiries into the effects brisker of emotional excitement of various kinds on the pulse. It is not improbable that this expedited circulation pro- duces more remote effects on the organism. It has been suggested that one of the advantages of a " good laugh " is that it it relieves the brain, and this would seem to imply that quickens the movement of the blood through the fine and readily clogged vessels which permeate the brain-structures. 1 See an article on " Organic Processes and Consciousness," by Angell and H. B. Thompson, in the Psychological Beview, J. R. vol. vi., p. 56. According to these researches, a hearty laugh, causing sudden and violent changes in the breathing curve, is accompanied by the sharpest and most marked vaso-dilation, as tested by capillary pulse drawing though in one ; case the opposite efiect of constriction 3 was produced. THE SMILE AND THE LAUGH 34 And here we find ourselves face to face with the question: What truth is there in the saying that laughter has beneficial physiological effects ? A curious chapter might be written on the views propounded, both by the light-hearted reveller and the grave and philosophic onlooker, on the wholesomeness of this form of " bodily exercise this aspect of the subject can, Only a bare reference to ". however, be given here. To begin with, the unlearned, who know nothing diaphragms or of congested veins needing to be have had a shrewd conviction that laughter of life grow moving briskly. fat," attest this Proverbs, common of relieved, sets the current such as "laugh and conviction. Those who have made The mediaeval writers of catered to the laughter-lovers have not unnaturally much of this salutary influence. the laughable story in verse (the "fabhau " or "Conte a rire en vers (" held firmly to the belief in the "sanitary virtue" ") vertu saine ") of a burst of laughter. This popular view has been supported by the weight of learned authority. clearly one, Vocal exercises, of which laughing is have been recommended by experts from the time of Aristotle as a means of strengthening the lungs and of furthering the health of the organism as a whole. By many, moreover, laughter has been specifically inculcated as The learned Burton (b. 1577) quotes a hygienic measure. a number of physicians in favour of the ancient enlivening the feast with mirth and jokes.^ may find custom of The reader references to the salutary effects of laughter in the Both by a vigorous latest text-books of physiology. re- inforcement of the actions of the large muscles which do the work of respiration, and, still effects of these reinforced actions ^Anatomy of Melancholy, Pt. 2, sec. merry company "). 2, more, by the beneficial on the functions of the mem. vi., subaeo. i ("mirth and PHYSIOLOGICAL BENEFITS OF LAUGHTER 35 lungs and the circulatory apparatus, laughter properly finds a place among " bodily exercises "} The beneficial effects of laughter have not been overlooked Mulcaster, for example (born about by the pedagogue. 1530), gives a high place to laughing health-giving or The exercises. among his " physical physiological adduced are sometimes funny enough : He on Galen and the doctrine of "spirits". who have reasons for the author relies thinks that cold hands and cold and are troubled with melancholia, since it " moveth much aire in the breast, and sendeth the warmer spirites laughter will help those chests outward". under the Tickling may armpits well be added, seeing that these parts have a great store of small veins aud warme little How tickled so ".^ far these benign effects on health, by the modern physician as well as which are recog- by his predecessor, are due to the vigorous reinforcement brought the is become themselves, and from thence disperse heat through- out the whole bodie nised "which being arteries work of respiration and not easy to say. way and again a lusty be distinctly it The latter process reminds one of the circulation of pedestrians In a general by laughter to of the circulation of the blood, " it and vehicles manages Move on beneficial. ! " in our London streets. Yet now itself fairly well. from a policeman seems to may be extended Similar benefits and the rest. not lose sight of the possibility must At the same time we that laughter may act beneficially on our hard-pressed to the organs of digestion I Laughter is his useful work, pronounced a "good exercise" by Dr. Leonard Hill in Manual of Human Physiology (1899), p. 236. The physioare more fully treated of by Dr. Harry Campbell in his logical benefits publication, Respiratory Exercises in the Treatment of Disease (1898), p. 125. '^"Positions," ed. by Quick, pp. 6i, 65. THE SMILE AND THE LAUGH 36 frames in another way. lusty cachinnation As has been suggested above, nature's is that psychologists way Now sudden increase of pleasure. pleasurable the of voicing gladness, a it has been held by tend feelings the whole group of organic functions, to by adding further to the nervous vigour which keeps them going. Laughter may owe a part of its benign influence on our bodily state to the fact that it produces a considerable increase of vital activity by way of heightened nervous stimulation.^ One feature of the laughing outburst may pretty safely be ascribed to this increase of nervous action under pleasurIn all genuinely hilarious moods, the laugh accompanied by a good deal of diffused activity of the able excitement. is This voluntary muscles. is seen most clearly in the un- and savages. The sudden movements of arm, wing-like, or meet in leg and trunk, so that arms flap the joyous clap, and the whole body jumps. In older sophisticated laughter of children glee which starts the laugh starts also people matters may not be carried so far, though there are examples of the large shakings of laughter, notably that of Carlyle's Teufelsdrockh, whose great laugh was one " not and diaphragm only, but of the whole man from head to heel " and it is hard perhaps for any man taken by the " stab " of a good joke to keep his arms down of the face ; and It his body may vertical. be added that this supplementing of the energetic ' Angell and Thompson in the article quoted ahove suppose that the whole dilation of the capillaries during laughter is a secondary effect of sudden changes in the breathing. This seems a reasonable conclusion. Yet since, according to these writers, smiling as well as mild laughter causes gentle changes of the same kind, it seems possible that we have here, in a disguised form, the working of the general law stated by these writers that agreeable experiences are accompanied by dilation of the : peripheral blood-vessels. LAUGHING AS A GYMNASTIC respiratory actions laughter such violent. Its of the limbs gives to to be called a muscular exercise. vigorous, voluminous it is on the by movements its clear title 37 and bordering, salutary influence, like that of the wiU consequently depend on the surgeon's knife, As so to speak, celerity of its operation. Here we come to the other laughter does good by its column in the reckoning. occasional irruption into a If domain which otherwise would have too much of drowsy monotony, its beneit can it when is it Only too easily and inundate and destroy rigorously circumscribed. overdo the " flushing " part, should merely cleanse. In other words, the mirth- ful cachinnation, just because it is an irruption, a disorderly proceeding, must not be unduly prolonged. At what moment in a fit of laughter the it is not easy to say. prolonged undesirable effects begin to appear, must be remembered that a good part of what remains of modern laughter is by no means pure hilarity. There is in It it from the first ejaculation something of a biting sensation, or something of a melancholy pain. Yet, waiving this and we looking on what begins as genuine hilarity, that it is when moment further prolongation of the exercise will be weakening rather than strengthening. like that of wine, may in its The excitement may of laughter, measurements have justed to individual constitution. of life shall find not so simple a matter to determine the Among to be ad- the humiliations be reckoned the discovery of an inability to go on laughing at the brilliant descriptions of a caricaturist, an experience of aching exhaustion, of flabby and collapse, while others continue the exhilarating chorus. It is natural to look on the tears which often accompany boisterous laughter as an unfavourable which do us good should not, we argue, symptom. make Things us cry. Yet THE SMILE AND THE LAUGH 38 we may reflect that men have been known to cry out of laughers, too, the moisture may With some sheer happiness. earlier stage than with others. Was Shakespeare, one wonders, thinking of a violent laughter when he made lachimo tell Imogen that her lord Leonatus had mocked come at an the French lover's lugubrious despondencies " with his eyes Perhaps in Shakespeare's age, in flood with laughter " ? when in laughter more was held with looser came rein, the tears readily. According to Darwin, who has made a careful study of laughter's tears, their appearance during a violent attack common to all the races of mankind. He is connects them with the contraction of the muscles round the eyes which has for its purpose the compressing of the gorged blood- and so the protection of the eyes. This is the meaning of the tears alike in the case of grief and of extravagant mirth. The paroxysm of excessive laughter vessels ; and help us to understand how thus approaches the other extreme of violent grief this fact, it is Darwin thinks, may that hysterical patients and children often laugh and cry alternately.^ it may be with the tears, there is no doubt that and prolonged laughter works mischief in other ways. However violent The sigh that so frequently follows the laugh, supposed to illustrate the wider truth that have a sting in the tail," and has been " all pleasures need not be taken too seriously. It is the sign of restoration of equilibrium after the hilarious upset. The prostrating known to ' Shakespeare. effects of violent laughter were well Thus he speaks of being " stabbed " See The Expression of the Emotions, chap, note that Muloaster and beneficial influence for tlie "a vi., p. 163. It is curious to recent physiologists referred to above claim a good cry" as well as for laughter. But they do not seem explicitly to put them on the same level as occasional exercises. FATIGUES OF LAUGHTER 39 with laughter, of laughing oneself " into stitches " perience which Milton probably had in of "laughter holding both his sides'' —an ex- mind when he wrote —of the heart being almost broken "with extreme laughing," and of laughing "to death". oneself whole Iliad of The American returns speak ^ evil after-effects giddiness, breathlessness and so of a fatigue, weakness, sadness, : forth. may, however, be It urged that these unpleasant experiences hardly justify us in applying to laughter the rather strong epithet of They are, " killing ". under normal circumstances, temporary incon- veniences only, and to the lover of fun do not seriously count as against kills, as it its substantial blessings. does sometimes, it is because it When laughter has degenerated into something distinctly abnormal, allying itself to hysterical grief or to the unhinging effect of a great mental shock. As already beginning, is Among of feeling. adults it is noted, the laugh, like the smile which is its in general an expression of a pleasurable state unsophisticated children and savage common mode of expressing all considerable pleasure when they involve a sudden bright- the intensities of ening of the pleasure-tone of consciousness, as in the overflow of gladness or good marked \feeling. spirits. As such it stands in dissimilarity to the expression of opposite tones of To begin with, it states of suffering, sorrow illustrates the presents a striking contrast to and low spirits in general. broad generalisation laid It down by psycho- logists that a state of pleasure manifests itself in vigorous and expansive movements, whereas a state of pain involves a lowering of muscular energy and a kind of shrinking into oneself. In a more special way it forms an antithesis, in certain of its features at least, to the expression of violent ^ Maria's words in Twelfth Night, "If you desire the spleen," seem to point to some supposed organic disturbance due to immoderate laughter. THE SMILE AND THE LAUGH 40 Darwin remarks that in the production of screams or cries of distress the expirations are prolonged suffering. and continuous and the inspirations short and interrupted whereas in the production of laughter we have, as we have and broken and the inspirations This is merely one case of the wider generalisaprolonged. tion that " the whole expression of a man in good spirits seen, the expirations short is exactly the sorrow opposite of that one of suffering from ".^ The value of this arrangement as helping us to under- stand one another's feelings mistakes which we is wont are Among obvious. many the commit in reading our to minds, that of confusing their joy and grief children's cannot, fortunately, be a frequent one. and ceptional abnormal It is only in ex- where the extremes cases, of boisterous mirth and grief seem to approach one another, that the language of the one can be mistaken for that of the other. A curious point, which the ingenuities of some psychologists compel us to consider, of which laughter is later whether the pleasure, is popularly supposed to be the outcome or effect, really stands in this relation to the theory here referred to, of which According to it. Prof. W. James is the best-known advocate in our language, a blush cannot be attributed to an antecedent feeling of modesty or shame- facedness modesty it, : : but for the blush there would be no feeling of in truth, it is the blush, that constitutes the feeling. i.e., the hot sensation of The theory has done much to popularise psychology in these last days. It is, I found, a plum in a pudding where plums are rare for who read psychology 1 Op. for examinations. cit., pp. 207 and 213. It have many seems to be EXPRESSION AS SOURCE OP PEELING particularly dear to it young women. 41 It certainly has about the charm of a lively fancy. But science has, alas ness of fancy get all and ; it ! sometimes to do battle with your emotions out of the organic yourself in the By has to do this here. awkward liveli- trying to effects, you find situation of being unable to say how these organic effects themselves are brought about. You must have something of the emotional thrill and of the nervous thrill which this involves before you get that interference with the routine action of the muscles of the facial capillaries which brings on the blush. Not only may the presence of an element of feeling at the very beginning of an emotional experience be thus shown to be a necessary assumption, cases at least, be clearly observed. it can, in certain This applies more par- ticularly to such feelings as the admiration of a beautiful landscape or a fine bit of harmonised melody. cases it must, one would suppose, be evident to all In these that the and sustained by numerous by way of eye or ear, and by the agreeable perceptions which grow immediately out of these. To say that all the joyous elevation in pleasurable emotion is started currents of agreeable sensation pouring in these experiences springs out of the secondary, internally excited sensations, which accompany the altered those and gland, the heightened pulseand the rest, is surely to inflict an undeserved indignity on " the higher senses," and to exhibit the full depth of ludicrous paradox which lurks in condition of muscle rate, the bodily thrill this theory.^ The indeed, 'Prof. p. 384. case one of laughter is characteristic James seems to not quite so clear. which seems to It favour has, the admit this in his smaller work, Psychology, THE SMILE AND THE LAUGH 42 view that eal that it is the bodily resonance everything, namely^ is easily induced in a mechanical or quasi-mechamIt is of all the expressive manner. movements the one Children's laughter, to the force of imitation. most subject and that excited by the popular game, the "laughing chorus," clearly illustrate we know, over, as by part at least, in a fit contagious character.^ its may of laughter actions which presumably reinstate some of the physiological elements in the process. my son tells me that he impulse to laugh when was overtaken by an seems ; and my that irresistible the daughter had the mountain climb. at the end of her first probable Thus riding a horse without a saddle,, and again when running a race same tendency More- be brought on, It movements and the changed condition of the breathing function are prime causes of the irresistible tendency in such cases. It is, however, one thing to allow the indisputable fact that laughter can be excited in this seemingly mechanical way, another thing to claim for the reaction in such cases the value of the full joyous outburst. a person who watches I believe that his mental processes can observe that a merely imitative laughter does not bring the whole delightful psychosis which when some arises agreeable im- pression initiates the movements. To this it must be added that on the imitation is in the cases here touched not wholly mechanical. laugh because others laugh, do we When we not accept their laugh- gay mood ? And are we not, commonly at least, affected by others' voluminous laughter as by a droll sight and sound, which ter as a playful challenge and fall into the directly stimulates the mirthful muscles I On ? the Contagion of Laughter, see Eaulin, My son's laughter, Le Eire, p. 98 ft. PLEASURE AS ANTECEDENT OF LAUGHTER in the circumstances just referred to, to the movements seemed to be directed and to those of the of the horse's ears, boy running just in front 4? The movements of him. of laughter have, in the case of some adults, come so completely under the initiative control of mental processes, that even when powerful organic forces prompt the movements, it is necessary to make show a some cause of of finding merriment. Coming now to the ordinary case of the emotional we note first of all the swift, explosive character reaction, of the outburst. motor discharge follow the If the swell of joyous feeling, which first popularly said to excite is it, make it seems to do so with such it impossible to detect this initial swell as distinctly pre- ceding Yet it. for example we baffle our inquiry. When laugh at some absurd incongruity in speech the laugh not only directs interest need not this fact or manners, can starts electrical rapidity as to we not is see that the perception which an emotional perception, one which to itself something that has emotional and value, namely, the incongruous features as such, but is flooded from the very To say that hanging upon the arm of mirth. my of first with the gladness perception of a big man a small woman a purely in- is tellectual affair, like the perception of the inequality of two one lines in a geometrical figure, either to a poverty of is, fears, to confess humorous experience or to a very scanty faculty of psychological analysis. But perhaps the clearest disproof of this quaint paradox in the realm of laughter is supplied by the situation of forced choral laugh through fatigue. When already referred to, that abstention thus and impotent, we may be quite capable funny turns of the good "story," " of from a doubled up " seizing the and of feeling all the and THE LAUGH T'HE smile 44 In sooth force of the bugle-call of the others' laughter. just here that the misery of the situation it is the joyous sense of fun in the air is now robbed Ump sturdy ally and so reduced to a state of The comicality the feeling is makes still denied appeal full its full lies, we : that of its inefficiency. feel but it, normal outflow. This brings us face to face with the kernel, the valuable kernel, of truth which that is, pressed what seems at Though the " bodily lies in paradoxical nutshell. reverberation," the swiftly returning tidings of a raised or de- nervous organism, is activity outlying in regions not everything in an emotion, and an important The part. full that coming of fun with gladness can find its flow along the familiar channels. this greet the customary out- Not only expansion large a part, nervous swirl moment when we started at the centres at the the of is experiences, im- the vents are clear, that the suggested above, it experience of the joys of the comic, like other full emotional plies an empty first of so, the but as area of nervous commotion throughout the bodily system gives added ment I life and a more distinctive character to the enjoy- of fun. have here supposed a perfectly simple instance of laughter in which a sudden increase of pleasure up to the point of gladness brings on the reaction. this case, however, there is Even some complication, some in re- action between the out-pouring mental gladness and the in-pouring somatic resonance. In a good, prociprocal longed laugh the bodily factor does undoubtedly react upon the psycho-physical process which makes up the mental gaiety, and this physical factor means that In of this process. is all cases it precedes the later stages where this central psycho- complex and requires time for its com- HOW PLEASURE AND LAUGHTER pletion, the interactions become vital. intuitions reflective to be the is set so 45 and the bodily factor it in the preceding chapter, the which are and cause, after-thoughts. paratus between As hinted INTERACT to by said- certain theorists precede laughter, are often when This means that the laughing ap- and ready to discharge, the first joyous per- ception of something funny, though utterly vague with respect to the particular features and relations wherein lies the funniness, suffices to bring on the reaction, which in- And stantly reinforces the gladsome mood. sustain itself for a while mainly as a fit the jollity of laughter may though ; swift mental glances are all along being shot across the spasms at the provoking " object," glances which make clearer and clearer the ludicrous features, raise the force of the If, as limits a we have good and by so doing mental stimulus. seen to be probable, laughter is within exercise, bringing a considerable increase of pleasurable activity and furthering the sense of bodily well-being, we can easily understand how essential it is to the full reali^tion of good spirits and the hilarious mood. Its explosive movements seem, indeed, to belong to the state of exhilaration, of conscious expansion, of its piquant flavour: and to give whence the hardship it much of losing breath through excessive indulgence, or having to the impulse to laugh at its birth shocked look of the agelast. movements bring The when exposed deep, forcible stifle to the chest- a sense of heightened energy, of a high- tide fulness of the life-current. The voluminous mass of sensation which they supply, partly in the stirring sounds which react on the laugher's own ears, and partly in the large, exhilarating effects in the viscera, is in itself a vast expansion of our consciousness. tide in our organic life is This sudden rise of the a part at least of that sense THE SMILE AND THE LAUGH 46 " of " sudden glory which the sight of the ludicrous is said to bring us. That this organic swell is a large factor, more ways than in is, shown I think, To name but one one. fact we may ; begin a laugh with something of bitterness, something of malignity in our hearts consciousness, as if ; but end process, and, like another substituted a it having a freer, serener the laughter had been a sort of cleansing and widely happy and peaceful different Kd6ap(n<;, and un- for a disturbed happy state of among the causes of laughter, a moment's relaxation of strain feeling. —muscular, '•* It will be seen presently that intellectual or emotional tension of the most common, if it be not universal. The — is one delicious sense of relief which the collapse of the strained attitude brings us may no doubt be due to a consciousness of the transition, the escape At the same time, it is from pressure of the moment before. not improbable that the physiological processes of laughter themselves, by securing organic relief and refreshment, contribute a large element to the whole mental A state. like remark applies to the element of disagreeable which frequently, feeling mixed experience at least, makes our laughter a : Our sinoerest laughter With some pain is fraught. Shelley was hardly the person, one suspects, to judge of the quality of men's laughter an element of truth. : yet his couplet contains This mixture of elements is, doubt, largely due to the initiating perception itself; as we us in no for, commonly shows the background something regrettable. But it seems shall see, the laughable spectacle reasonable to say that the element of sadness in our hilarity has its organic support in the unpleasant feeling-tones CEREBRAL AND ORGANIC JOY which accompany the effects of all violent 47 and prolonged laughter.! What may be the precise proportions between the initial or " cerebral "joy and the joy reverberated by the organism we have no There seems something- data for determining. when plausible in the contention that the former, the reinforcement of the latter, This view feeling. may response of the body a man is is but a " " thin and it lacks " pale " be supported by the fact that the Even when never wholly silenced. controls his laughter, say in church, he But there are swift spasm in the throat. powerfully in the other direction. We aware of a is facts which tell never stifle the organic resonance without introducing other and distinctly When by adverse influences. our laughter attitude, does conflict is much distinctly disagreeable, acute sufiering. fails its to spoil the between the impulse we a forcible efibrt this efibrt itself, as an artificial hold back and difficult The whole experience. to laugh and the curbing will and may readily grow into an And when the corporeal reverberation through sheer fatigue, this fatigue, both in itself and in antagonism to the appeal to mirth, becomes a large factor in the whole experience. this knowledge of the We must consequently wait precise shares contributed for by the two some ingenious experimenter can succeed in exciting the mirthful mood and at the same time cutting off the bodily reverberation without inducing a new factors, until organic consciousness method ; or, on the other hand, can devise a of securing for us in some utterly serious moment the full bodily reverberation of laughter, say by electrically ' It has been pointed out by an Ingenious French writer, L. Dugas whose work, Psychologie du ri/re, has appeared while my volume is passing through the press that even a wild, uncontrollable laughter, " le fou rire," in spite of its elements of suffering, remains to a large extent a pleasurable — experience (see pp. 25, 26). TH^ SMILE AND THE LAUGH 48 stimulating our respiratory muscles. It may be predicted with some confidence that this waiting will be a long one. Here again, as in the case of the smile, we have to note various deviations from the typical form of the expression. When laughter no longer springs from pure joy, but has in something of a sardonic bitterness, or something of a it contemptuous defiance, the experience will of course be complicated by a new ingredient this change of experience is in the initial mental attitude of consciousness. Whether due merely to the difference may be doubted. improbable that the physiological processes, that It is is not to say, the respiratory movements, the vocalisation, and the more diffused organic effects, will be altered in such cases. bitter laugh seems differently A both to taste differently and to sound from a perfectly joyous one. In these deviations from the typical laugh of the joyoua mood we see the beginning of the intrusion of a new- factor, the will. in, of There is more of intention to be say, the ironical laughter of one side of the Commons than heard House in the laughter of an unsophisticated child. This intrusion of will serves both to restrain the natural process, reducing it to a degraded and rudimentary form,^ and to originate various affected counterfeits of the spon- taneous outburst. This double action supports the idea that the conventions of polite society aim not merely at suppressing the " vulgar " kind of explosion, but at evoking when an effort is being made to Hence the multiplicity of weird utterances which cultivated humanity has adopted. The giggle, the titter, the snicker and the rest appear to be not merely reduced or the signs of amusement amuse. half-suppressed laughter, but substitutes which can readily DEGRADED FORMS OF LAUGHTER be produced when 49 Those who the occasion asks for them.^ confine themselves to this debased laughter are naturally- by the much-laughing despised voluminous laugher at times Carlyle soul. —when —himself a writing of Teufels- drockh's great laugh hurls contempt on these triflers with the big things of mirth in this wise titter : they " only sniff and and sniggle from the throat outwards produce some whiffling, husky cachinnation, as An laughing through wool".^ or at best ; if they were accurate scientific record of these strange perversions of laughter, even though less picturesque it were than Carlyle's description, would be of con- The laughter-lover may at least console him by this kind of imitation with the reflection that it is empty of joy, and even of the refreshing sensations which issue from the genuine laugh. siderable value. himself for the injury done Nay, more, as a forced performance, presumably has a disagreeable feeling of irksomeness as its accompaniment. it It is sad to reflect that these spurious varieties of laughter are apt to appear early in the life of the individual. tells Preyer us he was able to distinguish, in the third year of his boy's utterances, the genuine laugh of hilarity from that of which was probably rather more forced. Possibly appear among that wondrous gathering of queer imitation, they all sounds for which infancy is famous, and selected by a certain may be permanently of " highly proper " children in number preference to the fuller sounds. 1 The Freuoh language is paitioularly rioh in its vocabulary under this head, including expressions like "rire du bout des dents " and "du bout des Uvres " (cf. Homer's expression, barbe," and others like "rire jaune * Sartor Beswrtus, Bk. I., chap. ". iv. iy4\a<r(r€v x^'^f'"')! " "re dans sa 50 CHAPTER III. OCCASIONS AND CAUSES OF LAUGHTER. It seemed desirable to before taking examme the process of up the much-discussed question In considering this side of our subject, we by way According to the dinary more of its causes. shall, as cases, common by some sentative idea, such as a a droll human As is of action of assumption, laughter, in or- by some provocative, to speak sense-presentation, or its repre- "funny" figure, or a not assume that such an cases. mode of this larger inquiry. excited is precisely, already and approach of production of the mirthful outburst, the narrower problem of the nature and the ludicrous itself view of the occasions and hinted, take a comprehensive modes laughter sensation, the sight of Yet we must quaint fancy. presentation occurs in initial all implied in what has been said above about the laughter of " good spirits," and as we clearly presently, there are cases shall see more where laughter takes on the appearance of a spontaneous or " automatic " group of movements. 1. It may be well, however, to begin our inquiry by touching on those varieties of laughter in which the action of a sense-stimulus to select a is apparent. And it will be convenient form of distinctly provoked laughter in which the intellectual processes play only a subordinate part. effect of tickling is clearly of this kind, The and as one of the LAUGHTER AND TICKLING modes simplest first of exciting laughter attention here. it Since, moreover, 51 seems to claim our it is the mode of exciting laughter of which our knowledge has been rendered in a measure precise deal with it at some The experience by means of experiment, I propose to length. of being tickled entirety as a sensational reflex ; is best described in its that is to say, a motor reaction on a process of sensory stimulation which produces a well-marked variety of sensation. as if it To speak of titillation were merely the production of a certain kind of sensation is unscientific. tain movements, must It involves the excitation of cer- and where these are not forthcoming we infer, either that defective, or that the the sensory part of the process motor impulse is inhibited in is some way. The stimulation in this ease is, as we all know, a light tactile one. The agent commonly applied is the finger or a still softer body, such as a feather. The mode of contact is light, or at least does not commonly rise to the point of heavy pressure. The manner of contact is usually intermittent, the finger or fingers giving a series of short and Movements of the point commonly accompany the series staccato impacts. cases, fingers of contacts. In some however, a single light touch, or even a continuous touch with movement from point to point, induce the proper The It is pretty clear that the here employed do not give low may suffice to effect. precise nature of the sensations is not yet fully understood. of from point to intensity. rise to " minimal stimuli purely tactile sensations This seems to be established by the fact^ brought out by Dr. Louis Robinson that [the parts of the skin having tke most acute tactile sensibility, the tips of the fingers and the tip of the tongue, are "scarcely at all sensitive OCCASIONS AND CAUSES OF LAUGHTER 52 by Wundt that the some other skin sensa- Lto titillation "jj It has been pointed out sensations in this case, as in that of tions, tend to spread themselves out, other and even distant parts of the surface being engaged This in of reflex sensation.^ tions of tickling are tactile sensations. up more by means of the mechanism itself suggests that the sensa- allied to organic than to purely It is supposed that the light stimuli set in the skin certain organic changes, more particularly modifications of the circulation of blood in the small vessels.^ It is well known /susceptible of the that not eflect all of parts of the skin are equally tickling. Certain areas, for example, the sole of the foot and the armpit, are commonly said to be " ticklish places ". In the answers to questions by Dr. Stanley Hall we find the order, as determined by most frequent naming of the part, to be as follows (the sole of the foot, the armpit, the neck and part under the chin, the ribs, and so forth. The inquiries brought out the sent out \ I fact that there are considerable difierences of experience here, I i' some saying that they were ticklish in all parts, others only The method adopted in this inquiry clearly affords no accurate measurement of comparative sensibility.* \in one. Article on " Ticklishness " in the Dictionary of Psychological Medicine. adds that ticklishness is not locally coincident with sensitiveness to pain. On the other hand, Dr. Charles Eiohet remarks that the parts ' He most sensitive to tickling are the parts richest in tactile nerves. " Ohatouillement," DictUmnaire de Physiologie. Article 'See Wundt, Physiolog. Psychologic {4te Auflage), Bd. i., pp. 434-5. According to this authority the propagation of the stimulation may be either direct from one sensory fibre to another, or indirect, involving muscular contractions and muscular sensations. ^ See Kiilpe, OutUnes of Psychology, p. 148. See the article on " The Psychology of Tickling, Laughing, and the S. Hall and A. AUin, in the American Journal of Psychology, vol. ix., p. 1 fi. These returns do not make it quite clear whether " ticklishness " is taken to mean the non-laughing as well as the laughing * Comic," by G. varieties. SEATS OF TICKLISH SENSIBILITY A more scientific attempt to Louis Eobinson^ho measure 53 was made by Dx. number of experi- this carried out a large ments on children from two to four years of age with the definite way purpose of testing the degree of responsiveness by According to his results the order of of laughter. decreasing sensibility is of the neck (4) bend of elbow and abdominal muscles (6) flanks ; (5) junction as follows (2) the ribs of ribs ; : (1) the region in front (3) axillae ; ; (7) region of the hip joint ; (8) upper anterior part of the thigh.i A glance at these statements shows that the determinjationT of the scale of ticklish sensibility over the surface completed. the sole, Dr. L. Robinson, a highly ticklish spot in the popular creed, nor the palm, which, as It is not yet is by the way, mentions neither we shall see, is decidedly a ticklish region.^ highly desirable that more precise experimental in- quiries should be directed to these local variations of ticklishness, and that, after the seats of the higher degrees of the sensibility have been ascertained, the question should be considered whether these are marked ofi" by any definite peculiarities of structure. under the head It is probable that the sensations included of ticklishness are not all of the same quality. safe to say that in all cases the sensation this extent, that it factor. composed of a see An greater than this. ^ is But we may My references to Dr. tactile complex to is and an organic that the complexity obvious instance is is often the addition Robinson's views are partly to the article in the Dictionary already quoted, and partly to notes of lectures given before the British Association and the West Kent Medical Society, which he has been so kind as to show me. I have made much use of his interesting and often brilliant suggestions in dealing with the subject of ticklishness. ' Both parts of these are (loc. cit.). included by Dr. Biohet among the most / seems J It sensitive OCCASIONS AND CAUSES OF LAUGHTER 54 when of a peculiarly irritating effect or nostril tickled, is an the orifice of the ear due to the action of the effect stimulus on the hairs, which are specially abundant here.^ Some surfaces, too, endowed with a bility. sole, In which are free from hair, appear to be special modification of the ticklish sensi- my own case, at any rate, light touches on the have, as long as I can remember, excited sensations A which seem to have almost a character of their own. further complication probably occurs when the tickling grows rougher and approaches to a digging of the fiingers into the soft parts of the armpits; for here the nerve- endings lying deeper are pretty certainly stimulated. ! Lastly, it is important to add that prolongation of the Jtickling seems to introduce changes in the intensity, also in the quality of the sensations. | if not Hence it would appear that the sensations falling under the head of ticklishness, though they have certain common characteristics, may vary considerably. Since we are here concerned with these sensations as it behoves us to look rather closely As largely organic sensations they provocatives of laughter, at their feeling-tones. may be expected to have a strongly marked element of the agreeable or disagreeable least, ; and this is what we find. I, at cannot conceive of myself as having the proper sensa- and yet being wholly indifferent. When, however, we ask what is the precise feeling-tone tional experience of tickling, we find no simple answer forthSome psychologists view them as having, in general, of one of these sensations, coming. an unpleasant ' How far character.^ On the other hand, children are the results are complicated by the action o{ the muscles which serve to erect the separate hairs contract near a tickled surface, I 'E.g., Kiilpe, op. cit., p. 147. on the body, and are said by Lister am not sure. to SENSATIONS OF TICKLING certainly fond of being tickled, ask for pastime of do with a complexity of feeling-tone, to it, This at once suggests that it. 55 and make a we have here as, indeed, our study of the sensations would lead us to suppose. It is, I think, a plausible supposition that coming under the head of tickling disagreeable. tone It is seems always to be of a mixed feeling- some sensational elements being : no sensation merely agreeable or unpleasant, though analysis may pleasant, others be unable to attribute with exactness their respective tones to the several ele- ments. Adopting this hypothesis, we should expect that the differences in the composition of the sensations already dealt with would lead to the result that, whereas some are preponderantly agreeable, others are rather disagreeable. And this, I believe, accords with the results of observation. by stimulating the hairy by Dr. Louis Robinson to be " distinctly distasteful ". The sensations produced by tickling the sole of the foot are commonly held, at least by older children and adults, to be dis- The tickling sensations excited orifices of the ear and the nostril are said This certainly degrees of their intensity. agreeable in all accords with my own self-observation. say from a shampooer's hand, is to me The lightest touch, distinctly " nasty," with an uncanny nastiness which I cannot hope to describe. An example is, of a distinctly agreeable sensation of tickling curiously enough, supplied closely who is by another hairless surface, namely the palm. A lady, analogous to the an excellent observer of children and endowed with sole, an exceptional memory of her early experiences, tells me that when a child she loved to have her hands tickled. Her feeling was a kind of " awful joy," the awfulness coming OCCASIONS AND CAUSES OF LAUGHTER 56 from a vague suspicion that the pastime was not quite Other preponderantly agreeable varieties appear proper. to be the sensations produced by the those parts which seem in a special provoking least, areas, e.g., lighter stimulation of way the armpits and suggested by the fact to be laughter- This is, at that younger children love to ribs. be tickled in these parts in moderation, and will ask to have the pastime renewed. An important characteristic of these feeling-tones moment we may be is their Although at a particular unsteadiness or changefulness. able to detect clearly a slight pre- ponderance of the agreeable or of the disagreeable aspect, is only for a moment. it An increase in the degree of pressure, a further prolongation of the stimulation, or even a slight mode of contact, may suffice to bring up and render prominent the opposed feeling-phase. We may now pass to the motor reactions, which are of more especial interest in the present connection. Overlookvariation in the ing the less conspicuous elements, such as the contraction rof the muscles ' movements tective or defensive reactions off or escaping (6) two easily number of pro- of the hairs,jwe find that there are distinguishable groups of : (a) a which are adapted to warding from the attack of the tickling stimulus movements expressive of pleasure ment, from the smile up to and rollicking enjoy- uproarious and prolonged laughter. .. 'The defensive movements are such as the following: and leg when the sole is tickled the retraction of the foot ; bending of the head to the shoulder when the neck tickled; the rendering of the which is tickler ; is attacked ; body concave on the the thrusting away of the wriggling and fencing with the arms tickled lying on his back. hand is side of the when a child These movements appear to MOTOR RESPONSE TO TICKLING 57 introduce important modifications into the sensations excited by Dr. Louis Robinson tickling. when of the foot tells tickled transforms us that the flexing an unpleasant sensation into a rather pleasant one. We may now pass to the point of chief importance for our present study, the conditions of the laughter-reaction during a process of tickling. This reaction is clearly the typical form of childish risibility. It has been already more or we cannot mark less clearly implied, that an off the laughter in this case as effect determined by any assignable differences in the characteristics of Dr. Leonard Hill, lying nerves. point response to "I am which provokes laughter tickling a is variety involving the stimulation of the deeper- special this Dr. Louis Robinson the sensations involved. thinks that the " me, writes, for who has There specially tested no difference in is deep and superficial tickling '' and ; again, sure that the most delicate superficial stimulation This certainly seems to agree can provoke laughter". with ordinary observation. voking forms of tickhng One of the most laughter-pro- consists of a series of pianissimo touches. Again, in speaking of ticklish areas of the skin, be careful not to restrict the laughter to any assignable region. there are areas which which titillation It is undeniable that more readily respond, that Darwin speaks ; and it they are tickled, ^ noticeable laughter, especially under the armpits "} Expression of the Emotions, p. 201. i -^ The armpits is of the anthropoid apes giving out reiterated sound, corresponding with our \ in the case of children generally, to the tickling provocation. perhaps will occur to most readers we must calls forth " a when This ~) I J OCCASIONS AND CAUSES OF LAUGHTER 58 fact, however, does not imply that the area of sensibility ^of under favoiirable con- his investigations, that \ laughter may \jiitions by be excited tickling any part of the body. Dr. L. Robinson in a letter explains to He with Dr. L. Hill here. finds that me if that he agrees a child On of doing so will suflSce to provoke laughter. we in a the other cannot speak of any part of the surface as one, the tickling of again, is mood, the tickling of any part or even the threat ticklish hand, is Dr. Leonard Hill assures me, as a result circumscribed. as which we Here will uniformly call forth laughter. of mental agencies shall see, the influence modifies the result. Now these facts suggest that even those varieties of tickling which produce a sensation having a well-marked disagreeable tone may excite the response of laughter. The tickling of the sole of the foot not only provokes laughter in an infant may at the it ; tends to do so, I believe, same time express in an adult, who his dislike of the sensation by a grimace. It seems impossible then to conclude that the laughter irrhich from tickling arises is a mere expression of the leasure-tone of a sensational process. posed that in agreeable, it all cases the sensations would still Even if we sup- were preponderantly be impossible to account for the energy of the reaction by the intensity of the sensuous enjoyment experienced. That we have not to do here merely with the shown by the efiect of when agreeable stimulation is laughs under, and said to enjoy, a process of titillation, ~the laughter is is accompanied by defensive movements. for example, a child is tickled Robinson, " fact that on back, its wriggle about, fencing with ing the attacks of its playmate . . . its it will, a child When, says Dr. arms and dodg- laughing all the time TICKLING MORE THAN STIMULATION with open mouth and teeth fully displayed suggests that the laughter is 59 This surely ". not merely the result of an agreeable sensation, but rather of a complex mental state, in which the agreeable and disagreeable elements appear to play only a secondary Nor again does it seem as of sensation rdle. if the mere transition from an agreeable to a disagreeable sensation, or the reverse process, would account for the laughter of tickling. A person highly sensitive to the effect of tickling can imitate the process quite by movements of his own fingers, and produce^ of varying feeling-tone without similar sensations Again we know experiencing the faintest impulse to laugh. when moments of that other experiences, such as scratching a sore place it is healing up, involve an alternation of agreeable and disagreeable feehng-tone, and yet are not provocative of laughter. These and other familiar facts point to the conclusion that the laughter excited by the sensory stimulation. It by the characteristics of tickling is not a net is effect of no doubt broadly determined the sensations. ) Intensely dis- agreeable ones would certainly not call forth the laughing But the determining conditions response. include, in ad- dition to a sequence of sensations, a higher psychical factor, namely, an apperceptive process or assignment of meaning to the sensations. This conclusion that the laughter-reaction occurs is borne out by the fact first of all (to give the — presumably in the month second half of this month. The presence of such a psychical factor is more strongly supported by the fact, already reearliest ferred date) in the second to, that the reaction does not occur in the months save when mental first three agencies co-operate; and that throughout the ticklish period an exactly similar process of titillative stimulation applied to the same area of the OCCASIDNS AND CAUSES OF LAUGHTER 60 skin will now produce laughter, now mood of the child.^ do fail to so, according to the varying That the interpretation of the sensation is the decisive element in eliciting laughter may, I think, be seen by a who simple experiment which any reader is ticklish The next time he happens carry out upon himself. may to have a subjective, creepy skin sensation, he will find that he can bring on either laughter or a very different state of feeling by adopting one of two ways of mentally envisaging what The merest suggestion of an invading parasite suffices, I believe, to set up a mental state which completely fis happening. I inhibits the impulse to laugh. i , '^We may now seek to assign with more precision the mental conditions which induce the mode of apperception f favourable to laughter. Beginning with which reside how much the " objective " I outset that ] unknown / t those we may observe apprehension of meaning has to do with the ''^funniness " of the experience, I characteristics, in the tickling experience itself, when we to be noticed at the is an element of is the This seems to have been recognised in the process. by Darwin when he ut are tickled there laid emphasis on the fact that the more ticklish parts are those rarely touched, at least on small areas, and, one may add, lightly.^ The familiar fact that wone cannot tickle oneself points to the same conclusion. person is who going on. tickle tries to do this knows too A much about what Dr. Ch. Richet observes, however, that one can oneself by means of a feather ; and he, as I think • In using the expression " ticklish period," I do not imply that tioklishness necessarily disappears after a certain period of maximal intensity. Like play, it probably persists in a certain number of persons as a sus- ceptibility to '^Op. cit., which the laws pp. 201, 202. of propriety leave The restriction I include the case of the sole of the foot. but little scope for exercise. have added enables us to CONDITIONS OF SUCCESSFUL TICKLING rightly, explains this apparent 61 exception by saying that in the attempt to tickle oneself with the finger, the double of the sensation, finger and the part inhibit the effect, whereas, when seems to tickled, the feather is interposed this obstacle is eliminated.^ Other facts, too, seem to point to the importance of an element of the unknown. a chUd by running the is over the skin. The common way fingers of tickling with discontinuous contact mode of tickling up the child's arm like Dr. L. Hill describes his in one case as running the fingers This evidently brings in an element of a mouse. uncertainty as well as of change. The local effect is increased when, as frequently happens, there are pauses between the - attacks of the fingers. The invasion territories, when is, of the skin-territory, like that of larger it would seem, likely to be more has an element_of unpredictableness. it certainty is, I believe, effective The un- sometimes increased by half-voluntary and in the velocity of the Whether the fact communicated by Dr. L. Robinson, that a child is more ticklish when dressed than when undressed, is explained by the increased obscurity variations in the tickling direction movements. of the process in the former case, I am not sure. worth noting, however, that some of the areas said most ticklish, the armpits and the neck, are inac- e.g., cessible to sight. It is to be I believe, too, that when a child gives himself up to the full excitement of tickling he makes no/ attempt to see what Now touches of is going on. unknown j origin at places not closely observable have something of a disturbjng^.character. touch ^Loc. is A always an attack, and has, so to speak, to be con- cit. explanation. Dr. L. Hill confirms the observatiou and ofiers the same OCCASIONS AND CAUSES OF LAUGHTER 62 This disturbing element I regard as an essential doned. element in the experience : goes along with the faintly it we have disagreeable element of sensation, which, as sumed, is commonly, if not always, more or Yet recognisable in the experience.^ it is as- clearly less certain that the disturbing effect (like the disagreeableness of the sensation) limited. is If the unknown bulks too largely and comes near the point of the alarming, the wholly counteracted. This effect of of the refusal of a child to be tickled he knows here ^consequently forms me too little of that what " f by a stranger: for Again, Dr. L. Hill tickling a child unexpectedly unseen quarter will not provoke laughter surprise would seem in is going to happen, and is disposed to fear, is laughter a part of the explanation is " : in- and from an the element of this ease to be too great. Possibly the comparative difficulty of making a child laugh when naked may be explained by the increased apprehensiveness The -^which goes with the defenceless state of nudity. familiar fact that the readiness to laugh increases with practice, points to the same need of a certain comfortable assurance lying safely below the slight superficial apprehensions All which are excited by the this stimuli. suggests, that in order to call forth the glad response of laughter, we must secure a certain adjustment of stimulus to mental attitude. The tickling must fit in with a particular mood, the state of mind which makes enjoyment of fun not only possible but welcome. Now it is clear that non-adjustment may arise, not only from the presence of unsuitable characteristics in the mode In this oonneotion an observation sent me by Dr. L. Hill is significant. little girl first responded with laughter to tickling under the armpits at the same age (two and a half years) as she first showed fear by crying on being put into the arms of a stranger. ' His THE TICKLISH MOOD of stimulation, but from 63 some antagonistic the force in The acceptance of the attack in good part depends on the preceding attitude. The dread- child's previous state of mind. fully serious, " on-the-alarm " attitude nursed by a stranger A when child ; suffering an effectual when > is true, he adds, of a child when from vaccination, or when mentally preoccupied is which he wants you seeking for sympathy, or with As Darwin puts to tell him. mind be that the child's "a pleasurable in mind which welcomes fun ' it,_; the great subjective condition of the laughter of tickling state of ' the attacker be his familiar tickler, father if and the same with some hurt for which he a story of the child bar to playful overtures. cross will not, says Dr. L. Hill, give genial response, even or nurse is i is condition," the in all its forms. Possibly the position of lying on the back, which, according to Dr. L. Robinson, makes children more responsive may, through a relaxation to tickling, of the muscles, favour this com- pliant attitude of self-abandonment to the tickling fingers. We may perhaps sum up the special conditions of the laughter-process under tickling as follows is tickled he pectancy. the exact thrown into an attitude is He is and as play. is In this case by attitude and happy and disposed is into one happens save this to take things lightly we may suppose developed mild form of fear into nothing ; | This element of un- or of the locality. of uneasiness and apprehensiveness the child a chUd expecting contact, but cannot be sure of moment certainty would in itself develop the when when : of indefinite ex- '< that the half-J each time swiftly dissolved a recognition of the unreality of the cause, of the fact that the touches are harmless and 1 come from the j good-natured mother or nurse by way of nition becomes clearer as the process there supervenes a new is play. This recog- continued, and so attitude, that of play, in which all OCCASIONS AND CAUSES OF LAUGHTER 64 serious interpretation is : 1 abandoned and the gentle attacks are accepted as fun or make-believe. of the experience of the If this is a correct analysis tickling which excites laughter, we, seem to have in it at a very early age elements which are to be found, in a more and more complex sorts from a serious and constra ined fully developed form, in the later mirth, namely, relief of attitude, a transition by the from a momentary apprehension induced presentation of the partially unknown, That s^nse of harmless make-believe. to ajoyous this is so is further when used to when you only As a German writer evidenced by the familiar fact that a child, the game, will begin to laugh vigorously threaten with the advancing fingers. observes, this is a clear case of Lipps' theory of annihilated expectation ; ^ only he omits to note that the laughter depends, not on the mere fact of annihilation, but on the peculiar conditions of in this case, involving a slight shock at the it approach of something partially unknown to a specially sensitive region of the organism, of the apprehension and the instant correction by a recognition of its harmlessness. Much the same kind of stimulative process seems to be present in the other and allied cases of reflex or quasi-reflex It is well laughter. known that certain sense-stimuli excite sensations of a disagreeable though acute, are not violent, character, but which which,, such as the application of a cold douche, are apt to provoke laughter. German authority just quoted, the eflect depends here, too, on variation in respect of the intensity stimulation. He found further, in According to the and the locality of the carrying out psychological experiments, that whereas the introduction of a stronger stimulus than was expected ' Bd. G. Heymans, Zeitschrift xi., ss. 31 ff. fil/r is apt to excite apprehension in die Psychol, und die Physiol, der Simme^ PROCESSES SIMILAR TO TICKLING 65 the subject, that of a weaker stimulus will excite laughter.^ Here, too, we seem to have a sensational reflex in present a distinctly mental element, viz., a moment which is of mild shock and apprehension at the sudden coming of something disagreeable and partially moment another unknown, instantly followed by of dissolution of shock in a pleasurable recognition of the harmlessness of the assault. 2. It Laughter may arise manner is not, however, always of this reflex form. without sensory stimulation in an '' automatic"! as the result of a cerebral rather than of a peripheral] process. This is illustrated by the seemingly causeless laughter which breaks out in certain abnormal states and j uncanny " aspect for the sane observer. ] A wellknown example of this is the eff'ect of the action on the has an " brain centres of laughing gas and other substances. " automatisms experience, as " occur, when la person laughs during emotional tension. I propose to uncaused reactions as nervous A common is a state of high speak of such seemingly laughter.^ and simple variety of this nervous laughter the spasmodic outburst that often succeeds a shock of fear. a Such however, within the limits of normal A woman child will laugh after being frightened by a dog often breaks out into a nervous laugh after a short but distinctly shaking experience of fear, e.g., in a carriage behind a runaway horse, or in a boat which has nearly capsized. And it does not seem that such laughter is pre- ceded by a perception of the absurdity of the fear, or of any similar mode of consciousness ; it looks like a kind of physiological reaction after the fear. ' Heymane, loc. cit. "The abnormal foims of automatic laughter, including the effects of cit., 2toe partie, chap, xv., and stimulants, are dealt with by Kaulin, op. 3*me partie. 5 , OCCASldNS AND CAUSES OF LAUGHTER 66 The same thing / will show itself in circumstances which give rise to a prolonged mental attitude, involving a feeling / of apprehensiveness and of Thus a shy man, constraint. I making ! his first essay as a public speaker, will sometimes betray his nervousness on the platform by weird i by awkward explosions of laughter as well as I I have noted the same thing in strangers to spoken at a table d'hSte The way abroad. whom in little gestures. I which have little spasms of laughter are apt to intrude themselves into situations which, attention, bring is and by making us the further illustrated in behaviour of the when summoned girls object of others' special an awkward consciousness of insecurity, to an interview many boys with the Head,' in the laughter which often follows the going up to take a prize before The strong tendency a large to laugh assembly^ and the like. which many persons ex- perience during a solemn ceremony, say a church service, may sometimes jenforced illustrate attitude, difficult (length of time, same the to effect. When an maintain for the required brings on the impulse, this will gather /strength from the growth of a feeling of apprehension west we should not be equal to the test imposed. r~ Another laughter, , is variety, coming under the head of nervous the sudden outburst which now and again occurs in a state of great emotional strain, having a dis- when it includes someThe news of the death of .'Ian acquaintance has been known to excite a paroxysm of laughter] in a company of young persons from nineteen to twenty-four years of age.^ One may assume here that the l^tinctly painful character, especially ' thing in the nature of a shock. I 1 1 Given in the returna to Stanley Hall's inquiries. This explosion of laughter on receiving sad news occurs in cases of cerebral disorder. See Dugas, op. eit., p. 16. FORMS OF NERVOUS LAUGHTER outbreak is 67 not the direct result of the news, but depends the shock, with the abnormal cerebral tension on the effect of which this involves. ( /' A like spasmodic outburst of laughter occasionally occurs during a more prolonged state of painful emotional excitement. It sometimes intrudes itself into a bout of physical Lange speaks of a young man who, when treated ulceration of the tongue by a very painful caustic, suffering. for regularly broke out into violent laughter reached its Many maximum.^ when the pain when thrown into persons a prolonged state of grief, accompanied by weeping, exhibit a tendency to break out into laughter towards the end of the Shakespeare fit. tendency when he makes illustrates this Titus Andronicus, whose hand has been cut question why off, answer the he laughed with the exclamation : " Why I have not another tear to shed".^ Can we common element find a of nervous or apparently to have in which is in these different forms'] unmotived laughter ? We appear r them a preceding state of eonsciousnessj exceptionally intense and concentrated. ,'The of all situation of fear, of constraint on being made the others' unusual observation, of suddenly hearing deep import for which the mind emotional agitation, these all is object of news of not prepared, of prolonged involve an intensification of the psycho-physical processes which immediately condition our states of consciousness. ^ Quoted by Dugas, op. cit., Looking at these intensified p. 12. Shakespeare makes Lady Macbeth perpetrate a pun in a moment of intense excitement when Macbeth's hesitation goads her into a resolve to ^ carry out the murder herself " I'll For Did he mean it — must seem to illustrate to lapse for a brief : gild the faces of the by moment grooms withal their guilt ". this the way into laughter ? in which emotional strain tends OCCASIONS AND CAUSES OF LAUGHTER 68 forms of consciousness more we closely, observe that ttey ' include something in the nature of psychical pressure, of Ithe presence of forces which make for disorder, whereas the This special strain i^tuation calls for severe self-control^' thrown on the voUtional process is illustrated in the demand for closer observation and calm reflection during a fit of fear, or other emotional excitement, which tends to bring about a state of wild movement and of disorderly : is, which attitude It makes the it is is is eminently unstable, and tends, so to break down of partially at least, moment, to if itself; and _^e_demand will CCTtainlyLjepUapse, seems, though only for a Hence the readiness grow_Jees Jmperative. with which such a means of temporary undoubtedly supplies It is laughter remains to determine the character of this sudden a sudden collapse, it is more precisely. clearly to be distinguished gradual breakdown due to J relief as moment. seized at the relaxation of the strain of attention ! and one which As to maintain for a long period. diflficult such,! the attitude say, to an the essential pre-condition of the laughter. attitude a highly artificial one, exceedingly It ideas. I believe, \the specially severe strain belonging to such " mehtal fatigue " As from the and nervous The psycho-physical energy concentrated for is by no means used up, but has to find some way of escape. Here, no doubt, we seem to come across Mr. Spencer's ingenious idea exhaustion. the special purpose of meeting the strain that laughter is an escape of nervous energy which_has suddenly been set free. It is no less evident that the redundant energy follows the direction of the risible muscles because no other commanding object for the attention presents itself at the moment. The innervation not a mere diversion of attention: energies which for the maintenance of these muscles it is is a d ispersion of the of attention ought to LAUGHTER AS RELIEF be concentrated. \_We are never waking 69 during our less attentive than at the moment of laughter. life Yet even ,' here, I think, the theory of a convenient waste-pipe arrange- ment There not adequate. is take I is, in the case it, which process would a relief of sur-charged nerve-centres, seem to be better described by the figure of a safety- valve_ arrangenient. It is not difficult to why surmise the liberated energy should follow this particular nervous route. There is no doubt that the motor apparatus, by the disturbances of which such interruptions of the smooth flow of respira- all tion are brought about, is very readily acted on by emotional showing Altered respiration, agencies. vocalisation, one of the is of the first signs of emotional agitation ; and in altered itself commonly recognised this effect has been ren- dered more clear and precise by recent experiments. We should expect, then, that the collapse of strained attitudes, with the great change in feeling-tone which this must carry with it, would deeply however, more than in general an effect sion, an affect the respiration. this. Severe We know, efforts of attention are accompanied by a partial checking of respiration, which seems to be alluded effort " de longue haleine termination of such an effort Now, though sigh of rehef. is the to in the ". On French expres- the other hand, the apt to be announced by the movements of laughter are not the same as those of sighing, they resemble the latter in their initial stage, that of deepened inspiration. not conclude, then, that laughter another mode of physiological mental strain laughter in its ? And relief is likely to May we occur as from the attitude of supposing, as seems certain, that moderate degrees, by bringing a new brisk- ness into the circulation, relieves the congested capillaries of the brain, may we not go farther and say that nature has OCCASIONS AND CAUSES OF LAUGHTER 70 probably come to our aid by connecting with the mental upheavals and the cruel strains here referred to, which pretty certainly involve a risky condition of the cerebral system of capillaries, a mode of muscular reaction peculiarly well fitted to bring the needed relief More special conditions laughter in certain may Darwin suggests that the rapid I have observed above, alternation of crying " and may laughing which occur among hysterical patients favoured by is favour the movements of As cases. which ? be the close similarity of the spasmodic move- In other words, the motor centres engaged, when ments "} swing of one mode of in the full to the other and action, may readily pass This would help partially similar action. to account for the short outbursts of laughter during a prolonged state of painful agitation, and to explain the fact noted by no cause so readily disposes us Descartes, that to laughter as a feeling of sadness.^ Our theory plainly requires that these sudden breakdowns or relaxations of strained mental attitudes should, even when only momentary interruptions, be accompanied by an agreeable sense of best qualifies I believe that those relief. them to judge dead weight of the fear, the whose experience will say that this poignancy of the The and the is so. grief, constraining eifect of the situation of gene, seem to yield at the moment when the " awful laugh " is snatched at. This comforting sense of a lightened load, though in part the direct result of a cessation of cerebral strain, would, as we have seen, pretty certainly derive added volume from the returning sense-reports telling of the ameliorated condition of the bodily organs. 3. We have considered two of the pp. 163, 208. ^ Op. ^ See Les Passions de I'dme, cit., varieties of laughter 26iiie partie, art. 25. LAUGHTER OF JOY which lie may now 71 outside the region of our everyday mirth. pass into this region, and inquire, of first all, We into the causes of those varieties which come under the head of joyous laughter. Here we shall best begin may be early form which by touching on the simple and good spirits^ Darwin, as has been mentioned, rightly regards the full called the overflow of reaction of the laugh_ as the universal expression good species of spirits, have now to examine the mode of production of We this simple type. It by our of a joyous, state, of mind. _^ is important to note that not bring on laughter. all experiences of pleasure do There are quiet enjoyments of a soothing character which are far from generating the powerful impulse rib. To lie needed for the movements of diaphragm and on a summer day in a hammock indulge in the sweets of dolce far niente of the tickling imp. occasioned by a in a wood and to be out of reach States of enjojmient, too, which, though measure of exciting, require a is close attention, such as those glorious sunset, or stirring music, do not start the spasmodic contractions of muscle. The enjoyment that moves us to laughter, mast, it is amount ,to_,gladness or joy. And this means, first "^ of all, that the pleasurable consciousness must come in the . evident, form of a large ample, filling soul accession, and, for a and body. moment As the expression at least, be " good spirits " suggests, the organic processes during such states of joyous- As a part of this we have the characteristic gladsome mind, the movement of ness are voluminous and well marked. heightened tide of vital activity, motor expression of the the limbs, the shouting and the laughing. Not all risings of the vital tide, however, produce laughter. Gentle and gradual augmentations of the sense of well-being OCCASIONS AND CAUSES OF LAUGHTER 72 and happiness hardly tend to stir the muscles concerned. The joyous outburst marks a svdden accession of ha^py consciousness. It has something of the /'violent flooding of the spirit i character of a and the corresponding bodily conduits. There is a negative condition, also, to which it may not f,be superfluous to allude. The flood-like rise of the happy mood which is to produce laughter must not be accompanied by any further demand on the attention. A girl reading a first love letter from the man whom her heart has chosen will be glad, and will grow gladder by leaps and bounds. But the fulness of laughter will not come while unread words still claim the eye. The laughter of joy sets of conditions. is Of most noticeable, I think, these the first is release.from externa,l restraint. The wild jubilant gladness of boys as they rush out of school, provided that the requisite reserve fund of animal example of to be a under two the situation of spirits, is they have the stock The explosion seems here the constraint and the didness this sort of laughter. way of throwing of the classroom, off and getting a deep breath of the delicious So far as the outflow of good thus connected with an escape from a serious and sense of restored liberty. spirits is difficult attitude mind and body —strenuous in work — ijb application of the energies of is plainly analogous to the nervous laughter already considered. But the swift accession of joy may come in another way, from the sudden transformation of one's world, from the some good thing which is at once unexpected and big enough to lift us to a higher level of happiness. arrival of With children and savages the sight of a toy sometimes enough to is will so fill effect this. new and pretty The charming bauble sense and soul that the joy of living leaps to a HOW JOYOUS LAUGHTER ARISES 73 higher plane and bursts into a peal of mirth. The unexpected sound of the father's voice at the end of a long day devoted we to the things of the nursery was, are told, enough to evoke a shout of laughter in a small American boy back to the little another and a glorious world. We sufficed to bring : it consciousness fellow's older folk have, for the greater part, lost the capacity of simply greeting delightful things in this way, a greeting in which there either of their may meet meaning or no thought is of their interest for us. Yet we the unexpected coming of friends with something of the child's simplicity of attitude. on suddenly seeing a friend in a It is hard not to smile crowded London street: hard to keep the smile from swelling into a laugh, friend has been supposed at the be many Some miles away. child's capacity of moment if the of encounter to may of us, indeed, retain the laughing with a joyous wonder at a brilliant explosion of fireworks. It remains to account for the persistent of laughter fit whicii frequenfly accdinpahies a prolonged gladness. Does not the fact that the child and the natural man, when taken with the mood of mirth, go on venting their good renewed peals teU against our theory that the outburst is caused by an accession of joy ? spirits in In order to answer this we must look a_little more The language closely at this so-called persistent laughter. of observers of unsophisticated human nature sadly want- is ing in precision here. When, travellers that savages are always laughing, we are not to take the statement literally. It know that we certain means only what it means when a mother that her rogue of a boy is we for example, are told tells for ever laughing her visitor and shouting that under certain favourable conditions the laughing comes readily and persists longer by than usual. fit In a lasting OCCASIONS AND CAUSES OF LAUGHTER 74 mood we of jollity need very are little to call all strongly inclined- to, laiighaJ^nd forth a long outbursts This pretematurally large output of laughter during a pro- onged state of high spirits finds its explanation in part in a i'dnd of physiological inertia, the tendency ing movements when once these are started. iteration of laughter in a child is movements way go on repeat- The protracted closely analogous to that of his half -unconscious singing to himself. of to This tendency perpetuate themselves in a mechanical to probably accounts for the lengthening of the single outburst in the case of a child violently seized with mirth. As mothers know, this reduction of laughter to a mechanical iteration of movement is apt to continue beyond the limits fatigue of " hiccup and to bring on such unpleasant It is probable, too, that the ". eflPeets as tendency during a prolonged state of mirth to recommence laughing after a short pause is referrible to a like cause : the physiological movements being once set going, the explosive fit tends to renew itself. Discounting this effect of physiological inertia, we seem springs of the to find that in these laughter retains its tively short process the laughing is periods of prolonged high spirits fundamental character as a compara- which occurs intermittently. not merely a trick played off bodily mechanism, but holds a of a happy consciousness, it germ has its of mind Where by the in the shape large and significant pauses. If this is so, it seems reasonable to suppose that the mental antecedent which brings on some new explosion is analogous to the sense of for " the single joyous peal. strong disposition to laugh sudden glory " which accounts- Owing t_o the exceptionally during such a period, the antecedent feeling need not be a powerful one, a very slight PROLONGED momentary PITS OF MIRTH 75 increase of the joyous tone suflScing to give a fresh start to the muscles. not It is slight No difficult to suggest possible sources of such sudden augmentations of the happy feeling-tone. prolonged state of consciousness of one uniform colour ; is, strictly speaking, in the boisterous merriment of an old-fashioned dinner-party there were alternations of tone, moments following others of comparative dulness. The course of the bodily sensations in these prolonged brilliant states of joy is in itself a series of changes, involving a sequence of exaltations upon relative depressions of the " vital sense The course ". and to ear in such a festive of the presentations to eye mood must be fluctuations in respect of their action subject to like upon the feeling-tone ; and the same applies to the flow of ideas which can find a place in the mind when thus affected. Lastly, it must not be forgotten that the movements of attention would of themselves always secure a certain ment. We all know how, when we new and unexpected rise and happiness, the mind digression returns to the delightful theme, result of this return, a new wave fall are gladdened of enjoy- by some after a short and how, as a of joyous feeling seems to inundate the spirit. There seems much, then, to be said for the hypothesis that all varieties of joyous laughter (when not reduced to a mechanical form) are excited by soraething in the nature Where the by a previous mood of of a sudden accession of pleasurable consciousness. laugh is a new thing, unprepared for hilarity, this rise of the spirits will, as we shall see later, probably involve a transition from a mental state which was relatively depressed. mood prolongs the movements itself, all Where, on the other hand, a joyoua that seems needed for re-exciting of laughter (provided that the muscular OCCASIONS AND CAUSES OF LAUGHTER 76 Energies are equal to the explosion) / \ the sudden increase is an appreciable quantity of the pleasurable tone of the by jconsciousness. We may further illustrate and verify this generalisation respecting the causes of joyous laughter by an examination of some of the more familiar circumstances in which this wont is " Here we to occur. early the and shall of course be dealing mind. unsophisticated with Properly drilled grown-ups " but rarely exhibit the phenomenon in its full intensity. matter of It is a (a) laughter common observation that joyous a frequent concomitant of the play-attitude, is We especially at its first resumption. liberated from school. have already found "happy in the laughter of illustrated this boys'' just Here the conditions indicated, a relief from restraint and a sudden expansion of joyous are patent to activity, all. Closely related to this situation of released bodily energies is that of relieved lesson — mental restraint. only the teacher if manageable person —the child is During a nursery a fond mother or other is apt to try modes of escape from the irksomeness by diverting the by introducing "funny" bold By little manoeuvre is topics; talk, and especially and the execution of the frequently announced by a laugh. such familiar infantile artifices the pressure is lightened moment, and the laugh announces a moment's escape into the delicious world of fun and make-believe. for a The impulse to be gay and to through the enjoyment of play. turn may often grow exceedingly laugh runs, moreover, No doubt this in serious, as when its the illness of dolly, or the thrilling horrors of a bear's cave, or of an attack by scalping Indians, are realistically lived out. Yet we must remember that this playful tampering with LAUGHTER IN the serious, even on its PLAY AND TEASING genuine The momentary enjoyment. young nerves, because the side, terror thrill of it, part of the a is desired is when 77 by healthy the certainty of the nothingness lies securely within mental reach, A delicious excitement. fuller is examination of the relation of laughter to play belongs to a later stage of our inquiry. Another situation which (b) is that j^ By being^^teased. " is ^los^ly related teasing " is them an element those varieties of attack which have in of pretence, and .dp not cross the boundary As thus intention to annoy. a good deal of child's play. Kne, of serious defined, teasing enters into Tickling is clearly only a special modification of the teasing impulse. the earliest nursery play, the there is iQ._pla.j^,. here understood game In some of of bo-peep, for instance, an element of teasing in the pretence to alarm by a feigned disappearance, as also in the shock of the sudden The reappearance. to pinch but it is him teaaer_Qf-a._chiM, whether he threatens or to snatch at his toy, carries out a a make-believe menace — a thing menace to be a wee moment, yet so li^t and passing afraid of for just a ; bit as- to bring instantly the delightful rebound^ of disillusion, if On only the subject keeps good tempered. the teaser's prompted by no serious desire to torment, by no motive more serious than side (when it remains pure teasing) the half -scientific curiosity to see experiment will take The explosions of a it is how the subject of the it. good-humoured subject under such gentle teasing are closely analogous to those of a tickled child : they spring from a sudden sense of relief, of elastic rebound, after repression. The svdft alternations of moments of nascent fear and of joyous recognition of the fun of the thing are eminently fitted to supply the conditions of a sudden rising of the spirits. The child that likes to be OCCASIONS AND CAUSES OF LAUGHTER 78 —in teased to pay the proper for these way of course momentary — is perfectly willing by the momentary delights trepidations. On the side of the teaser, the situation favourable to outbreaks of hilarity. is also highly If successful, he reaps the joy of the superior person, and glories in the cleverness of his experiments. The swellings power of the sense of glory " which a philosopher places at the base of ment of the laughable ; as " sudden all enjoy- he watches his victim give just those experiences of and, alas, in the less kindly these risings of the pleasurable consciousness may continue and even increase after the teasing has ceased to be play and becomes indistinguishable from the behaviour of a tor- mentor. ^ Much the same kind of remark applies to practical jokwhen it is not weighted with the serious purposes (c) ing, which, of punishment and moral correction, is of this playful attack of the tickler merely an expansion and the teaser. When the victim reaches the moral height of being able to enjoy the performance, his enjoyment comes under the head of dissolved apprehension, or disillusion after taking things too seriously. By far the larger share of the pleasure of the practical joke certainly falls, however, to the perpetrator, who in this case, too, realises a " sudden glory," an increased sense of power. (d) Once more, laughter all varieties of mental. and the is a common accompaniment contest or sharp encounter, both physical When, of and as in the case of the savage, the schoolboy civilised soldier, it breaks out after bodily fight, it 1 Oo-operative teasing, when it methodically " naga " a boy because he happens, for example, to take the unfashionable side in some political dispute, making his school-life a, torment, had with all deference to apologetic headmasters, be it said better change its name. — — LAUGHTER IN CONTESTS 79 haa some of the characteristics of nervous laughter. It is a <!oncomitant of a sudden remission of physical and mental strain, of a dissolution of the attitude of the feeling of relief exultation at the A cases, since it is " In most protection. reinforced is self- by that of contemptuous first taste of victory. prolonged combat, if not too unequal, ofiers on both sides frequent openings for these reliefs of upspringings of the exultant mood. ring apprehensive they laugh that win," A good tension and fighter in the now and again to by a sweet smile. This mental contests. Nothing is more I understand, supposed to be able is, relieve the grimness of the situation is certainly true of all way remarkable in the study of popular laughter than the in which of social life which involve sharp contest and crossing of These will be illustrated more fully by-and-by. wits. is seems to penetrate those relations and dealings it enough here, to allude to the enormous influence tests between the sexes on the development of wit and a lively sense of the ludicrous. (e) As a last group ->: of situations favourable to the ex- perience of joyous expansion we have those in unusual degree of solemnity is forced upon already been touched on. It It of con- This has of the conviviality. festive board And in the In our time social days when society was was doubtless the focus of the mirthful spirit. here. play-mood find its natural dwelling-place in scenes of gaiety and gay the which, an Extremes seem to meet might be expected that an impulse born would us. it of the activity seems almost more natural to associate a laugh with a funeral ceremony than with a dinner-party. solemn things is Yet the art of extracting fun from not of to-day, as may be seen by a glance at the jokes of the church architect and the play writer of the Middle Ages. In such bizarre intrusions of the droll OCCASIONS AND CAUSES OP LAUGHTER 80 into the of domain of the solemn we seem an irrepressible gladness of which threaten to strangle Whether the invasion to find the struggling; spirit against .the ..honds. it. of the territory of the solemn by the jocose results in a barely mastered impulse to laugh, The depends on variable conditions. frivolous mind, hardly touched by the gravity of the occasion, wUl, no^qubt, often be the first welcome the delivering hand. to want occasion shows of genuine emotion. cident, be moved such as the mal an The sincerest he have the_ requisite to laughter by some grotesque Jn- b, propos remark of a garrulous child. For the point of our theory an escape from pressure such a it is if worshipper in a church may, sensibility, Yet a tendency to laugh on a solemn error to suppose that ; is that laughter in such cases is and the man who feels deeply at moment may experience an emotional pressure which equals, if it does not exceed, that of the external constraint which the non-reverent is " worshipper " is experiencing. It true, of course, that the deeper the feeling the greater the inertia that will have to be overcome before the laughing for itself. Yet here, again, we must remember that emotional temperaments vary, and that with some a genuine awe and even an intense grief may yield now and again for a moment to the challenge of the laugh- impulse can able when The last make way its note catches the ear. remarks suggest that in any attempt to deal with the conditions favourable to laughter reference should be made to those physiological characteristics which are supposed to determine the particular temperament of a his special bent, say, towards jollity man : on the one hand, or towards a brooding melancholy on the other. Our fore- had pretty definite ideas about the sort of bodily constitution which was the foundation of the laughterfathers LAUGHTER ON SOLEMN OCCASIONS A loving temper. Falstaff, was, and is, full "habit" tending to obesity, as in I believe, popularly supposed to be a mainstay of the laughing grow fat " 81 may imply a The saying "Laugh and spirit. vague apprehension of this relation, as well as a recognition of the benefits of laughter. Yet the happy endowment is unmakes for " good spirits " are precise organic substrate of this known. Health and all that no doubt favourable to a voluble laughter of the elemental On kind. the other hand, as we shall see, the laughing capacity frequently co-exists with physiological conditions of quite another kind. Men and with a strong bent habit, are to be found of a lean to grave reflection, who are nevertheless able, not merely to provoke laughter from others, like the "melancholy Jaques," but themselves to contribute a sonorous laughter to the higher intellectual domains of mirth. laugh may have its It is conceivable that the disposition to own restricted physiological conditions in a special instability of the again may mechanism concerned. This presumably include some as yet undefinable property of the nerve-centres which favours rapid change in the mode of tension of brain activity, and those sudden collapses which seem to be the immediate physiological antecedent of the motor discharge in laughter. 82 CHAPTER IV. VARIETIES OP THE LAUGHABLE. In the preceding chapter we have examined those early and elementary forms of laughter which arise from the action of such causes as tickling, the attitude of play, sudden uplifting in a feeling of joy. and the These do not, evident, imply the existence of that specific faculty we is call the perception of the laughable in things, or what commonly spoken We of as the sense of the ludicrous. have now to inquire into the mode of operation of more intellectual cause of possible, The it is which laughter, and to connect this it, if with that of the simpler processes of excitation. peculiarity in this case is that there is not only an external excitant, such as tickling fingers, but an object of the laughter. A tickled child laughs because of the tickling, but not at this as an object. The same deal of the laughter of play: it is sents something funny, or rupted by a moment's when critical only is true of a good when play repre- the play-iUusion is inter- glance at the poverty of the doll or other plaything, that it gives rise to a proper enjoy- ment of the laughable ; and a like remark holds good of the laughter which springs out of a relief of tension and a sudden transition from grave to gay. of educated men and women we see an In the laughter intellectual element, the perception of a laughable quality in an object, and the justification of the action , by a reference to this. The ex- amination of this intellectual type of laughter will bring LAUGHTER AND us to what is ITS OBJECTS 83 undoubtedly at once the most interesting and the most difficult problem in our study. The of the j objective reference in laughter implied in speaking " laughable " may be illustrated by a glance at the contemptuous laughter of the victor surveying his prostrate The boy of ten who danced and screamed and laughed had killed his playmate in a street fight ^ was hardly possessed with what we call a sense of the comicality of things. The laughter, though directed at something, had foe. after he not, in the complete sense of the expression, The its object. boy himself would not have laughed at the spectacle at another time, but viewed And it with quite different feelings. the object would not have presented to others itself as laughable who chanced to see it. In other words, the laughter was not caused by a mere contemplation of an object, but was conditioned by a particular relation between the laugher and this object. To say thing is that a thing This universality. spectacle, e.g., is laughable, just as to say that a is an element of permanence and of eatable, implies true even that of a drunken able to me," since he when man means that a person says about a walking, a general rule that the sight of such it is laughter. than It is laugh- movements excites But the word laughable clearly connotes more which embraces others as well as this, a universality A the individual. supposed to be thing fitted to is only rightly so called and interested laughable and common in when it is provoke men's laughter in general. Language has been buUt up by men common forms all similar living the social of experience, and the life, word words undoubtedly refer to such forms. 'Given by Stanley Hall in the etc., " for his experience at least already quoted. article, "The Psychology of Tickling," VARIETIES OF THE LAUGHABLE 84 common forms of Much These experience may be conceived of what is called laughable by a schoolboy, by a savage, or even by an educated Englishman, is made to appear so by the special habits and correlated modes of thought ofJbis community or his class. This clearly narrowly or widely. of holds good of laughter at strange forms of dress, language and the Its like. " universality " In dealing with the laughable allude to among the shall have constantly to relativity to particular customs its It will be a part of our >,tions. thus strictly conditioned. is we common and expecta- problem to disengage from excitants of laughter what seems to possess a truly universal character. In speaking of an object of laughter as having universal we do potency, not imply that always excite the outburst. that a man will it will, as a matter of fact, The expression means only be ready to laugh at it, provided that he has certain requisite perceptions with the correlated emotional susceptibilities, and that nothing interferes with the working of these. Hence we shall have to speak of the laughable as answering to a tendency only, and to note the 'i^drcumstances which are apt to counteract it. It is obvious, for example, that the limitations of class-custom, so far as they make laughter relative, wiU render a what is "objectively" laughable in his own man blind to In and accidental standards, stages in the growth of intellicustoms. truth, the adoption of such relative which marks all the earlier gence and of aesthetic sentiment, clear recognition of what is is the great obstacle to a laughable in a wider and more strictly universal sense. when we are considering the question of fact, " What men reaUy laugh at ? " it is important to bear in mind Again, do that the tendency to laugh may, on the one hand, be reinforced by a favourable psycho-physical condition at the UNIVERSAL ELEMENT LAUGHTER IN 85 moment, as well as by previously formed tendencies to apperceive things on their laughable side while, on the other ; hand, it may checked and be wholly counteracted by unfavourable conditions, such as a sad mood, or an acquired habit of looking at those aspects of things which excite f eehngs antagonistic to laughter. these forces, we find, ! Owing to the action man may fail not only that one of to moves another to many cases in which two discern the laughable in an object which a hearty outburst, but that in men join in laughing at something they by the same laughable may not be touched feature or aspect of the presentation. Nothing, indeed, has more of that appearance of caprice which comes from the influence of uncertain subjective men, even of those who have factors than the laughter of a normal sense of the ludicrous. A word more is The needed on the language here used. terms laughable and ludicrous may be employed interchange- At ably up to a certain point without risk of confusion. the same time it is well to note that the second a stricter sense than the to denote particularly first. what is The term is used in ludicrous seems not only an universal object of laughter, but an object of that more intellectual kind of laughter which implies a clear perception of relations. In everyday language we should speak of incidents and stories, of which the fim is obvious and broad, as " laughable " rather " than as on an ludicrous intellectual ". Closely connected with this emphasis element in the meaning of the term ludicrous, is its tendency to take to mark off" what we on an ideal connotatioli, deem to be worthy of laughter. Here, as in the case of other objects of an aesthetic sentiment, there is a half -disguised reference to the regulative principles of art. This control by an aesthetic principle or standard is more VARFETIES OF THE LAUGHABLE 86 by the way, clearly indicated in the use of " comic," a word, which is used more freely in some European languages than A in our own. comic spectacle means, for one language with precision, a presentation which which comes up who is uses choice, and would be to the requirements of art, excellent material for comedy. Our problem may now be defined objects of our ordinary common men tend as an analysis of the perception and imagination which to laugh at and This inductive inquiry into facts to describe as laughable. implied above, a as is, necessary preliminary to a discussion of the nature of the " ludicrous " or " comic " as an ideal or regulative conception. way with some In order to find our degree of certainty to the general characteristics of laughable things, do well to take at least a rapid men's laughter as reflected in popular rire," " comic songs as also in repasts of " we and amusing "contes jests, No pow literature in general what may be called the standing dishes fun served up in the circus and other where they laugh. should survey of the objects of ; in the places assemblage of facts of this kind adequate for scientific purposes has, so far as I know, yet been made so that must ; ^ it suffice here to indicate some of the leading groups of laughable objects which a brief inspection of the field discloses. It may be assumed as a matter of common that this field of laughable objects will recognition in the lie main human life. It is the and thoughts of men which yield within the limits of the spectacle of situations, appearances At the same to laughter the larger part of its harvest. time allusion will be made now and again to provocatives ' Valuable beginnings may be found here and there for example, in the entertaining volume of a French comedian, Le Rire, par (B. C.) Coquelin, cadet. ; ODDITIES 87 lying outside these limits, which are certainly found in simple examples of the laughable. In attempting to form these groups one must give a what has been warning. It is implied in the things we laugh at have in many said above, that perhaps in most, cases, more than one distinguishably amusing facet. In trjring to classify them, therefore, we must be guided by what seems the most massive and impressive feature; and, as already suggested, it is not always easy to say what really main determinant the is of our laughter. Among the things which are commonly said to be we find many objects d istinguis hed by novelty. A (1) laughable ^esentation whidi widely from those of the ordinary differs type, and seen, when agceeablfuaad^rf laughter and may, as we have so has a stimulating_freshness, .-Suffidsat,. force, escitfi^-io by suddenly relieving.the^duLnessof_ the common oft-repeated, and raising the feeling-tone of the observer The proper to the level of joyous excitement. when recognised laughable aspect only appears effect of a experience begins to be organised and the mind of the spectator to perceive, dimly at least, a certain contrariety in the new presentation to the usual run of his perceptual experience, other words, the in oddity. Much see, of savages, at A a aspect of " out-of-the-wayness of the laughter of children, and, as what is called " funny roll " or shall " illustrates this. child will_Jaugh_vigffl'ously, for example, new and odd-sounding word, we on first hearing or on jrst_seeing a donkey on his back, a HighlandfiXLJn-^MsJdltjJiis^ister's^ hair In some of these curIingz|}.aperSj. and the like. done up in cases, at least, the appreciation of singular is aided novel impression. by the new object as odd or the agreeably lively character of the This two strikingly similar is true also of the amusing effect of faces seen together ; for here the look 88 VARIETIES OP THE LAUGHABLE of oddity, which explained by the circumstance that our is ordinary experience is of dissimilarity between faces, supported by the stimulative force of the likeness This expansive may come feeling The human. effect of the new and is itself. the odd on our too from the perception of things sub- sight of a crab walking sideways, of an oddly-marked dog, of an eddy of leaves in autumn, and so forth will excite laughter in a child. A glance at the language employed in describing laugh- able objects suggests the large scope of the odd. " whimsical tastes, the and the " '' and the " fantastic " in extravagant " in the region of sentiment seem to refer directly to what like the point of an amusing remoteness from This enjoyable appreciation of the odd obvious Thus the the realm of ideas and way subject to the life's is is —these peculiar, to common way. in a particularly condition of relativity. begin with, the amusing aspect is To determined by, and so manner of the hour so that, as the word " antic " shows, the old-fashioned begins to take on an amusing aspect as soon as it is so far displaced by a strictly relative to the new custom as to be ; an out-of-the-way thing. Again, as already hinted, the odd the custom of a locality or a man alike are wont class. to laugh at actions of a foreign people ; much and is A always relative to savage and a civilised in the appearance and this because of its sharp contrast to the customary forms of their experience. Jhg^ chief coun teractive to be noted here is the im pulse to distrust and fear the new and unfamiliar. A child may often be noticed oscillating between laughter and fear as some new strange sight bursts upon him. A savage must feel himself secure before he can freely indulge in laughter at all the odd belongings and doings of the white man. (2) A special variety of the singular or exceptional which BODILY DEFORMITIES is fitted, 89 within certain limits, to excite laughter or deviation from the tygical form. is deformitji^ It is certain that, for the unsophisticated palate of the child and the savage, Jbodil^ deformity is a large source of mirth. hunchback, the cripple, the man with The dwarf, thel the big nose, and the hke have been great entertainers of youth. The tendency to regard such deviations from type as amusing extends, as we know, to our perceptions of animals and of plants. A limping quadruped or a tree with a wen-like excrescence seems to reflect a laughable aspect. human deformity and to share in its obj ect may sometimes enter- Even a lifeless tain us with its appearance of deformity. up aflects us in the same way back view of a rickety as a tilted man on cart, as it A house shored crutches, and the wobbles down a may gladden the eye much as the sight of a heavy, human figure attempting to run. While we may view the laughable aspect of bodily de^ street, ill-balanced formity as an example of the odd or deviation from the common pattern of our experience, we i^usLsoi' forget that more brutal element in. laughter. All ugly things had in them for the Greek mind something contemptit appeals to the ible or disgraceful. deformity person lies in who Much of the point of men's laughter at a recognition of is its subject. It is its demeaning impulse to rejoice in the sight of what contemptible. efiect on the a clear manifestation of the is degraded, base, or It is not difficult to detect this note of con-' temptuous rejoicing in the derisive laughter of the coarser sort of boy and savage, the kind of laughter illustrated in Homer's description of the merriment of the Achaean chiefs at the sight of the misshapen Thersites, with his hump, his sugar-loaf head crowned with stubble, and his persecuting Here we seem to have an unmistakable ingredient squint.^ iJMorf, ii., 212fE. ; VARIETIES OF THE LAUGHABLE 90 of malignant satisfaction, of rejoicing at another's ills (Aris- totle's e'iri')(ai,peKaKLa). Roughly speaking, we may say that the laughable_force its. extent. The droll effect of of a deformity varies with an enlargement of the nose or of a reduction of the chin with the amount of increases, within certain limits at least, the aberration from the normal dimensions. be any exact quantitative difficult to establish Again, Yet would it relation here. kinds of deformity are not equally provocative all of laugh ter.7' In general, perhaps, positive additions or ex/tensions, ' i, such as a big nose or big to merriment than reductions perception more aggressively. and ears, are losses Then ; more conducive they seem to seize there are varieties of the deformed which probably involve special kinds of droll Certain squints and twistings of the suggest! veness. face divine may move a red nose or a shock of red hair to its supposed human us as expressions of the roguish may owe Long moral symbolism. its force ears and other deformities affect us through their undignified reminder of affinity to a Much, however, in these lower animal species. preferences of the ruder sort of laughter looks quite capricious, and can only be set down to habit and imitation. r^ The impulse to laugh at deformity has a narrower and a wider counteractive. The first is pity, the second is the VJeeling of repugnance at the sight of ugliness. The inhibition of laughter at deformity consideration is by pity and kindly Where one of the marks of a refined nature. the unsightly feature suggests suffering, whether physical or moral, such consideration may completely counteract, the impulse. Since deformity is a variety of the ugly, and the percep- tion of the Ugly as such repels us, we have counteractive a fine aesthetic shrinking from as a further what is un- DEFORMITIES OF BODY AND OF MIND A sightly. 91 person endowed with this repugnance his capacity of enjoying the may have funny aspect of a deformity com- At the other extreme, we have a readiness to make fun of all bodily defects, even when they arej* a revolting spectacle. The area of enjoyment for most men pletely paralysed. lies between these extremes, when the displeasing element of the ugly is may It mitigated, so that which of hilarity its its effect is lost in the stream drollery sets flowing. be added that where deformity has been turned "make fun" has more particularly a into a laughable quality the impulse to commonly been aided by other forces, sense of relief from fear and a feeling of retaliation. is This clearly illustrated in the laughter of the people in the Middle Ages at the devil, the demons and the rest. Perhaps hunchback contains children's rather cruel laughter at the an element of as vicious (3) who retaliative dislike for a person is viewed and hurtful. Another group of laughable objects closely related is Certain moral d eformiti es and ^^cej_have always to the last. been a special dish_ra,_thefea.§t, of .laughter. We have only to think of popular jokes, the contes of the Middle Ages, and the large branches satire, to see how of literature known as comedy and eagerly the spirit of mirth has looked out for this source of gratification. So far as this laughter directs itself against a vicious dis- position, or deformity of character, such as vanity or ice, and not against a coward- lighter defect of external manners, it seems to involve a perception of something ugly, like a bodily blemish, and further some appreciation of its disgraceful or degrading aspect. It is by the a view commonly held, and as we shall see supported practices of art, that all vices are not eq ually -£t subjects for laughter. Some kinds seem to have a specially VARIETIES OF THE LAUGHABLE 92 amusing may There aspect. be peculiar features in the expression of the vicious disposition which give the laughing eye. for example ; This and hardly is value for obviously true of drunkenness, less so of violence of has a large and impressive droUness in vices, it temper, which its display. Other such as cowardice and miserliness, have something choice for the eye of laughter in the meanness of their display, the petty, contemptible practices to monly lead. which they com- The supreme place given to vanity among laughable moral failings seems to be explicable in part by Nothing this consideration. is more entertaining than the inflation in carriage and speech which comes from an overweening Hypocrisy, again, together with conceit. her kinswomen deceit and lying, seems to have a peculiar value for the mirthful eye by reason of her disguise, and the elemental joy which mortals young and old derive from As a a good peep behind a mask. last example we may take a porcine obstinacy over against the expression of others' wishes, the stupidity against which even " the gods contend in vain," a variety of the amusing which seems to tickle our sensibilities by presenting to us the rigidity of the machine in lieu of the reasonably pliant organism of the man. j / we caU moral at these we are This glance at the amusing side of what deformities suggests that by no means always actions and first of all, we view when we laugh at the in the fact that, as vice, its littleness moral point of view, looking at traits of character as we do immoral. when we not, as some is seen, what say, and harmlessness, visiting it, the merely nominal penalty of a laugh. play of brutal appetite, when may be This are laughing at always recognise so to speak, with Lying, or a dis- turned into a subject of mirth the least reflection would show that it is decidedly HOW LAUGHTER VIEWS OUR FAULTS harmful. It is seen, further, in the fact that the laughable in this case extends commonly of call vices. our youth, Mr. beyond the limits The excessive humility far Toots, is hardly spectacle than excessive vanity. of a certain completeness It clearly illustrated up qualities by the less what we of of the friend entertaining a seems rather to be want and proportion moral structure which amuses here. holds 93 of parts in the This is yet more comedy, as we shall fact that see, want of moderation even in which we admire, such as warmth of feeling, refineto a gentle laughter ment of sentiment, and conscientiousness itself. Here again we may note that the "laughable" will be and standards adopted Contrast, for example, the fund relative to the special experiences by the particular society. of amusement which lies in the spectacle of drunkenness for a people addicted to, and therefore tolerant drinking, with that available for another people the vice is shunned and judged severely. indeed, that our readiness to be entertained It of, deep by whom is evident, by the look of excess or disproportion in a character will vary with the idea of the normal pattern. The old Greek way of scanning character differed, in certain respects, from that habitual, say in England to-day. In the case of what are palpable vices we have as counter- active tendencies, not merely the finer shrinking from the ugly, but the recoil of the moral sense in the distressed atti- tude of reprobation. trait must not be Hence of such it may be said that the immoral volume and gravity as to call forth the moral sense within us. temperament and habit, and, one which the presentation Here, may too, differences of add, of the mood finds us, will affect the result. in It is amazing to what an extent even reputable citizens are able to enjoy the presentment of moral failings, when they give VARIETIES OF THE LAUGHABLE 94 themselves up to the mood which seems to belong to a seat before the comic stage. We may (4) pass to a group of laughable presentations which the feature specially fixated by the observer's in mental eye is Laughable some_6reac,^ of order and rule. displays of vice involve this element, of course, but cases now to be considered the violence done to rule more conspicuous i is The donkey the On the other hand,Jaughable vio- feature. lations of rule are closely related to the oddities dealt above. n the on rolling his back may be with said, for child's intelligence, to break, the rule of the donkey's, the normal behaviour; .yet here the laughableness seems to spring im- mediately out of the fresh stimulating character of the novelty of the spectacle. In order that an action we must impress us as disorderly, least, that some custom or rule a donkeji' stepping on to the is may recognise, vaguely at disobeyed. pavement The sight of of a street, or quietly browsing in a garden, would amuse as an exhibition of the disorderly. Perhaps we have the boundary-line between what is merely odd and what is disorderly illustrated the bizarre aspect of a boy in a class who by deviates consider- ably in height from the approximately uniform height of the rest of the class. It has jthat even a house in a row been pointed out by Dr. Lipps may assume an amusing L ance under like circumstances. appear- Here the general uniformity, immediately presented to the eye, seems to supply the spectator with the idea of a rule which the odd-looking in- dividual is violating.^ Under the present head we shall keep to examples of the laughable where the breach of rule is palpable. 1 Loc. cit. There is, of course, often a reciprocal effect in these cases, the noncompliant intruder serving to show up the absurd monotony of the row. 2 UNRULY PROCEEDINGS To begin with, orderliness of and even disorderliness, the upsetting of the usual a great source of laughter to the young life, is many to " of jollity or 95 adults. high more extravagant forms wont to pass into the dis- All the spirits " are This applies not merely to uproar, but to such orderly. "jocose" proceedings as smashing windows, the enjoyment of which, as Addison reminds us, is by some laid down as the test of humour. This being so, we might expect that the appearance of the disorderly would wear an amusing aspect for ordinary men. This is certainly spectacle of lawlessness man always The crowd loves the find. The laughter-moving elsewhere. of a what we and misrule in the harlequinade and force of the presentment in a hurry, or continually changing his purpose, illustrates this effect of the disorderly. value of the man circumstance. is in a rage All The comic depends too in part on this appearances of disorder where order counted on, as in dress, are apt to provoke a smile of amusement. A out of a recognised stimulus to laughter. line, is sight of a squad of soldiers marching out of time, or room turned upside down Even the_ for a cleaning, or of the confusion of a dinner-table after a meal, takes on some- thing of this amusing aspect of the disorderly. The droll aspect of the disorderly becomes specialised in The good offencesagainst the code marked are best cases of manners, and the rules of correct speech. Eude behaviour and gaucheries, solecisms, provincialisms, and confusions in the use of language, amuse us as breaches of familiar rule, the breach of commonly-recognised rules of behaviour. though they may no doubt entertain us also as manifesta- tions of a naive ignorance. It is hardly needful to point out that men's judgments of the laughable element in breach of rule will be relative. 96 VARIETIES OP THE LAUGHABLE The code of manners with the particular in the case of the variations, will class, vary with the community and and same group. will tend to change with time One has only to think from period to period, in the fashionable modes of accost, of pronouncing words, and so on. ^The great force which tends to counteract this direction [ of laughter the respect for order and rule, which has been is formed slowly and with much part of a community. difficulty, at least in must not seem lawlessness it, are the act of of a gravity sufficient to offend This condition will be satisfied ^^his respect. the larger men who It follows that if supporters of rule are to laugh at a violation of I of the if it is mani- fest that the upsetting of rule, so far as it is intentional, is not serious but a sort of make-believe ; or that it is confined within the limits of the harmless, as in the case of the angry man and sundry is ; vainly threatening denunciation against or, again, that the failure to all comply with rule not intentional but due to ignorance. (5) We may now pass to a group of presentations where the laughable feature seems to reside in a situation or condition which is especially those a difficulty or distinctly undesirable. " fix," wear an amusing t Smaik. misfortunes, which involve something in the nature of are for the ordinary onlooker apt to aspect. The loss of one's hat, a fall due to a slip, or a tilting against another pedestrian, are recog- nised instances of the amusing in the spectacle of the streets. Such sights as Ajax slipping in the foot-race and getting his mouth filled with dirt {Biad, xxiii,, 770-85), John Gilpin on his runaway steed, a party in a boat left stranded on a sand-bank, the clown in the circus vainly trying to stop a runaway horse by clinging to its tail ; these and other illus- trations will readily occur to one familiar with the laughter. The ways of older popular entertainments, such as the SLIGHT MISFORTUNES 97 enjoyment of the performance of grinning through the horsecollar at the country fair, owed something of their value to this delight in seeing a compelled to make due to his lack of man many more " when It is to was it refined sense of the awkward " situations of she makes a meritorious but ill-judged attempt to get into touch with one of the " lower class an being if say the unconcealable gine that overtakes a fine social life, lady A foresight.^ laughable seizes on the — only that of —especially when in a fix a fool of oneself be noted that irritating many situations involving not only amount of inconvenience but real excite this kind of laughter in the vulgar. of a cripple dragging his ". body along has its suffering may The spectacle, amusing aspect, not only for jovial mortals but for superior beings. Homer Olympian gods as dissolved in laughter at the sight of the lame blacksmith trying to discharge the dainty represents the office of the cup-bearer Ganymede. We same see the uri-i mishap in the laughter of the savage feeling rejoicing at and of the coarser product of civilisation at certain forms of punishment, particularly the administration of a good thrashing to a wife, or to some ugly piece of mischief, as Thersites. Even " polite society " of amusement, if seems to have a we may judge from which the fashionable crowd on one relish for this form the entertainment side of the English Channel appears to find in scanning the gloomy figures and wan faces of the passengers as they land after a storaay passage. Here, again, the deep malignity of man peeps out in a rejoicing at the sight of others' hurt (Schadenfreude). Among _. these mirth-provoking misadventures, situations and incidents which manifestly involve Joss of dignity fill The spectacle of a flying hat pursued by its a large space. ' See an article, " The Analytical Humorist," by H. D. nightly Bevieio (N.S.), vol. Ix., p, 141. 7 Traill, Fort- J VARIETIES OF THE LAUGHABLE 98 owner owes much of its " funniness " to the fact that the Uq§s of a symbol of dignity is involved. Possibly certain ,{ bodily deformities, especially a failure of the nose or of the chin, may derive something of their laughableness from our The laughter perception of the loss of a dignified feature.^ which is wont on his hands to greet the sight of a the same illustrates man with a baby The favourite left effect. situations in the lighter popular comedy, as that of the / I who is amuse henpecked, and so much vpf the house this who which they involve. who r stumbling when The stimulating " head " force of the greater where the undignified is overtakes one exalted position, as man subject to a mother-in-law, because of the deep descent of the kind of presentation situation is is holding at the time an a preacher in the pulpit is caught on too homely an expression, or a judge on the Lbench giving way to an oppressive somnolence. As in the other instances, tions introduced by the clearly appeals to a f Where misadventure On and circumstances kind of feeling quite dissimilar to that pity laughter at mischances, restrained. here to note the limita- Misfortune, the sufiering of indignity, of the spectator. of^.miEth^., we have variable nature is strong and alert at difliculties, and much so of the forth, is men in the other hand, this pity for comes of knowledge and of insight; and where experience and training have not given these, the restraining influence on laughter will be wanting. Hence the familiar fact that youngsters, though not less capable of pity than their elders, will laugh at sights, such as the old lady slipping and falling, which touch the heart of those V who know what they really mean. (6) We may now touch on a group 1 of laughable objects Mr. Kipling suggests that the want of a proper nose in a family among the Hindoos {Kim, p. 81). regarded as a disgrace is LOSS OP DIGNITY which has a close kinship with more than one of the groups already illustrated, though marked 99 it stands apart by right of well- I refer to laughter a,t^the^-i7ideeent or peculiarities. obscene, whether in actual presentation qr^n suggestirai^ Any attempt to illustrate the variety of the serious sources of men's ordinary laughter must, I think, find a place for this group. Among men, and which decency gods, the uncovering of that is a powerful provocative of laughter. may add one the on hiding insists In their more direct j and potent workings indecent presentations appeal to the j loud mirthfulness of the coarse mind, to the gros the man tossing the gros sel, as Mr. Meredith has bulk among the jocosities of savage tribes many of these Yet it who —and Culture societies. is — of | civiKsedj a great restraining influence herej would be an error to suppose that educated men are also of the laughter-loving are destitute of this The impulse sensibility. indecent, when it nor enlarged upon, to greet merrily an allusion to the comes unexpectedly, taking us guard, so to speak, and is, when it is off our neither too pronounced among men who I believe, universal laugh. The laughter at a suggestion of what not only civilised but even savage society seeks to veil from view would seem to be most naturally regarded as a case or breach of accepted rule. matters vention. to is To make of the improper, reference to these break through a well-understood This breach, moreover, carries with descent into the depths of the undignified ; social conit a plump for since society has willed to throw the veil here any attempt to uplift it implies something shameful. person there who is The disgrace falls on the is the subject of the allusion a definable person concerned. —in all ' They it. or at least among of the less refined rire cases where In others, where I VARIETIES OP THE LAUGHABLE 100 the allusion is common directed to a nature, the indignity done Not only flisa, we so, is, " infirmity " of of course, of the more widespread. on hearing such an allusion that there feel lapse of dignity all round in speaker ^.The blush human and hearers alike. hearer attests this feeling of refined shame. i "Tet to describe the effect here as due to breach of rule and lapse of dignity certainly not to give a full account is the modus operandi of this variety of the laughable. of to speak of these things ''If an offence to good taste, is forbidden and branded as on the other hand that which I and an inseparable part l^is alluded to is a real The enjoyment of these allusions may of our nature. accordingly be viewed under another aspect as a rejection of the / -an favour of simple unadorned nature. for the /' is \ (_ moment of the decent veil customarily hidden by a away historians of artificial casting aside and the facing of what seems, indeed, to be attended distinct feeling of' liberation joyous expansion. The from restraint and of Hence, probably, the fact noted by mediaeval manners that the coarseness of the jocosity appeared to increase with the magnitude of the The mood feast. slackening of all of exuberant hilarity favours the artificial sideration may, perhaps, jokes, if restrictions. The same con- explain the hold which coarse only they have just the right quantum of maintain on the humorous palate of the strong and among men salt, virile of intellect. In this brief account of the mirthful aspect of the indecent I have confined myself to what discloses itself to conscious- common among practise a certain self-restraint. Yet we outbursts which are provoked, in coarser men ness in the moderate forms of laughter, civilised know men who that the at least, by the uncovering of sexual matters have a deeper THE INDECENT 101 source in the obscure parts of our animal organisation. sources of knowledge with respect to the condition of when they Our men are seized with the sexual orgasm, including the testimony of mythology, suggest that laughter here assumes the function of voicing -a state of riotous self-glorification of the animal part of our nature, moment laughter, when and, further, that here, as in ; it fully released for a some forms of nervous has an organic connection with a condition of emotional paroxysm. It hardly necessary to point out that relativity has is a large empire in this branch of the laughable. idea of what of his society, ' A man's obscene will be relative to the standards is which may The English-J vary considerably. man living abroad is apt to men and women, otherwise be impressed by the fact that as refined as hesitate less to call a spade a spade his own people, and to allude in con- versation to subjects which are tabu at home. may be cultivated women Similarly, the modern reader of Shakespeare shocked by the freedom of speech of the of another age. Further, as implied above, the readiness to laugh here will be it is modified profoundly by refinement of feeling. true that all men no less true If are capable of enjoying an allusion to the indecent, provided that is it is delicately executed, it men are able to rather muddy spring that only coarse-minded drink frequently or deeply at this of laughter.^ (7) Another group of laughable presentations has_a certain Popular mirth has made a prolast. analogy with the ' It may of laughter be well to add, by which a modem way of caution, that theatre-goer is / I the feeble semblance apt to produce when he sees something risqui is not a simple form of laughter at the indecent. It is the outcome of a highly artificial attitude of mind, in which there is an oscillation of feeling between the readiness of the natural man to indulge and the fear of the civilised man that he may be carried too far. VARIETIES OF THE LAUGHABLE 102 minent target of men's pretences. and seize the make-believe So ourselves with laughter. and disguise in affectation ruder popular source of its art, is To peep behind the mask means of providing a sure large, indeed, is the part of not only the social life, that but comedy has made them one chief entertainment. The flavour varies greatly according to the moral of the laughter complexion of the Seeing through the transparent make-believe of pretence. the child sets us laughing in one key half -unconscious humbug, in another ; ; the detection of the and that of the artful impostor, in yet another. That the appreciation able is relative, at the may numerous of this embodiment of the laugh- not be at once evident. little Yet a glance hypocrisies not only allowed, but even exacted by polite society, will suffice to show how The dulling influence of use is [the standard may vary. The shams of life cease to exceptionally apparent here. amuse us save a very few when they are numerous and ' — — ubiquitous. ' The Englishman who laughs pretences of society abroad, may at the little be quite incapable of discerning the amusing side of quite similar simulations i and dissimulations in the ways of r^ the impulse will be restrained ' seriously, \ Men 1 own society. by the tendency and by the higher degrees of to judge moral sensitiveness. of easy morals will laugh cynically, perhaps, at forms of imposture 1 his Here, too, as in the case of moral blemishes generally, which would shock those of a finer moral pass to a species of the laughable which texture. I , (8) We may now has a more markedly intellectual character. Among the human quality none appears to have had its mark more widely recognised than that of wamt exhibitions of j ludicrous ( \ of knowledge or of skill. Here, again, our friend, the clown MEN'S PRETENCES of the circus, comes to our The aid. 103 spectacle of his futile attempts to imitate the exploits of the skilled horseman and other experts stirs the risibility of the multitude to one of its fortissimo outbursts. when Ignorance of lands a traveller in a mess, it of merriment to the rustic onlooker. and all locality, is a especialiy"\ common source I Children, savages, 1 simple folk delight in such exhibitions of ignorance J and incompetence. The more restrained amusement or "society" at the want of savoir faire in the uninitiated shows that this enjoyment of the spectacle of ignorance by the well-informed is is The value of the spectacle that when in argument a man widespread. by the fact win the laugh of onlookers to his best to show up a laughable degree evinced he will desires to side, do his of ignorance The presence gathering of bucolics a situation pregnant with possi- bilities of is I i 1 a— in his fellow-disputant. of the expert in 1 Let the delightful discussions mirthful enjoyment. Wessex folk suflSce as illustration. These amusing uncoverings of ignorance and inability of Mr. Hardy's a spicy ingredient in the mutual quizzings of men to distinct peoples or classes, such as the savage white man, the sailor and the landsman. are belonging and the This will be illustrated later on. In these cases the spectator session by may others of knowledge or not count on the posskill. The man who laughs has at most a vague expectation that outsiders should own set. The laugh at ignorance and incompetence takes on another and more ironical ring when knowledge and competence are reasonably to be expected, as for example when an oflScial shows a striking be equal to those of his incompetence for the duties of his The spectacle entertaining of when it human office. ignorance grows particularly has to do with matters supposed to be j \ ] j VARIETIES OF THE LAUGHABLE 104 \ of gives us an example in common knowledge. M. Bergson the observation of a disappointed traveller on hearing that there ; was an extinct volcano in the neighbourhood had a volcano and allowed what of ignorance of it go out to generally is So firm ticularly those of language. everybody, even the foreigner, our language that we cannot It is this element ".' known many gives the amusing aspect to which, in part, breaches of rule, paris our assumption„that ought to be able to^geak hear a gross mispronunciation or misapprehension of meaning without feeling naive. - course the fun is greater German to be Hugh Evans. Of the foreigner stumbles unwittingly tells against himself ; as when how his wife was, and when she is not visitor to London, being asked answered, "She lying she if which into an observation " feeling it Shakespeare in the same play makes us laugh at the bad English of Dr. Caius and Sir a They " : is is generally lying, swindling," meaning to say giddy " lying side of the paradoxical, of what " (" The ludicrous hat Schwindel opposed to common-sense fuUy presently — down " and "). —a matter to be dealt is violently with more illustrates the effect of intellectual naivete. All exaggeration in description and other extravagance of statement are laughed jance of the well what is at, in part at least, as credible. known and On showing ignor- the other hand, insistence on the obvious, especially when it is ac- companied by a laboured argument, amuses us by ignoring the circumstance that the hearer or reader is already quite familiar with the matter. A by a what delightful exhibition of the naive intelligence is given what is happening or of the moment. The Londoner may gross misapprehension of is being said at delight his country listener with his misunderstandings of ^ Op. cit., p. 45. WANT OF KNOWLEDGE OR what 105 seems perfectly self-explanatory. to the latter tickling force of such misapprehension it SKILL involves an idea which is heightened The when the very reverse of the truth. is The good story of the Yorkshire juryman who remarked that " Lawyer Scarlet gets all the easy cases " turns on the When delicious inversion of causal relations. travelling once in a train I heard a mother say to her Httle who had been girl, complaining of the heat, "The more you it the worse it will be " upon which the child remarked in a drily humorous tone, "I should say the think of ; worse it is the more I shall think of it". The mother's remark had probably seemed an inversion of the true relation. Other examples of what we at least, under this head. call naivete come, in part The want of tact, the bringing in of that which has no relevance to the or the ideas of the moment, men of all levels of culture. The inappropriate ways which the kindly savage or child visitor's circumstances an excitant of laughter for is comfort are a pretty example of such simplicity. Irrelevances in conversation and discussion, such as cb of moT propos, mistakings of the issue, unfortunate suggestions reasons, and the like, are among tributaries of the river of laughter. make the recognised These irrelevances a large contribution to the lighter enjoyment of social intercourse. is in tries to minister to his An irrelevance having a peculiarly broad a response to a question which wholly misses effect its point, as when one reads of a man on a descending balloon who asked a yokel, Where am I ? " and received for answer only the '' absurdly obvious, " In a balloon Children's naivete —a ". J mine of wealth to the discerning seeker after the laughable —Ulustrates this tickling property of a perfect simplicity of intelligence, and of those irrelev- / VARIETIES OP THE LAUGHABLE 106 ances of behaviour and of utterance which compass seize by and occupy for the instant the templative vision. /One of its mighty their con- field of most valuable manifestations the habit of quietly substituting the child's point of view " large number of the " funny remarks /for the adult's. Is A Here of children illustrate this. is prover of occasions asked a child grandfather into a rather alarming romp, very kind to play with you, dear " correction, A may " im- seduced her " Isn't grandpapa and received the sharp ". I'm playing with him bare reference be made to other illustrations of the intellectual simplicity eyej The ? An an example. who had which entertains the mirthful effect of prejudice and passion in narrowing the 'mental outlook and setting up erroneous views of things is As we a favourite subject of comic treatment. see, the spectacle gains a higher value intelligence amusing when shall the degraded approaches that of the disordered, and the person, wholly preoccupied with his illusions, utters a string of remarks so widely irrelevant to the actual circumstances of the moment as to upset the gravity even of^a serious spectator. The limiting this influence of relativity in the appreciation of branch of the amusing has been pretty plainly trated in what has been said. The lack ledge which excites our merriment is a familiar possession of our least, is set, tend to look for in others. amused at is of skill or of illus- know- the lack of that which which accordingly we, at Hence, the man of society your not knowing one kind of thing, say, the history of the British Peerage, the bucolic at your ignorance ways of calves, and so forth. The mind only impresses us in relation to our own grown-up and complex ways of thinking. Even of another, say, the simplicity of a child's the absurdities of paradox are relative, for what we are NAIVETfi 107 pleased to regard as the stable, unalterable sense (9) is, body of common- in reality, subject to change. We will now touch on a group of facts on which writers on the ludicrous are accustomed to lay stress. The spectacle of a child wearing a man's hat, fully considered above, shows us the laughable directly and unmistakably as a juxtaposition of two foreign elements, the semblance of a whole made up all Here we see the of incongruous parts. sense of fun fixing its eye on relations. It is recognised that the perception of certain relations, by more particularly the unfitting, the disproportionate, the incongruous and the logically inconsistent, plays a large part in calling forth the more refined sort of laughter. In dealing with distinction. imbecile movements from a When a ceiving a relation of a skater as he tries to save himself ; is may be aware of half-per- such as want of departure from the normal. mental eye person laughs, say, at the or at an outrageous costume, or at the fantastic fall, language of some pr^cieuse, he he we must this laughable aspect of relations draw a fitness, He knows, not focussed for this relation feels as if the presentation in itself, extravagant however, that his ; on the contrary, by giving the re- quired jerk to his apperceptive tendencies, were directly provocative of mirth. On the other hand, he will, I believe, hold that there are / where the enjoyment of the laughable depends on the mental eye directing itself to a relation. The relation may cases not be apprehended in a perfectly precise way; but the point is that of a second ; it is mentally seized, if '• ' l only for the fraction and, further, that a degree of definiteness is I given to the apprehension of the relation by a glimpse, at [ least, of the related terms. This localising of the laughable in a relation . ; is most ~ VARIETIES OF THE LAUGHABLE 108 evident in the case of those complex presentations where lack of harmony and congruity of mutual fitness —appear in the several parts —what we call^in,-_, of the whole which are present to the eye, and forces itself on the-attentioji.,in a thoroughly aggressive fashion. A country woman dis- playing in her dress or in her speech a bizarre mixture of the peasant and the fine lady, a proposal to climb a mountain in dainty high-heeled shoes, the couching of a vote of thanks in language far below or above the needs of the occasion, these pull at the muscles of laughter because they strike us as a forcing together of things The same holds true refuse to consort. the incongruity which hurtle and of cases in which between one presentation and another lies which has preceded and is still present to the imagination, as in the clown's utter failure to reproduce the model action of the expert which he sets out to equal. Even in cases where the laughable incongruity holds be- tween things both of which are not present at the same or I \nearly the same moment, a direct glancing at the relation, in- volving at least a dim representation of the absent of the related twain, may member be requisite for a full enjoyment. It is probable, for example, that Homer's gods, when they laughed uproariously at the sight of the grimy and lame Vulcan essaying the part of Ganymede, mentally recalled the image of the latter and carried out a comparison be- tween the two. Similarly in many of our nicer of the amusingly excessive in dress, speech we_may, judgments and so forth, as suggested above, envisage the relation to a standard of measure in this direct way.^ ^ It may, no doubt, be a question whether the relation made " focal " in consciousness in such cases lies between two parts of a complex presentation, or between the presen' Compare above, pp. 13 ff. THE INCONGRUOUS tation as a whole When, and a represented standard arrangement. for example, we laugh at the intrusion of a too into the pulpit, do lively gesture 109 we mentally fixate the incongruity between the situation and the action, or mentally go back to the idea of the customary and suitable kind and amount of gesture, and view the present performance as disagreeing with these This point ? may be reserved for later consideration^ The view that in the cases just illustrated we have to do with another variety of laughter, that of the mind or by the intelligence, is confirmed ia reflection that much of it excluded from the popular category. enjoy a palpable performance of lace The masses can between profession and contradiction —witness the enjoyment aflbrded to the popu- by the spectacle of the moral But when it comes to the the Middle Ages inconsistencies of the monks.^ appreciation of inherent inconsistencies within the character, such as want of stability of purpose, fickleness in the aifections and so forth, the need of a certain acuteness in perceiving relations, and of quickness in mentally reinstating what is not present, enjoyment. Gross may greatly restrict the area of the and palpable such as inconsistencies, those represented in the delightful monologue L'Indecis, with which M. Coquelin (alne) rejoices us, are accessible most of the self-contradictions with which a Moli^re, a George Eliot, or a George Meredith to popular laughter, but refreshes our spirits are the same is true of measuring eye when it " caviare to the general ". Much the laughter which gladdens the lights on the unmeasured, the Ex- cessive, the disproportionate. ' As our mode of olassifloation shows, instances of laughable degradation. contradiction is clearly involved. we may regard these as primarily Nevertheless, some apprehension of VARIETIES OF THE LAUGHABLE 110 subdivision of this domain of the laughable One logically incongruous or the ahswrd. Here, again, is the we touch on a region into a large part of which culture must give the An example of such a laughable absurdity key of admission. is found in that which conflicts paradoxical is with our deepest and most What unalterable convictions. is logically far-fetched or a familiar provocative of mirth. case, like that of Since this laughing at an extravagant costume, does not imply a direct and clear perception of relation, but onlyja kind of harmless shock to our firmly rooted apperceptive tendenciesj we may expect to find illustrations of low down in the scale of intelligence^' children will be moved to mirth As we it shall see later, by the presentation of an idea that directly conflicts with their crude standards of the possible what is ; and savages show the same impulse to laugh at manifestly opposed tq^their fixed traditional standS3s So it is with suggestions and proposals^ which more mature intelligence as paradoxical, that is to say, as a kind of assault on its deeply fixed habits of belief, and what it is pleased to call its " common-sense ". Ideas which strike it as revolutionary, whether they appear in the of trutL strike the domain of social custom, of political activity, of morals, or of scientific explanation, are greeted Darwin's idea of man's descent when first by voluminous laughter. from an ape-like ancestor, introduced, probably excited almost as much hilarity as indignation. More amusement supplied by The spying out of amusing incon- restricted is the area for logical inconsistencies. is the work of an must be very palpable, and the contradictory statements must be very near to one another sequences in a man's various utterances expert. A contradiction in time, in order that food for laughter The may reach the many. best example of this laughter at contradiction in popular THE ABSURD mirth where the incompatibility you from a single statement, and sets your I suppose, the "bull," is, stares out at sides 111 shaking ; as in the argument, attributed to an Irish statesman, that, in the prosecution of a certain war, man ought " every to be ready to give his last guinea to protect the remainder "} One might these more naturally suppose that in the appreciation of forms of the laughable there would intellectual be no room for the restraining action of relativity. An incongruous relation would seem to be one and the same object for all men's intuitions, and the least affected temperament and external circumstances. accidents of this supposition is not quite correct. Such incongruities moral and logical inconsistencies have, disagreeable and bered, their by Yet as < must be remem-i it even their painful aspect. | When discovered in the character or in the intellect of person known would naturally offend the admiring too, to be of a high consistency, a contradiction we have then, that there to add the i spectator, j Here," qualification, "provided nothing disagreeable and repellant in the is Not only manifestation". so, popularly called paradox is a'i with respect to much that it the standard of truth employed is is to be far remembered that from being that of the eternal verities. As the on Darwin's theory of natural selection shows, allusion to the ridicule poured^ what one \ generation laughs at as plainly contradictory to funda- mental notions truth by (10) may be quietly recognised as a familiar its successor. A | _i group of laughable presentations making large appeal to the more intellectual kind of laughter meets us in ' Prom a speech Commons, 179S. (" Irish Bulls "). by Sir Jolrn Parnell in the Irish House of B. Le Fanu, Seventy Tears of Irish Life, oh. xvi. delivered See W. VARIETIES OF THE LAUGHABLE 112 and amusing verbal play witticism. come of the nature of wit will What seems most forms of the " funny for I bring in a clearly enough. results of this reduction the better are words or phrases are purposely altered so as to new meaning or where without any verbal ; and obvious one effects new meaning for the primary The playful the required change. Pimpulse to get as far away as possible from rule and \ and wildly capricious, is clearly enough recognisable here. of this word-play, too, has a close kinship believe restric- turn things topsy-turvy, to seize on the extravagant tion, to Much New to be reduced to familiar ones, alteration the substitution of a i verbal This leads by a step to punning, where quite .they pleased. intelligible of the intrusion of the playful impulse. them sounds and the funnier the examination closer manifestly characteristic " is Children's word-play shows this words are A later. a natural ; this case, whereas the reality introduced — me that and obvious meaning is by the inventive wag. this is with make- the pretence in the half-hidden meaning 'All the same group of laughable objects has its it seems to place close and absurd.! A pun that claims any intellectual rank must have a point, a bite, and this would appear to be most naturally secured by introducing an element of irony and rendering the primary and obvious to that of the incongruous meaning When, for example, a preacher whose ponderous dulness had set his congregation genteelly scuttling was said to have delivered " of the sentence ludicrously false. a very moving discourse," the point of the witty thrust lay in the complete opposition between the best and the worst result of eloquence brought together in the of " moving," two meanings an opposition which gives the trenchant irony to the description. In cases, too, where there is no verbal trickery the lighter VERBAL PLAY AND WITTICISM 113 kind of wit shows the same tendency to a playful capriciousness of fancy. It delights in substituting for our ordinary points of view and standards of reference others which strike the hearer as This is is illustrated wont by much wan and ; faint as which of our entertaining talk, to try to escape for a strings of sober sense looking amusingly fanciful and extravagant. when moment from a person some hours after d, the leading- propos of a an moon eclipse observed that she seemed not yet to have got over the effects of the eclipse. department of contemplative amusement we more the limitations introduced by differences of temperament and mental attitude, as well as of experience and knowledge. Nowhere, perhaps, is the habitual inclination of the balance between seriousness and love of fun in a man more clearly indicated than in his readiness to tolerate and enjoy word-play and the entertaining side of nonsense generally. One to whom words and serious points of view are sacred things, will barely suffer any form of this recreation. On the other hand a ready appreciation of these In this see once pranks of wit means that the site speed of wing. listener's It means, too, intelligence is in touch fancy has the requi- commonly, that his with the wit's standpoint, with his experience and circle of ideas. to the superior gentleman Bucolic wit from the town ; is a sealed book the merry verbal sports of the judge, the statesman, the theologian forth, reflecting like their and habits of thought, are apt those who and so dreams daily types of experience to fall flat on the ears of are not in touch with these. The above may, perhaps, serve as a sufficiently full enumeration of the more prominent of those attributes or aspects of laughable things which, some in some cases, others in others, make direct appeal to our mirth. 8 VARIETIES OF THE LAUGHABLE 114 That each of these may of itself thus start the currents of laughter will, I believe, be admitted human familiar with the field of [ample evidence to show that 'what contrary to rule, is what and pretentious, and the ^gonditions, It is, move men's no doubt, in many different stimuli laughter. combine their sometimes it is been pointed out that This forces. is so is much decide which of difficult to For the most prominent. example, the spectacle of the lackey donning the externals of a fine gentleman — ment by Moli^re and I supply a perfect demonstra- It has already the co-operating attributes / unreal is most agreeable instances of the laughable of the the case that embarrassing, what is the intrinsic laughableness of each of jpt these features. are I hold, is, do each, under certain limiting difficult to tion of the fact There demeaning, what is rest, by those who mirth. favourite subject of mirthful treat- ^a others —may amuse us as a transparent pretence, as a fine display of insolent vanity, or, again, as an amusing ^^fine caricature of the extravagant absurdities of Extravagance in manners. company frequently found in the idea of one's own and the dress Intellectual naivete importance. peep out at us and a moral naivete look over as in the remark of a lady had invited to see an had arrived too late to begin again for unfitting is in of something : " sake "} ; as is will be I a that she good enough have remarked, the of cases when may shoulder, the astronomer Cassini As number a large its when she found M. de Cassini my unworthy whom eclipse, like of a deliciously erroneous man an introduction at a dinner-party almost suggests something of an animal violence in his mode of eating, or " wooden " manner when an unhappy simile hurls an orator resorts to a of speech or gesture, or ' See Bergsou, op. cit., p. 45, COMBINATION OF LAUGHABLE FEATURES 115 the hearer into the lowest region of the commonplace, a proceeding satirised in the well-known lines from Butler's Hudibras : — And like a lobster boil'd, the morn Prom black to red began to turn. As a last example of the many-sidedness of the laughable we may name affectation, particularly when it takes the form of aping another's manners ; may amuse for this as a bit of acting seen through, or as an incongruous us in- trusion of a foreign element into the natural character of the imitator, or, again, as a weakness, a lack of intellectual or of moral initiative. Nevertheless, the scheme cient is really number appearance of cross - division in our no objection of instances, to By it. collecting a suffi- and noting how the presentation when it is plainly the prehow it will continue to affect us in much the same way when its concomitants vary, we may satisfy ourselves that each of the aspects here named of a certain feature affects us ponderant stimulus, and is effective if ever to grapple with the subject, to There last, cases is is It will be for as a provocative of laughter. experimental psychology, its methods are competent make this clearer. another objection, which, though related to the to be carefully distinguished where the laughable feature from Even it. clearly is in localised something arbitrary in our mode of deFor example, it may be said, why distinguish the relation of the unfit and kindred relations as a special group, since in all cases they may be regarded as products there may seem scribing it. and expressions of a defective intelligence or this difficulty theoretical problem, raise laughable feature now how lend is, far however, to these themselves several to taste ? To anticipate our varieties reduction to of a ^ VARIETIES OF THE LAUGHABLE 116 common I principle. In naming each of the above groups have sought to envisage the laughable aspect as the natural man, innocent of theoretic aims, would envisage What is important here is it. emphasise both the frequent to combination of entertaining features in the objects which and the excite our laughter, feature may fact that one and the same be envisaged in more than one way. These two circumstances throw an interesting light on the meaning of the long discussions and the want of agreement among theorists. In drawing up this of the list laughable features in things I have said nothing about the connection between this part of the inquiry and that which preceded taining effect of new things it. Yet In the enter- the connection has not been wholly hidden. we have found an element of the laughter which springs from a sudden expansion of joy. In the laughter excited by the indecent we have noted a trace of the laughter of " sudden glory " and of what have called nervous laughter. entertaining quality of the I Lastly, in dealing with the more sportive wit we seem to have got near the laughter of play. This connection would appear the more clearly if we were by adding a pair of groups. These are (11) laughable objects which affect us as expressions of and (12) laughable situations which ina merry mood to extend our list ; volve a relation akin to that of victor and vanquished. word ' or two on each (11) There is little of these doubt that must all A suflSce. presentations which are instantly interpreted as manifestations- of a fun-kmng^ disposition tend to excite merriment. This is true of series of sounds, musical as well as non-musical, which have in their rapid staccato It holds good movement a resemblance to those of laughter. also of play-like movements, such as the OTHER EFFECTS OF THE LAUGHABLE 117 freakish gambols of a just loosened pony, or of a circus The clown. exprfiaaioiL^^ttie mirtiiful temper in things awakens- a sjnnpathetic_ laughter in the observer. perhaps it would seem to be more we laugh not playful freak.^ ov over, at -but, we Nevertheless, onejnay if by to the what we cannot be understood reference to these appearances of plaj^ul challenge. (12) That the sight of a man winning getting the better of another in some furnish amusement, in so say, shall find that recognise as objectively laughable save Here, correct^ tQ,^ay that is indisputable. in a struggle or way is fitted to This obviously falls part under the head of laughter at the spectacle of another's difficulty or scrape ; but it I certainly deserves a-1 separate place in an enumeration of the larger and popularly distinguished sources of merriment. There is all that no need to emphasise the owes much of spectacle is its interest understood by men's measuring their powers The amusing one against the other. is fact that the social to combat, competition, side of this interest found in the gleeful satisfaction which the impartial spectator derives from each successful stroke, whether on ; the one side or on the other. The attraction of all eujj counters of wit in the market-place, in the political domain, on the stage and so will show that the from man plain Popular literature has fed his mirth bounteously this source. The glory forth, illustrates this. situations ' in which minister to this feeling of " an onlooker are not confined to those of sudden contest. All displays of a capacity to get the better of another seem to be entertaining to the chastising his wife is many. —especially man good sport for the savage onlooker, so the spectacle of taking liation Just as the sight of a if it down, of discomfiture and humi- involves an element of deception or - VARIETIES OP THE LAUGHABLE 118 —may and so takes on the look of outwitting befooling, yield excellent fun to the civilised spectator. '" A more occurs refined variety of the perception of the laughable when we look on Nature or fate as discomfiting man, playing tricks on him or outwitting him. idea of irony comes into our view of things, especially if it So far as this any misfortune, involves disappointment of hopes and frustra- tion of efforts, may " over- tone " of triumphant mockery. The enjoyment excite a note of laughter of the spectacle of one which has an man triumphing over another or showing superiority to him will in all cases be limited by conditions already sufficiently indicated. Since the laughter excited here ingredient a reflection is, presumably, in by way of the victor's sudden glory, its characteristic of sympathetic imagination it must be included in the more brutal variety. enough a sympathetic apprehension If a lively sensibility produces quickly vanquished, it will effectually Finally, a bare allusion of the feelings of the check the impulse to laugh. may be made to the way in which the laughter of relief from emotional or other strain comes The amusfrom dignity in religious and other into our appreciation of the laughable in things. ing aspect of all lapses ceremonies cannot, I believe, be understood merely as an an inconsequence and irrelevance, but must be connected with the powerful tendency to throw off a illustration of heavy and depressing mental load by a moment's mirth. The laughter at what is lawless, and still more at the indecent and the profane, certainly derives a part of its gusto from a sense of relief from restraint, which the enjoyment of is a main ingredient in But the fuller discussion of which the primal sources of laughter contribute the impressions we receive from laughable objects belongs the to way all license. in to another chapter. 119 CHAPTER V. THEOEIBS OP THE LUDIOBOUS. OuB survey of laughable things has led us to recognise which appear to induce the laughing mood certain groups each presenting group may be some form of its special variety of laughable feature. : One aa,id,primd facie, to exhibit mischances, another human defect, another, again, the misfitting or incongruous, and so forth. something of We may now advance to the theoretic problem of unifying and explaining these varieties of the laughable. Here, for the second time, we must touch on the views propounded by authorities on the subject under the name of Theories of the Ludicrous. burden the reader with a of course pass by all Happily, full it is not necessary to account of these. We shall doctrines deduced from a priori meta- physical conceptions, and confine ourselves to those which make a show, at least, of grounding themselves on an analysis Of these I shall select two or three typical theories which come to us with the claims of distinguished authorship. We shall test these by examining how far they succeed in of facts. comprehending the diversity of 1. The first fact now of these typical theories localises the secret force of the laughable in something in the object. laughter is before us. unworthy or degraded According to this view, the^unction^of to accojnpany and give voice to what called the derogatory impulse in man^ may be his tendency to look THEORIES OF THE LUDICROUS 120 out for and to rejoice over what undignified. be called the Moral Theory, or Theory of De- may This mean and is gradation. Aristotle's brief remarks on comedy in the taken as illustrative of this Comedy, he — type ^not, tells us, is " however, way of the full sense of the word bad " is a subdivision of the consists in " some defect or ugliness not painful or destructive".^ Of an adequate theory ugly (rou is may be an imitation of characters of a lower in. and, again, the Ludicrous (to 76X0101') which Poetics^ envisaging the laughable^ alcT'xpov), of the subject there and is here, of course, hardly a pretence. It Seems strange, indeed, that a great thinker with the works of his compatriot Aristophanes before him should have placed the ludicrous wholly in character, altogether overlooking the comic value of situation. Still, able to the category of ugly TO alaxpov on its the reference of the laugh- and disgraceful things —for moral side connotes the disgraceful (com- pare the Latin " turpe ") —may be said to imply a germ of the principle of degradation. A more careful attempt to construct a theory of the by a reference to something low or degrade^, in the object is embodied in the famous doctrine of Thomas ludicrous Hobbeay According is to this writer, " the passion of laughter nothing else but sudden glory arising from sudden con- ception of some eminency in ourselves, the inferiority of others, or with our this theory our laughter is viewed as by comparison own formerly ". arising, not witti In immediately from a perception of something low or undignified, but only mediately from this perception, through a recognition of our own superiority and an accompanying emotional movement, namely, an expansion of the "self -feeling," a sudden quickening of the sentiment of pride or power. ' Poetics, V. i. Nevertheless, the (Butcher's translation). THEORY OF DEGRADATION theory^ may be said to tion, in so far as it with a perception of come under the 121 principle of degrada- makes the process of laughter start some point of inferiority, that is to say of a comparative loss of dignity, in the laughable object. The main point the ludicrous we whenever we.,enjoy of this theory, that are consciously realising, aur superiority to another, will, I think, hardly bear examination. in this enjoyment there may be, and often is, That an element of this agreeable sense of elevation I readily allow, and I shall try to . is show presently how gets there. it But jt altogether inadequate^ as an exhaustive account of the several varieties of our laughing satisfaction. groups of cases to which it Even in the seems to be most plainly and awkward applicable, for example, those of mischances situations, it is not a sufficient explanation. Is there any discoverable trace of the uplifting of pride, of the temper of — Schadenfreude " the malicious satisfaction of watching from the safe shore the tossings of mariners in a storm in " — the instantaneous response of our mirth to the spectacle of the skater's wild movements when moment he for a equilibriuEQ, or of the hat wind-driven far seat on the respectable citizen's head from its Is there time here ? for mentally bringing in the contrasting idea of our immunity ? of victory, of taking In dealing with test it in the Prof. emotion in excited this type of theory, it it nig,rked consciousness seems only by a fair to recent writer. the occasion of the ludicrous some person or circumstances The most " by the ? more mature form given as "the degradation of ". is somebody down Alexander Bain defines dignity own Has the laugh the characteristic taste of the outburst of contempt which , loses proper that excite " interest possessing no other strong improvements here on Hobbes' statfifljentare (1) that consciousness of our own superiority <^ THEORIES OF THE LUDICROUS 122 we may laugh jieed not come in, since another who scores off his adversary, sympatheticallj'jwith and so forth ; the object degraded need not be a person, since general, in affairs political e.g., down and ; human a code of institutions, manners, a style of poetic composition, (2) that may be taken (3) that, as in Aristotle's theory, certain limiting conditions, namely, absence of counteracting emotions, such These extensions on the as pity or disgust, are recognised. one hand and limitations on the other are clearly meant to safeguard the Hobbesian principle against the attacks to \ which it so dangerously exposes itself.^ Even in this new and more guarded form, however, the theory will not bear the strain put upon fairly well for list, some of the it. It will account forms of the laughable in our such as slight misfortunes or mischances, defects, moral and intellectual, which do not shock or otherwise hurt our feelings, also certain forms of make-believe which are and so capable of being regarded distinctly hypocritical at once as moral defects, and (being seen through) as discomfitures. It may apply also, as the effect of the obscene out some forcing the way. ; effect There seems to me something of the joy of the Whitman, Leaving at the sight of this, has been hinted above, to though I, at least, feel that with- cannot be interpreted in this to lurk in our laughter here child, of the what is Naturkind, Walt customarily hidden away.^ however, as a more doubtful turn to other groups. case, let Is it possible to regard us aU laugh- able exhibitions of incongruities as degradations? Is the 'A further and most important enlargement of Hobbea' principle is made by Bain when he urges that the spectacle of degradation works upon us, not merely by way of the emotion of power or glory, but by way of the feeling of release from constraint. dealt with later. ^ Compare above, p. 100. This point will more conveniently be BAIN'S THEORY charming unsuitability of the by the childish form viewed degradation when he " lets at the clothes as degraded " grown-up's " himself go strikes me and hat coat to Are we laughing ? by being thus transformed, or at way that such a " the laughing spectator as a the child's naivety as a degradation of I confess 123 human intelligence ?> of interpreting the spectacle The look as grotesquely forced. thing in the complete unfitness of of the whole parts seems to affect its one as a delicious absurdity before the sweet simplicity below the surface where nothing is detected. is Our author does his best to that mere incongruity, made out readily grant that he has show that show degraded, does not raise the laugh. I his case, so far as to most of the pungent and potently moving in examples of the incongruous an element of degradation, of malicious detraction is But present. this is not enough. The question is whether it is always present, and whether where it is present it is thesole excitant of our in the cases mirth. not so. X believe that a finer analysis shows that this Where, for example, is " the degraded laughter at the sight of his nursery cleaning day by ? " is in a child's topsy-turvy on a all Does he view the nurse as put to shame the setting of chairs on tables and so forth, instead of observing the proper local congruities room the as ? or does he think of something quasi-human which takes on an improper look as he himself does when he makes himself in a glorious mess? kind may be present Slight : laughter and constitute As another way movements but do they its lie his^ main moving force ? of testing the theory, those examples of the odd or out of the find nothing of deformity, mental glance on any of fancy of this at the sources of we may glance at way in which we and do not seem to focus our loss of dignity, but are content to be / THEORIES OP THE LUDICROUS 124 amused at the queer spectacle for its own a child of three or so go into a long fit I sake. have seen of laughter at the antics of a skittish pair of horses just turned loose Did the common. child see anything of graceful, undignified in these Were they new and on a the mean, dis- lively movements ? immensely, overpoweringly funny, just not because they were outrageous deviations from the customary proper behaviour of horses carriage street 1 who 1 reflect may any my roving captures on any signify. saddled or harnessed to a distinct " in the which the bizarre costume happy moment, in this first thought of the personality behind the wild, a friendly one. to the person if, guy nonchalant eye long before loss of dignity In sooth, startling figure floats is when I feel the impulse to laugh at a " ? who I up am to the surface of consciousness, it disposed to like and feel grateful thus for an instant relieves for insufierable dulness of the spectacle of London me the citizens all dressed according to one stupid fashion. Or let and the us take another group lighter kinds of wit. the relish for word-play : Here, again, I concede to Bain that the taking down of somethiag a good peg-interval intensifies our satisfaction : but it seems impossible to main- tain that our mirth depends altogether on the recognition of this. A good pun, a skilful turning of words so as to give new and startlingly disconnected meaning, can hardly be said to owe its instant capture of our laughing muscles to a our perception of a degradation of language and the habits of serious speech. On the contrary, I should say that any focussing of thought on this aspect would considerably weaken and might altogether It is to the serious person arrest the laughing impulse. who keeps his that this feature of the case addresses here, even in the case of mirthful mouth firmly closed itself. Is there not men, some of the delight THEORY OF INCONGRUITY who amuses 125 himself by turning words and expressions into queer nonsense just for the fun of the of the playful child thing 2. ? We may now main types pass to the second of the of theory which have been proposed as explanations of the working of the laughable on our muscular mechanism. of setting behind our feeling Its distinctive and the correlated mark is that, instead enjoyment of the ludicrous an emotion, or a change in our moral attitude, namely, a sense of our own superiority or of something else's degradation, it sets a purely intellectual attitude, a modification of thought- The laughter, according activity. results from a peculiar effect to this second theory, on our intellectual mechanism, such as the nullification of a process of expectation or of an expectant tendency. lectual process and its which brings about the feeling of the ludicrous expression in laughter. tellectual Theory, or Since It is this perfectly disinterested intel- we have Theory This may be called the In- of Contrariety or Incongruity. already touched on this mode of conceiving of the effect of the ludicrous in criticising the view of Dr. Lipps, a brief examination of It may may content us here. way of dealing with German. The dominant be noted in passing that this the ludicrous is characteristically note in the philosophy of to regard it all Kant and his successors has been determinations of experience as fundamentally a rational process. Just as in the domain of ethics these thinkers conceive of what to call the British Ethicists have been wont Moral Sentiment as essentially a process of Reason, so in that branch of Esthetics which deals with the Comic we find them disposed to regard the effect of the ludicrous, less as the excitation of a concrete and familiar emotion, such as Pride or Power, than as a special modification of the process of thought. THEORIES OP THE LUDICROUS 126 Kant may be taken as the first great representative of this According to him, wit theory. ludicrous which he touches on — —the is only variety of the a kind of play, namely, In everything that is to that of thought. excite.a.liyely laugh must be something absurd. It is! " an affection arising from the sudden transformation of a strained (gespannte) expectation into nothing". The transformation is, of course, there ' not directly enjoyable to the understanding it : seems to in- duce gratification indirectly by means of a furthered bodily This, process. by German thinker the way, is a noteworthy concession body to the claims of the poor by a to recogni- tion in these high affairs of the understanding, a concession which He his followers quickly struck out. example of sitting at his theory the story of a an Englishman's gives as an Hindoo who, when and seeing a bottle of beer Being questioned table, turned into froth, expressed astonishment. as to the reason, he that it it remarked : " I am not at should flow out, but I do wonder all astonished how you ever got in". I have enlarged on Kant's theory mainly because of the authority of the author. nise how German absurdly inadequate is critics the themselves recog- little he says on the subject as an explanation of the effect of the laughable.^ A make this plain. It is evident that what Kant was thinking of under the head of the ludicrous was merely those exchanges of witty few words will perhaps words and amusing stories which naturally enough formed a principal pastime of the devoted Konigsberg thinker^ Yet, even when considered under this narrow aspect, his theory shows itself to be palpably insulEcientJ 'Kant's contribution to single " tlie Remark " appended theory of tlie It ludicrous to a discussion of the is is noteworthy contained in a Fine Arts and Taste. See Dr. Bernard's translation of his Kritik of Judgment, pp. 221-4. KANT ON LAUGHTER that, in seeking to make quoted above, Kant feels it fit 127 the remark of the Hindoo himself called upon to contradict we laugh /" because we deem ourselves man ". This objection, which occur to one who remembers Hobbes.j can- the suggestion that cleverer than this ignorant could not fail to not, however, be summarily dismissed by a bare assurance such as Kant gives us " there is ; and, as a recent writer remarks, good reason to suppose that we laugh difficulty in a One may go wrong place at the ignor- man who ance (better, 'at the naivete') of the seeks the ".^ farther and venture the assertion that it is impossible to explain any laughable incident, story or remark as due altogether to dissolved expectation or surprise. In examining the adequacy of Kant's theory to this purpose, I set out with the natural presupposition that, j when using the word expectation, [he does not mean a definite anticipation of what is some particular concrete sequel momenta In presented to the mind at the illustration given, he would not have meant J;hat to the the questioner had a well-defined expectant idea of another explanation of the Hindoo's astonishment. It is only fair '' meant merely what the word " expect means when, on meeting a friend in a London street whom to assume that he I had supposed to be out of England, I say expect to see you ". here for a general attitude of mind, a readiness to assimilate " In other words, any "I did not expectation mode " idea of a certain order, that to say, standing in a recognisable relation to what sented^'' 'It is the attitude in which evolution of a plot in fiction when ^ Article " On we is is pre- appreciate the this appears natural does not give a shock to consciousness. 1898, p. 255. stands of apperceptive and ' | the Philosophy of Laughing," by the Editor, The Mcmist, THEORIES OP THE LUDICROUS 128 Employing the word when we in this sense, one may say that, even conundrum laugh on receiving the solution to a which has teased and dissipation of baffled us, it is not because of the an expectant attitude. suggested by the familiar fact that, This conclusion when is at the end of our self-puzzhng we are told that there is no solution, and when consequently we are unmistakably the subjects of an annulled expectation, we are very likely not to laugh or, if we are good-natured enough to do so, it is as a result, not of any disappointment, but of a discovery that been hoaxed. This laugh at one's befooled we have —which self shall not be disposed to repeat if the trick is tried a time —so far expectation is from a illustrating the principle particularly clear of we second annulled example of that of lowered dignity. The best kind example of the laughable for Kant's of purpose would seem to be something odd and fantastic in dress or manners. of shock But is inflicted Here, as I have allowed, a kind on our fixed apperceptive tendencies. speak of a process of dissipated expectation here to As seems to be hardly accurate. have hinted, the sudden I appearance of the unexpected moves us to laughter primarily as a delightful novelty. seems to follow that Kant's It principle of nullified expectation offers no adequate explanation of those forms of the ludicrous pose. I may add attempt to mark which are most promising for that ofl" [it fails the domain of well-defined characteristics. We his pur- makes no serious the laughable by certain because it have seen that the objects which excite our laughter are things human, or akin to the human. The theory of degradation evidently recogmsea by making the ludicrous consist in a loss of dignity points at once to the human sphere. But the theory this it : RELATION OF SURPRISE TO LAUGHTER 129 that the effect of the ludicrous comes from an annihilation of a strained expectation suggests that ally to As do with the spectacle of human I life. have not included the capability of dissipating among may indicate what expectation the laughable features of objects, I I hold to be the function of surprise in the effect of the ludicrous. presentation for which the Surprise, the mind is effect of a not perfectly pre-ad- justed at the moment, seems to be a of vivid has nothing speci- it common condition and exciting impressions, certainly of those which Hence we need not wonder that among the antecedents of that outburst which we call laughter.' induce a state of gladness. it should be found of gladness Nevertheless, seems probable that the part played_by it laudable has been exDoes the Londoner who laughs again and again surprise in tiie^^joymerit of the aggerated. at the rough jocosities of the on annihilated expectation Punch and Judy show, depend for his mirth Dogberry's love ? by no means peculiar to him. A really good joke continues to amuse long after the first effect of surprise has worn off. A like conclusion is reached by remembering that even when a definite attitude of expectation for the coming of the ludicrous turn is assumed, of a mildewy old story is | laughter's greeting is stories are circulating of some new joke effect to say that it none the and the less hearty. lips seems an odd it is move way When racy in anticipation of describing the due to a dissipation of expectation. There surely seems to be more of realisation than annihilation here, even though the precise form of the impending attack on our laughter over, as when we of one on whom is unknown. are watching with a practical joke is which wej_ being ia the secret of the 9 In certain cases, amusement the more- actions —actions being played plot, are able to fore- THEORIES OF THE LUDICROUS 130 with a considerable degree of precision, the element of cast The surprise dwindles to the vanishing point. essential condition of our laughter would thus appear to be, not the meeting of the amusing presentation with a state of complete unpreparedness of mind at the moment, but such a degree of contrariety between the presentation and our fixed and irrepressible apperceptive tendencies as will, even in spite of a pre-adjustment, secure something of a mild, momentaryshock.^ A more carefully developed example of the mode of conceiving of the laughable which finds annihilation of a rational attitude hauer. essence in the by Schopen- According to this writer, the process which deter- mines our laughter and its supplied is its frustration. phenomenon is describable as an intellectual^ ej^trt. '/' In every instance (he tells us) the of laughter indicates the sudden perception of an incongruity between a conception (Begrifi) object, which is to be understood jOT ' thought and a real through ' The incongruity between the perception and the conception under which the understanding necessarily strives to bring it must be of (i.e., by means of) this conception."^] such a degree Jhat the perception strikingly difiers from The greater and the more unexpected the incongruity, the more violent (heftiger) will be our laughter. The author's example of the absurdity of the presentation of the curve and straight line trying to force itself the conception. / under the incongruent conception of an angle to illustrate this theory.^ ' Here is is intended another which has a I find after completing this paragraph that the point dealt with, namely, efiEeot of mental unpreparedness, is not an invariable antecedent of our response to the laughable, has been urged by a French writer, M. Oourdaveaux. His critic, M. Dugas, does not seem to me to have effectually combated it. (See Dugas, op. ait., p. 63 fi.) that surprise, in the sense of the * See above, p. 6. SCHOPENHAUER'S THEORY more promising soldiers is is A man who look. has been arrested by allowed to join them in a found cheating and forgetting that he Schopenhauer, is game He Here, according to because the incident, the ejection of a prisoner just arrested, will not rule, of cards. kicked out, his playmates quite their prisoner. is we laugh 131 fit into the general "cheats at the card-table should be thrust out". This form of the Intellectual theory clearlj_avoids the we objection to Kant's version, that things when there is frequently laugh at no discoverable trace of a preceding expectation involving something in the nature of an idea; for we take and as a it as meaning that the conception result of, the perception. arises after, It is further indisputable, Kant has shown us, that in our explicit judgments, as when we say, " This painting is (or is not) a work of Eubens," as a general form of representation or something in the nature of a concept may take part, the percept being (or refusing subsumed under this. At the same time, as was urged in the to be) distinct calling up first chapter, the of this general representation occa- is sional only, and, therefore, not a pre-requisite of a perception of conformity When or non-conformity to the normal type. I envisage a person as correctly or as oddly dressed, I do not in either case need to have a schematic repre- sentation of the proper typical style of dress. holds good of many cases in language or good manners, to be broken : we do sentation of the rule. which a is felt not need to The same definite rule, say of to be complied with or call up a distinct repre- At most we can speak here of a conceptual tendency, of an apperceptive acceptance or rejection of a presentation, certain features of which are specially attended to as characteristic of the type or general form or, on the other hand, as marks of deviation from this. THEORIES OF THE LUDICROUS 132 Even we adopt if we theory, it Nor will his illustration of the self-befooled warders may note a To begin bear close inspection. with, one mode certain arbitrariness in the use of a which plainly allows of an well, either (with cheat rule " of Schopenhauer's not sufficient for explaining his is Of the fanny tangential angle no more need be examples. said. amended form this find that who is alternative. of interpretation We can say equally Schopenhauer) that the extrusion of a also a prisoner will not fit into the general cheats have to be ejected," or that the extrusion of a prisoner who is also a cheat will not that prisoners have to be confined.^ fitting here also to perception of this It fit into the rule seems to be more —so regard the incongruity is far as the — the direct cause of our laughter -as holding between two aspects of the incident presented. The man is envisaged at once as a cheat and as a prisoner, and as such comes under two regimes which directly The perception conflict. of the fun of the story surely begins with a discernment of this mutual interference of two systems of rule. Yet this is certainly not all or the chief part of the per- The unstinting laugh comes only when we view ception. the keepers as naively " giving themselves by consenting away " to their become playraates, and so putting themselves under a rule which wholly destroys their rSle prisoner as custodians. shows itself to Here, too, then, the principle of incongruity be insufficient. It only remains to turns out to to be add that if inadequate even example chosen by himself, it is Schopenhauer's theory when applied pretty certain to to fail an when applied to other groups of instances of the laughable in our list, 1 in which incongruity does not seem Compare what was said above dpropos o£ the child to be a and the hat, potent p. 14. FUNCTION OP CONCEPT ingredient, if indeed it is LAUGHTER IN present at To all. 133 suggest, for example, that our laughter at small and harmless vices, such as Aristotle speaks of, is the outcome of a suddenlyconceived incongruity between a " real object " or presen- Would tation and' a conception sounds sufficiently forced. the author of the theory have been prepared to say that we have in these instances mind the concept and that our laughter comes present to our of a perfectly virtuous man, of our failing to bring the perception under this conception ? Surely the intrusion of any such exalted " concept " would be fatal to our enjoyment of the laughable aspect of vice. Facts, moreover, contradict this may of laughter. Sir we ought to John view on every hand. According to this theory, Falstaff. laugh most at his vices when he them, since this is the first reveals moment when we should be most on him the likely to bring to bear decent gentleman. It one of the world's great purveyors suffice to allude to But is it " concept " of not the fact that a proper we laugh more freely when we have quite ceased to think of him as a possible embodiment of sobriety and decency, and when we apperceive his behaviour by help of the conceptual tendency answering, not to the type of virtuous citizen, but manner of behaviour or the character of John himself ? The same is true in everyday life. We to the general Falstaff are, I think, most ready to laugh man's at a vanity or his exaggerations of speech, man and can say, " Oh, it is foibles, say, his when we know only So-and-So the ! Neither the theory of Kant nor of Schopenhauer seems, what it undertakes to do, to impressions of the laughable. and explain the various forms then, to be competent to do These two theories, in spite of their difference, agree in regarding the incongruity which excites our laughter as lying between what we perceive and what our previous V THEOklES OF THE LUDICROUS 134 experience and our pre-existing ideas and apperceptive habits have prepared us to accept as natural and proper. But our examination of the instance of the ill-matched hat and head supplied by Dr. Lipps, as also our fuller discussion of the relation of incongruity in the preceding chapter, has led us to recognise an amusing contrariety between different parts of a presentation, of what may be called internal incongruity in contradistinction to the external dealt with by Kant and Schopenhauer. Hence we have to inquire how these two modes of apprehending incongruity are related. we have to do in this case with a real mode of perception, seems indisputable That, prima facie, difference in the reader compare the effect of the two spectacles, a let the man wearing an extravagantly ; man alone, and a short man by the side In some instances, indeed, we may see intrinsic as or and a small boy tall hat, wearing a hat of the height of a man's or, again, of a tall a tiny woman. that there is an repugnance between the parts of a presentation, when two colours in a woman's dress violently clash, when a statement is palpably self-contradictory. Here there seems to be no reference, however vague, to previous experience or the customary. At the same time we may easily see that this field of the internally incongruent is a very narrow one. on Much of what looks like this turns out, closer inspection, to be, in part at least, externally deter- mined. This is true of what we call a bizarre mixture of incongruent elements in mode of attire or in manners it is experience and the habits of social life ; for which dispose our minds to regard them as foreign one to the other. Much of our mirthful gratification at exhibitions of the incongruous arises through a perception of the intrusion of something foreign into a situation. When, for example, we observe a INADEQUACY OF INTELLECTUAL THEORY we mentally view rather sprightly gesture in the pulpit, background which this action against a the moment. presented Now it is : this situation is 135 is the situation of by no means wholly a presentation greatly enlarged and pro- foundly modified by the addition of a general significance. The attitude of the spectator's mind, face to face with the scene, is determined by apperceptive tendencies which imply And this, a readiness to expect a certain kind of behaviour. means that again, evidently activity, certain directions of imaginative and something in the nature and of conceptual thought, are of a " generic stirring. image " This efiect of experience and apperceptive habits in modifying our perceptions is probably illustrated in the amusingly incongruous. To all our appreciations of revert once more spectacle of the man's hat on the child's head, say that in this case, loper in the situation It wise, is we not envisage the hat as an inter- —the sweet sanctum of the nursery ? seems to follow that Kant and Schopenhauer were when dealing with incongruity, in emphasising the apperceptive factor. to also, to the may we Contrariety to what we are accustomed undoubtedly the great determining element in the ill-assortments things which of provoke our laughter. Hence, in examining the theories of these two writers, we seem to have dealt with the intellectual principle in its most comprehensive and most favourable form. Nor do I see how any transformation of this principle will make it an adequate theory. and awkward The entertaining instances of mischances situations, of takings intellectual failings, these and other down, of moral and varieties of the laugh- able dealt with above steadily refuse to yield up their secret at the bidding of this theory. Let us theories. now sum up We seem to the results of our criticism of the have found that, whereas neither of THEORIES OP THE LUDICROUS 136 the two chief types ol theory covers the whole fiekl of the laughablej each has many that in action, its proper, limited domain. we laugh cases where the provocative is best described as a loss of many It is equally certain that in dignity. It is certain at an incident, a situation, an other cases our laughter; springs directly out of a perception, more or less distinct,,of incongruity. That Ithese principles have each a large sway over our laughte{ has been sufficiently illustrated in the preceding chapter:; they frequently co-operate in one and also that Hence we might expect the same amusing presentation. that the advocate of each theory would be able to find his illustrations, and would sometimes manage one just after But, it it may had been carried be urged, even to be valid they may off by to pounce upon his rival. both principles are shown if be unified. If by this is meant that the incongruous and the undignified or unworthy, considered as abstract ideas, are identical, each involves the other, I point. It is am or that logically not concerned to discuss the enough for our present purpose to urge that the modes of perception and the shades of feeling involved are clearly distinguishable. The same fundamental distinction would nullify the attempt to subsume one of these principles as a special case under the other. If we set out with the Intellectual principle, we may, without doubt, succeed in showing that many, if not all, amusing losses of dignity—such as a slight disgrace, or a bungling into a "fix" contrariety between what —logically involve a presented and the normal But our question is one not of the logical analysis of meaning but of the psychological analysis of process, and I can find no evidence in favour of the theory custom or ^ is rule. Cf. above, p. 114 ; also the article in The Monist already quoted. PROPOSED SYNTHESIS OP PRINCIPLES that when we laugh any apprehension It the same is we if with the other or Moral prin- start And it may be possible to incongruity some loss of dignity if it we have the incongruity and yet none at Where is still Yet stand a full sense of relishing enjoying a degrada- all of the degradation in the spectacle of a crow a sheep's back truth, in all cases of logically implied. cases of incongruity, including our old friend the child in the father's hat, tion. show that is be so, the psychological contention will many that in on moment certainly, as already conceded, be regarded as degra- dations. even at the of such a contrariety. Incongruities which are lapses from standard ideas ciple. may we have at these things 137 which may flood a child with mirth ? In our theorists had only condescended to take note if of so small a matter as children's enjoyment of the world's have stood fun, the hypothesis of degradation could never its ground so long. Yet another way of evading a glaring dualism may suggest itself. Allowiug that the two principles are each valid, we might, at least, be able to combine them in the form of a single generalisation. for example, who, Hazlitt, This what is though he iinds done by is the essence of the laughable in the incongruous, defines the ludicrous as involving disappointment of expectation by something having deformity or (something) inconvenient, that contrary to the customary and desirable.^ expression, a "descending incongruity," similar mode is of combining the principles.^ incongruity, with its distinction of a what is clearly a very Lipps' theory of little, presentation, might also, I think, easily be another mode of such combination. is Herbert Spencer's and a made belittling to illustrate More recently Fouillee ^English Comic Writers, lect. i., " Wit and Humour". 2 "The Physiology of Laughter," Essays, i., p. 206. THEORIES OF THE LUDICROUS 138 and others have urged that the one principle in a manner supplements the other. however, that this apparent mode of escape It is evident, will not avail us. The combined theory implies that all and degradaperceived and felt to be such. In dealing cases of the laughable are at once incongruities tions, that is to say, with the principles separately, however, we have in the case of each alike, there are well-recognised of the laughable to which manifestly carries with it it does not apply. seen that, examples This conclusion the proposition that there are cases which a combination of the principles does not apply. to A last attempt to escape this theoretic dualism would be to urge that the two might be urged, we have to it do with the intellectual principle sphere is In principles rule in distinct realms. that of the ludicrous proper, enlarged to include all : it that is is only when the laughable, and so the region of the ridiculous, that the principle of lowered dignity comes but and it in.^ seems to me Theorists fast boundaries. things do not of malice may insist on such As has been shown above, laughable all afl'ect us in quite the same way. make some striking example good Irish "bull". an When ; yet this does of incongruity, say a the note of derision begins to clearly, there is of course effect of no longer any suggestion of the laughable pure and simple. The attempt ' spice the experience substantially different from that of enjoying sound A comes into much of the laughter that greets the spectacle, say of a bit of successful trickery not distinctions, that they cannot be maintained as hard to analyse our perceptions of the laughable Aooording to Pouillee, contrast is the formal element, faultiness See Dugas, op. cit., p. 85 S. "), the material. (" le d^faut 2 HazUtt defines the ridiculous as the highest degree which is " a proper subject for satire," loc. cit. of the laughable, NO SINGLE CAUSE OF LAUGHTER in the hope of discovering some We proved to be abortive. 139 single uniting principle has find in the end that two causes of la ughter remain on our hands.^ The most promising way and aspects qualities of bringing the several laughable of things under one descriptive would seem to be to say that they all illustrate head a presentation of something in the nature of a defect, a failure to satisfy some standard-requirement, as that of law or custom, provided that it is small enough to be viewed as a harmless plaything. Much, at least, of our laughter: at the odd as opposed to the customary, at the deformed; at failure in good manners and the other observances of and defects of intelligence fortunes social life, at of character, at fixes and mis- — so far as the situation implies want of foresight at the lack of a perception of the fitness of things, other laughable features, may undoubtedly to something which fails directed requirement, jet is so trifling that upon I to and at be regarded a& comply with a social we do not feel called to judge the shortcoming severely, am sure that to look at the laughable in this way is an indispensable step in the construction of a theory of the We subject. the must, as common mode psychological function. we shall see presently, supplement of dealing with laughter as an abstract problem, by bringing into view Yet this does not necessarily mean its social that the consideration of this function will lead us straightway a simple theory of the ludicrous. chapter, tire of laughter, may As hinted in easily exaggerate the and this point will be to- the preceding more serious function made clearer in subsequent chapters. That the eflfects of the laughable cannot all be brought under the head of means of ' Compare Bibot, La social correction or improvement, Psychologie des sentiments, p. 344. 140 THEORIES OF THE LUDICROUS may, even at this stage of oui inquiry, be seen another point, to which qualities of things in by considering we will now turn. No analysis of the which the laughable resides will enable us to account for the mirthful eifects of these, even while we remain within the limits of chapter, what is commonly recognised This has been illustrated in the preceding as the ludicrous. and a word or two more may suffice to make it clear. I have tried to show that some at that shake us with laughter do so least of the spectacles by satisfying something within us akin to the child's delight in the gloriously and extravagant. new means that these spectacles make appeal to that primitive form of laughter, already illustrated, which is called forth by some sudden increase of joy. Our This, again, rejoicing at the sight of the clown's droll costume and funny movements has in laughing joy of it something of the savage when he the is shown some mechanical wonder of Europe, something of the laughing joy sudden invasion of his nursery wall of the infant at the by a dancing sunbeam.* A little more reflection on the groups of laughable things will show that other ingredients of this primitive laughter are present in our appreciation of the ludicrous. Dr. Bain finds himself compelled to eke out the deficiencies of the Hobbesian principle degradation may move by urging that the spectacle of us to laughter, not merely b y excit- ing the feeling of power or superiority (as Hobbes said), b ut by supplying a sudden release from a state of constraint. The abandonment of the serious attitude in church when some trivial incident occurs is an instance of a lowering of the dignity of a thing, or an occasion, 1 M. Bergson has a glimpae laughter, op. cit., p. 69 ; which refreshes of tlie oo-operation of " child's fun " in our but he fails to see the magnitude of this factor. JOY IN THE EFFECT OF THE LAUGHABLE us with a sense of liberation.^ This idea carries us will, presentation in which no degradation is very severe the narrator of a funny story I think, many reinforce other mental agencies in times the constraint much The joyous deliverance farther than the author thinks. from pressure and constraint 141 ; be found to cases of ludicrous discoverable. Some- witness the effect when is knows how to wind up the emotion of fear to just the right pitch in order to give us works when the funny Here our laughter has a large support in the joyous relief from nervous tension. In other cases, again, the release comes as an interruption of a solemn occasion by the intrusion of something disconnected, and, by contrast, trifling. The tittering in a the delicious run down ddnoiiement bursts upon of the mental us. church at a small contretemps has been our illustration. There you incongruity here between two orders of ideas, is like ; or, as I of interest. should prefer to put For the point seem ludicrous by is it, if between two levels that the interruption must exhibiting clearly a trifling character, by powerfully suggesting a non-reverent point of view. As hinted above, these two sources of laughter, a sudden relief from restraint, are closely oncoming of gladness and a The unexpected presentation which gladdens This is commonly to bring a kind of relief. certainly true of all cases in which the preceding state was The laughter of one of conscious depression and ennui. connected. us seems the young, in response to our often cumbrous attempts to amuse them, may be an escape from a certain strain which belongs to a state of ennui, from the confinement or restraint which the poverty of their surroundings at the moment imposes on them.^ ' " See The Emotions amd the Will, " The Emotions," chap, Cf. Dugas, op. cit, p. 128 ft. xiv., §§ 38-40. THEORIES OF THE LUDICROUS 142 There is another conceivable way of bringing together the effect of sudden gladness and relief from restraint. It has been way urged that laughable things affect us by all of a shock of surprise followed by a sense of Leigh Hunt, for example, thinks that when something we check to check which the breath, a this.' principle, we ; is in proportion to the and that our laughter is a relief This theory embodies a sound physiological one which As to go too far. as at receive a shock of surprise which gives a vivacity of the surprise from relief. we laugh I we have already adopted, but have tried it seems show, a shock of surprise, to ordinarily understand the expression, is not an in- variable antecedent of our response to laughable things. On the other hand, it may even in cases where this wanting, there is be urged with some reason that full moment a shock of the unexpected is of strain as the presentation affronts the custom-trained eye, and that the laughter is the expression of the condoning of this affront, the acceptance of as harmless play. it In order to complete our psychological analysis of the tendencies which combine in our enjoyment of ludicrous things, we need to glance at one other variety of primitive In dealing with this in Chapter laughter, that of contempt. III. we drew the line between the laughable as something " it and the true enjoyment of ". Yet it would be a objective profound error not to recognise the kinship between the two. fact, To begin that there is a real with, the laugh of con- tempt, say over a prostrate foe, or over one whom we have succeeded in teasing by playing off on him some practical joke, readily passes into an enjoyment of the laughable proper. It is obviously in part a only as a laugh so, it ' may Wit and laugh at something. be presumed to involve a Sumow, p. 7. Not less CONTEMPT IN EFFECT OF THE LAUGHABLE 143 serious attitude in the successful spectator than a sneer, say, or the hurling of opprobrious words. direct itself to It will naturally- something in the undignified look of the dis- comfited party which would be likely to be recognised by others also as laughter-moving. Again, though I hold that Hobbes' theory, as he himself formulates errs it, by insisting on the swelling of the spectator's self-consciousness into a feeling of superiority or power, it me to be indisputable that seems to of the laughable which clearly fall all examples into the category of mild degradations do give us a sense of uplifting, something akin As we are reminded by Dr. Bain, malevolence or malice has its protean disguises, and one of them is undoubtedly the joy of the laugher. The note of malicious crowing, of Schadenfreude, may, no doubt, be most distinctly heard in some of the laughter of satire and of the more brutal sort of joke. Yet I suspect that a to Hobbes' " trace of it sudden glory ". lurks, like a beaten foe, inexpugnable though greatly reduced in strength, in a large part of our laughter. There are one or two facts which seem to the conclusion that superiority is implied me in, if to point to not tacitly claimed by, the forms of laughter which have a distinctly One personal aim. of these is the familiar fact that any- thing in the shape of a feeling of inferiority of respect for, of more or even But other facts seem to me to be Of these the first is that if a person the eontemplator. still to, the laughable person inhibits the laughter conclusive. finds himself distinctly involved in the disgrace, the absurd situation, or whatever provokes laughter, he no longer else laughs, or laughs in another key. I see my estimable fellow-pedestrian lose his hat at a street corner where the wind lies in moment ambush: after, I, too, my may soul expands exultingly. fall The a victim to the ambuscade, in THEORIES OF THE LUDICROUS 144 which case I probably stop laughing and become the subject of a different emotion. enough to keep up the Or, am I if hilarity, the "laughing animal" laugh will have changed. All the glory, the sense of uplifting, the exultation will have fled, and the new laugh, which embraces myself along with another unfortunate, will have in tion, will at it The second fact is still more something of humilia" most have shrunk into a chastened joy decisive. If ". no superiority common laughter at others, how does it come about that we all have so very obstinate a dislike to be made its object ? The most amiable of men find it hard is implied in our enough to bare toleration of others' rise to the level of a laughter: the man who can reach the sublime height of finding a real and considerable gratification in hero, or —as some would say—a craven. a genuine and most blameless it must be a There are humour who men are hardly, if of at aU, less keenly sensitive to the attack of another laugher than the most serious of unless we prigs. this understandable Is suppose that laughter at a person interpreted as an assertion of superiority over It instinctively is him ? would seem then to be a reasonable view, that laughter in ordinary cases involves superiority, and regarded by its object, the enjoyment of be very apt to bring with conceive, is it it by its is if so subject will a taste of superiority. This, I the element of truth in Hobbes' theory. The foregoing considerations seem the realm of the ludicrous is not a closed territory, as the theorists for the Our enjoyment of its and indeed absorbs show clearly that and clearly bounded to most part assume amusing sights connects into itself, it to be. itself with, tendencies which we may observe in the laughter of children and uncivilised adults. And, if so, the fact seems to reqmre us to go back upon those primitive tendencies in order to see how far the connection GLORY IN GREETING THE LAUGHABLE holds, that is to say, how far 145 the effects of the ludicrous can be regarded as due to the play of those tendencies. An cede analysis of the primitive forms of laughter, regulation its fact that it is by a reference what we of to ideas, has disclosed the the expression of pleasure, yet not of pleasure, but only of the pleasure, which preall sudden oncoming or increase of call gladness. further, that this joy of laughter is, It has shown many, in if not in us, all by a sudden relaxation of mental strain, and may, indeed, be described by reference to this condition as a sense of relief from pressure. This was seen to hold cases, conditioned good alike in those graver situations in which nervous laughter is apt to occur, in the lighter ones, such as the escape of schoolboys the still from the classroom to the playground, and in which the strain relaxed is momentary lighter ones in only, of which the laughter induced by tickling is the best representative. Now seems evident that it we have ences something analogous to play. of laughter with the on.^ We may now in all these experi- The natural alliance play-mood has already been touched go a step farther and say that these spurts of joyous consciousness which, in simple natures un- trammelled by thought of appearances, express themselves in laughter are of the essence of Play. the gaiety of laughter, to throw off the attitude of seriousness jollity is, To be glad with stiff and to abandon oneself and wearing to mirth The deep kinship between laughter and play itself and in truth, to begin to play. us look at discloses we begin carefully to compare them. some of their common characteristics. as soon as Let Play contrasts with work, not as rest or inactivity contrasts with it, but as light pleasurable activity contrasts > See p. 76, 10 ff. THEORIES OF THE LUDICROUS 146 The with the more strenuous and partly disagreeable kind. same holds good of laughter. in contrast to the It is light pleasurable activity more burdensome activity of our serious hours. Again, play That to say, is is free activity entered it is upon for its own not directed to any end outside sake. itself, to the satisfaction of any want, save that of the play-impulse itself ; and so it is free the sense of compulsion from external —of a " must " restraint, and from at the ear, whether embodied in the voice of a master or in that of a higher —which accompanies the attitude of the worker. when we laugh we self Similarly, are released from the strain and pressure of serious concentration, from the compulsion of the practical and other needs which keep men, in the main, serious beings. It follows at once that play is relative to enjoyed as a relief indefinitely prolonged. same holds true work, that it is from graver occupations, and cannot be And, as has been hinted above, the of laughter and what we appropriately describe as playing the fool. In saying that play is spontaneous activity, freed from the imperious rule of necessity, I do not mean that it is The play-impulse provides its own ends; for, without something to aim at, it could not become conscious Thus in the case of children, at activity in the full sense. any rate, and possibly of young animals also, playing at aimless. some form of combat implies, as Prof. Groos urges, a striving for something akin to conquest. keen In other words, the instinct which underlies the activity seems to bring with it the setting up of something like an end. Similarly with respect to those varieties of children's play which aim at the realisation of an idea, and so resemble too, an instinct, art. In this case, namely, imitative production, prompts to the semblance of a serious conative process, the striving RELATION OP LAUGHTER TO PLAY The same an end. after applies to mirthful activity. playing off a joke on another In neither aim in view. 147 case, as a serious or important one. we In certainly have a definite however, is the end regarded Play ceases to be pure play just as soon as the end, for example conquest, begins to be regarded as a thing of consequence to the player ; and, in manner, laughter ceases to be pure mirth just as soon like as the end, say the invention of a witticism, is envisaged as a solid personal advantage, such as heightened reputation.* A remark like applies to the intrusion of the serious attitude into play when this takes on an elaborate form requiring some concentration of attention. This does not destroy the playful character of the activity so long as the end not viewed as matter of serious import. is respect, laughter resembles play, for too, In this we may take considerable pains in shaping our practical joke without ever losing hold of fun as our end. This brings us to another point of kinship between play and laughter. Each, though marked off from the things of the real serious world, has to do with these in a manner. The play both that is of serious character. play, of animals and of children is largely pretence, to say, the production of a semblance of an action e.g., life, involving some consciousness of This seems inferrible, its illusory in the case of animal the make-believe combats, from the palpable the movements within the restriction of harmless.^ And with limits of the regard to the play of the nursery, it enough the distincbe said to half-recognise it when he speaks of "joy in conquest " as the end of play combats (Plwy of Arwmals, 1 Prof. Groos does not, I think, bring out clearly tion here drawn, though he may pp. 291, 292). ^This restriction sometimes takes on a look of a oonative process of when an older cat, not used to play, is importunately self-control, e.g., challenged by a lively kitten. THEORIES OF THE LUDICROUS 148 is probable that all through a play-action there of the look of absorbing seriousness, a the make-believe. in this double or " in spite dim awareness It is fairly certain that case with a is, divided we have of to do consciousness.' " And, as has been illustrated above, laughter is wont to hover about the domain of the serious. In both cases we find the love of pretence playing pranks with the real world, divest- ing things of their significance and value for the serious part of our mind, and transmuting them by fancy into mere appearances for our amusement. may Another point of similarity be just alluded to. Recent discussions on the nature of play have served to bring out its utility logical benefit as Not only is the young animals of physio- or serviceableness. sportive activity of children and wholesome exercise, it is now seen to be valuable as a preliminary practice of actions which later Thus in play-combats children and to learn the arts of skilful attack and on become necessary. young animals begin defence.^ Much of this benefit of play-activity circumstance that it is a mode of organised is due to the co-operation and supplies a kind of training for the serious social activity I shall hope to show later that laughter has of later years. a like value, not merely as a source of physiological benefit to the individual, but as helping us to of society. the fact of this utility the laugher, become fit members It seems hardly needful to point out that since it is known neither to the player nor to does not in the least afiect the truth of our contention, that their activity is not controlled by external ends which have a practical or other serious value. ' On this " divided consciousness " in play see Groos, Play of AnimaU, p. 303 2, ' On the uses of animal play see Groos, The Play of Man, Part and Lloyd Morgan, Animal Behamour, chap, vi., sect. 2. ff. III., sect. IDENTITY OP PLAY AND LAUGHTER Our comparison justifies so far as to say that mood when we play and "Fun," to support this view. these and the like play and in us in identifying play and mirth, may all varieties making the language seems "frolic," "sport," "pastime," be said to cover at once We of mirth. all joyous are justified, therefore, principle of play fundamental in our theory We may now of laughter.^ when we laugh our Common substantially the same. is 149 proceed to illustrate rather more fully the presence of the play-attitude in the higher domain of laughter, the enjoyment of ludicrous spectacle. To begin with, much may of the laughable illustrated above be regarded as an expression in persons or things play-mood which of the by way Examples have been given seizes the spectator a sympathetic resonance. of in the laughter excited by the spectacle of aimless actions which have the look of frolicsomeness. As our name " word-play " clearly suggests, verbal jokes are recognised as an outcome of the play-mood which throws oflf nonce the proper serious treatment of language. when the odd it eflect of Again, reaches the height of the extravagant has an unmistakable look of play-license. amusing for the Much of the disguise, of pretence, including certain kinds of " aping," appears to involve some recognition of the make-believe aspect of play. when applies to a room, it suggestive of the larities of ways is, of rompish play. disorderly, even Many irregu- thought and action readily take on the look of a self-abandonment to play and confusions as going The to say the least, powerfully ofi" ; for example, irrelevances of idea, droll, aimless-looking actions, such the scene and coming back again and again, 1 Among previous writers on the subject M. Dugas seems to be the one who has had the clearest apprehension of the essentially playful character of laughter (op. cit., chap, vi., especially p. 115 seq.). THEORIES OF THE LUDICROUS 150 by the same person or by of the circus and the senseless repetitions of actions others —a common entertainment As a popular play-house. example, last the effect of the incongruous when aspect on a solemn occasion. This cause instance trifling surely amusing be- is so like the interruptions of child's play. it is How we may assumes a it far can this principle be carried ? May not a good deal of the amusingly incongruous in behaviour and this wears the aspect of be said to affect us as an folly, expression of the play-mood in when circumstances, of intellectual and of moral collapse, And ? is not our amusement at the sight of certain mischances which have the look of a tripping up, others or an outwitting or befooling, either by by circumstance or " fate," traceable to a per- ception of something indistinguishable from playful teasing? Yet we must not rely on this expression of the playful There seem to be many cases of the laughable, for example, amusing vices, absences of mind, and all too much. irrelevances of place, which bring in the solemn where is very opposite of the playful. this principle to tacle does not an extreme. wear the look bring up the playful way. It may mood it is out a mood the Nor do we need to push Even if the laughable spec- where that which expressed is of a play-challenge, it can in the spectator in another so present its particular feature as to throw us off our serious balance, and by a sweet compulsion force us to play with A it rather than to consider it seriously. brief reference to our store of laughable things may suffice to illustrate this. To begin with our laughter at novelties, the odd, the what is it but the outcome of a play-impulse, gay caprice which wills for the instant not to take objects extravagant, a seriously, but to disregard their real nature and significance, PLAYFUL EFFECT OF THE LUDICROUS practical, theoretical, them playthings and even for the eye aesthetic, for Or, ? obtrudes itself, the joy of making the suggestion of a if broken by the newcomer into our rule, 151 field of perception, our laughter announces that the infraction does not matter, that the violation of custom's good law itself is by the passed over and turned into fun blithe play-spirit in us. It is the sorts of same with mischances, awkward fixes, moral and intellectual shortcomings. and all These things obviously have in them what should appeal to our seriousness : they come up for judgment as pitiable, as regrettable, Yet we laugh and often as distinctly culpable. cast aside mood of the moment disposes us to be indulgent, and because the attitude we take up in viewing the ofience as a little one instantly our judicial responsibilities just because the brings up the love of play, the impulse to turn the significant into enjoyable nonsense. Once more, in our laughter obscene, it is to the the same swift transition from the serious attitude to that of play of allusion at artful our merriment. which seems Here again it to be at the is the bottom littleness —a quantity, as pointed out, varying considerably with the quality of the laugher tude and allures it — which disarms the serious In pretences, both hypocrisies and which raise the laugh, the play-attitude. atti- to play. we less serious kinds, note the same swift lapse into For, in order to enjoy these vain shows with perfect gaiety, we must be ready to bring a mental " blind spot " to bear on serious moral significance. everything in them which has Here, too, we take a leap into the world of the player, transmuting what has something of seriousness, something even of offending hurtfulness, into a mere plaything. THEORIES OP THE LUDICROUS 152 The more intellectual varieties of the ludicrous disclose The incongruous, the the same deep-seated characteristic. absurd, the tricks of ambiguous speech, these are things which offend us as serious mortals bent on having consistency of ideas and clearness of utterance in our social They evoke our laughter when they take such a form as to upset this serious attitude and to win us over to regarding them as nothing but entertaining show. In all the more intellectual laughter at things we seem to world. find the perfect form of the mind's play. I say " perfect because psychologists as well as others are wont to speak of though poetic imagination as playful activity, trolled by the ends of art, is seriousness itself when the freer movements of ideas takes One this, as con- compared with the sportive temper us. other illustration of the role of the playful spirit in the sphere of the laughable must not be overlooked. have dealt with the intrusion of the trivial into scenes as an expression of the child's playfulness. has been suggested above, more than it is this. But, as Scenes of great formality, where a degree of severe self-control forced which is I solemn is en- trying to mortals of only a limited gravity, are apt to throw us into a state of highly unstable equilib- rium. Hence the welcome we are disposed to give to anything which touches the playful susceptibilities in us. Under such circumstances small occurrences, which at other times would pass wholly unmarked, are grasped at and become laughable things for necessity of man to escape us, just because of now and the great again into the freedom of play. As already implied, this saturation of laughter with the spirit of playfulness is characteristic that which is purified from all only of the gayer kind, tinge of seriousness. So far PLAY OP INTELLECT LAUGHTER IN 153 as our jocose impulses lend themselves to serious purposes, as for example in the laughter of satire, the playful character Not that tends to become less clearly recognisable. too, we and play ; sport has may here, are unable to find a resemblance between laughter for, as its we know, much serious interest, easily slip across the line the serious attitude. more playful than others, is play or call like the laugher, which divides the playful from we Nevertheless, on the point that laughter what we of and the player, shall need to insist a thing of different tones, some and that its nature and its function can only be clearly determined by distinguishing these. The result of our inquiry is that the impressions of the Our laughable cannot be reduced to one or two principles. laughter at things itself a number It gathers of various tones. is of primitive tendencies it ; up into represents the products of widely removed stages of intellectual and moral evolution. This is virtually admitted by the Intellectual and the Moral principle at seeing dignity unfrocked is all ; who recognise for our laughter presumably of more ancient origin than the " laughter of the mind," which discoursers on the ludicrous are argument takes us for the most part thinking Our of. farther, namely, to the conclusion that the efiect of the laughable, even of what as a sample of the ludicrous, is is given by philosophers a highly complex feeling, containing something of the child's joyous surprise at the new and unheard of; something too of the responsiveness to a play-challenge ; child's gay often something also of the glorious sense of expansion after compression which gives the large mobility to freshly freed limbs of young animals and children. A consequence of this recognition of the relation of the laughable to our laughter as a whole to alter our method is that of treating the subject. we shall need Our problem THEORIES OF THE LUDICROUS 154 naturally transforms itself into the question can : we trace out the organic differentiation and integration of the several psychical tendencies which our analysis has disclosed other words, we we must find that ? In resort to the genetic method, and try to explain the action of the ludicrous upon us in the modest scientific fashion by retracing the stages of its Such explanation may some development. day be crowned by a distinctly philosophical one, if a finer logical analysis succeeds in discovering the essence of the ludicrous It wUl for the present ; it seems to be all that is available. at once be evident that a large investigation into the origin and development of the laughing impulse will take us beyond the limits of pure psychology. We shall have to consider how the impulse grew up in the evolution of the race ; and this will force us to adopt the biological point of view, and ask came to be selected On species. how and this special fixed among group of movements the characters of our hand, laughter the other more than a As hinted is physiological and psychological phenomenon. above, it has a social significance, and the higher stages of its we shall find that evolution can only be adequately dealt with in their connection with the movement of social progress. Lastly, in the it will be by tracing the evolution of laughter human community that we shall best approach the problem of the ideal which should regulate this somewhat Such a study would seem to promise by which laughter has been the past, and by the light of which it unruly impulse of man. us a disclosure of tendencies lifted may and refined in consciously direct itself in the future. 155 CHAPTER VI. THE ORIGIN OP LAUGHTER. To attempt to get back to the beginnings of may well seem to human be too ambitious a proceeding. may are small things, and easily escape laughter Beginnings detection, even when they lie well-lit not far from the eye. How, then, can we hope to get at them when they are hidden in the darkness of the remote past It is ? evident that our method here can only be the modest one of conjecture, a method which must do its conjecture look reasonable, while the fact that is it is it its best to never loses sight of Our aim dealing with the conjectural. to get an intelligible supposition, make by the help of which we may explain how laughter broke on the earthly scene, adding one more to the many strange sounds of the animal world. This bit of conjectural inquiry will begin by trying to answer the question : By what process did the laugh, from being a general sign of pleasure, become specialised into an expression of the uprising of the mirthful, fun-loving or jocose spirit What fun and of It ? It will then address itself to the problem has been the course of development of the would its characteristic mode conjectural account of these far-off but for the of utterance not, of course, be possible to new spirit of ? attempt even a and unchronicled events, instruments of hypothetical construction THE ORIGIN OF LAUGHTER 156 with which the Theory of Evolution has furnished attempting so hazardous a task we us. In have, at least, the ex- ample of one of the most modest of men to draw us on. Charles Darwin has taught us how to be at once daring and cautious in trying to penetrate the darkness of the ages and one can wish nothing better than walk worthily in his steps. behind us to ; It will be evident that in essaying an effort to be able which can at we must use every availmeans, not merely that we try to trace back best end in only a plausible guess This able clue. the history of mirthful utterance, alike in the evolution of the individual and of the species, to its rude inchoate forms, we search for vestiges of utterances vaguely resembling human laughter in the animal world. This last suggestion may well seem to the reader like but that another blow to man's early pride of naturalist who The worthy race. called his species the " laughing animal " did not probably trouble himself about the question of the dignity of the attribute. man things that only way of describing him. Since laughing was one of the could do, it served as a convenient Yet, since the later evolutional psy- chology has led us to be more generous in recognising in the lower animals something closely similar to our of reasoning, it is we need own processes not be greatly shocked to hear that actually crediting other species than our own with a simple sense of fun, and a characteristic manner of expressing the feeling ; that is to say, an utterance answering to our laugh. Now here, if anywhere, we must be on our guard. In attempting to detect traces of mirthful expression in animals we are exposed to a two-fold danger observation of animal ways of interpretation ; —a : that common to all too anthropomorphic kind and that of mistaking in other beings, SUB-HUMAN RUDIMENTS OF MIRTH 157 whether human or sub-human, what we envisage as funny, It is eminently natural, for their conscious fun. when we do not screw ourselves up to the severely scientific attitude, to see signs of chuckling glee in animals. watched somewhere Norway, in remember how I in the early morning, a magpie as he stood for some time ducking throwing up his long tail, with chuckle-like sounds ; I his head and accompanying these movements and how found I it exceedingly hard not to believe that he was having a good laugh at something, possibly the absurd ways of the foreign tourists who his visit judged by the standard Yet, coast. observation, scientific this "natural" interpretation of was scarcely satisfactory. Since our aim compels us to be accept scientific, we cannot " of interpreting the " mischievous common modes Many we may performances of animals. of a monkey's tricks are " seriously doubt whether funny " enough he enjoys them ; yet that human ance jokers have a of gravity. His as, practical jokes. but then certainly does not suggest it; A way solemn it of keeping may mien be said up an appear- consideration of greater weight much is merry joke may be instinct, display of the teasing when this goes beyond a the playful limit, and aims at real annoyance or mischief. that what looks to us The remark probably stories of applies to Having some of the well-known "animal humour,'' for example, that of Charles Dickens about the raven. bered, like a had to This bird, share the garden may it with be remem- a captive eagle. carefully measured the length of this formidable creature's chain, he turned to by good account the occasion of and then, the owner having presumably woke up, made an impudent display of eating the same just safely outside the the giant's sleep rightful stealing his dinner; THE ORIGIN OF LAUGHTER 158 eagle's " sphere of influence This doubtless showed some ". cunning, and something of spite it but ; it is not clear that indicated an enjoyment of the fun of the thing. That this teasing now and again approach the mirthfulness its and playing of is tricks human A not improbable. by animals may attitude of malicious cat that " plays " with captive mouse, half -pretending, as it seems, not to see the small thing's hopeless attempt to "bolt,'' may, perhaps, be enjoying something of the exultant chuckle of a victor. lively human So, too, some of the mischievous behaviour of a and imperfectly domesticated monkey, which a simple-minded sailor has brought to his mother by of making her happy, may disclose a fun, of a malicious playfulness which its germ way of the spirit of capable of enjoying is jokes as such. we may Yet, while question the truth of the proposition that these mischievous actions are enjoyed as practical jokes —in the way in which Uncle Remus represents them —we need not hesitate to attribute to animals a simple form of the child's sense of fun. This trait appears most plainly in the pastimes of the young of our two domestic pets, many familiar species, including pastimes which are quite correctly The described as animal play. particular forms of this playful activity, the tusslings, the attacks and retreats on both sides, the chasings and the determined by special and to a child's love of " pretending". make-believe, for example, an alert foe ; " lies of Is when a proach of a canine stranger, are pretty certainly But, as play, these actions instincts.^ are an expression of high spirits rest, something analogous it not a bit of playful dog, on seeing the ap- low " wearing the look of yet, as soon as the stranger approaches, " gives 'Karl Groos connects both the tusslings and the teariugs of young animals with the instinct of sex-oompetition {Play of Amrnals, p. 35 fi.). " ANIMAL JOKES AND SENSE OF FUN away show" by entering with an almost the the same when disgraceful with him celerity into perfectly friendly relations 159 ? It is a dog teases another dog by startling him, showing signs of enjoying the H. M. Stanley writes trick. My " dog took the same delight in coming up quietly behind a small dog and giving a terrifying bark as does the child in jumping out from a corner and crying boo "} ' ' Owing, to no extent, perhaps, to the fact of its edu- little by man, the dog gives much the cation No of a sense of fun. clearest indications one can observe a dog during a walk with his child-comrades without noting in with their playful proposals. The how readUy he falls infectiousness of an announcement of the playful temper is clearly illustrated The dog imitates the gambols, and will even seem to here. respond to the vocal outbursts of his merry playmates. Darwin has rightly recognised a germ of our '"sense of humour" in a dog's joining in the game of stick- throwing. You throw a bit of stick for him to fetch, and having picked it up he proceeds to carry it away some distance and to squat down with it on the ground just before him. You then come quite close as which he if to take the stick and bears it from him, on off exultingly, repeating the make-believe with evident enjoyment.^ little I seizes it have tested a dog again and again when playing with him and have satisfied myself that he is knows perfectly well that you are and in the play-mood, too so that if you pretend to be serious and to command in this fashion, ; him in sidles your most magisterial voice to give up the stick he up with a hollow show impose on nobody, as not really serious ; if so I of obedience to say, " I am know which could better : you are going on with the game ". ^ The Psychological Review, 1899, ^ Descent of Man, 'P&Tt I., p. 91. cha^p. Hi. All THE ORIGIN OP LAUGHTER 160 the notes of a true sense of fun seem to be present in this the gay and festive mood, a firm resolve desipere in and a strong inclination to play at " pretending ". Prof. Lloyd Morgan gives an example of what certainly case : loco, looks like a dog's merry make-believe in which man's lead takes no part. The writer tells us that he used at one time to take an intelligent retriever to a sandy shore, dog engaged spontaneously where the in the following He buried a number of small crabs in the sand, and pastime. then stood waiting a leg or a claw appeared, "upon till which he would run backwards and forwards giving short barks of keen enjoyment I find it ".' hard to doubt that of joyousness and this was a genuine outburst something indistinguishable from a of love of fun, and that was connected with the " coming The repetitions of the burial when it off" of a practical joke. the dog had seen that it was ineffectual, points clearly to a consciousness of the make-believe character of the per- formance. Whatever a dog's powers of jocosity when uninstructed by man, it seems safe to set down a good share of his highly developed sense of fun to his profound susceptibility to man's educative influence ; which again (as the difference between the educability of the dog and of the cat at once shows) implies an unusual strength of those instincts of attachment to man which have made him almost the type of fidelity. How man far, one wonders, will this educative influence of be likely to go in the case of the most companionable of our domestic pets lie ? W. Preyer of imitating the signs of teUs us, that the dog human gaiety, that ' Animal Life and Intelligence, p. 407. The author strikes most excessively cautious in accepting these evidences of canine me is an as al- jocosity. THE SENSE OF FUN intelligent specimen, will when DOGS IN 161 confronted with our laughter draw back the corners mouth and leap into the Here we seem to, of his with a bright lustre in the eye.^ air may have a rudiment of a genuine laugh, and " to speak rather confusingly of a dog's tail G. J. ". Romanes relates that he perhaps cease laughing with his had a dog who went some way towards qualifying himself for the office of clown. This animal would perform a number of self-taught tricks " For which were clearly intended to excite laughter. lying on his side and violently grinning, instance, while he would hold one leg in his mouth." " stances nothing pleased him so duly appreciated, while, would become Under much these circum- as having his joke no notice was taken if of him, he sulky".'' This animal must, one supposes, have been in an exceptional degree a "funny dog". observer did not take a it might be a shade " seems a pity that the It snapshot less abstract that grin so that " at and " in the air " than the grin of the Cheshire cat, as treated by Mr. Carroll. a dog of What seems manages our smUe. expression, may clear is, Lewis that the physiognomy of to execute a weirdly distorted semblance With we must respect not to the expect part of the vocal too much. The bark not be able to adjust itself to our quick explosions of gaiety. It is commonly said that the dog has a special bark for expressing pleasure, and it seems likely that he employs this when he is said to be seized by the sense of the funniness of things. On the moral side, the possibility of the dog's becoming a humorous beast looks more promising. He certainly exhibits rudiments of feelings and mental attitudes which ' W. Preyer, Die Seele des Emdes, p. 197. ''Quoted by Lloyd Morgan, loc. cit. THE ORIGIN OF LAUGHTER 162 seem in man As the inner to be closely related to a reflective human circle of his friends dog under- I saw, not long since, a small terribly bored. humour. know, he can be going the process of chaining by his mistress before she He drew took him into a shop. a long yawn, and his appearance was eminently suggestive of a keen sense of the absurdity of the shopping habits of ladies, a sense which only wanted the appropriate utterance to become a mUd, tolerant kind of satire. of one's own warning Yet one must be mindful against a too hasty interpretation of such actions. We may now turn to animals much nearer purselves Among monkeys we zoological scale. in the obtain, undoubtedly, something more closely akin to our smUe and laugh. Darwin has made a careful inquiry into the similarities between the two. He tells us that some of the essential features of the facial expression during a laugh, the drawing backwards of the corners of the mouth, the formation of wrinkles and expressive of a of mind in various kinds of monkeys "? under the eyes, pleased state etc., " are characteristic Darwin gives us young chimpanzee will make a kind of barking noise when he is pleased by the return of any one to whom he is attached, a noise which the keeper With respect to laughter-like sounds, A several pertinent facts. interprets as a laugh. tion is The correctness of this interpreta- confirmed by the fact that other kind of " tittering sound " when they monkeys utter a see a beloved person. A young chimpanzee when tickled under the armpits produces a more decided chuckling or laughing sound. " Young ourangs, also, when tickled will make a chuckling sound and put on a grin." It has been found by Dr. L. Robinson that the young of ' Expression of Emotions, p. 208 ; cf. p. 132 ff RUDIMENT OF LAUGHTER APES IN 163 the anthropoid apes are specially ticklish in the regions of the surface of the body which correspond with the ticklish regions in the case of the child. Not only a young so, chimpanzee will show great pleasure when tickled, rolling over on his back and abandoning himself to the pastime, much as a child does. When the tickling is prolonged he resembles a child further by defending ticklish spots. too, does a young ourang. many apes, like It may make children, So, be added that young a pretence of biting when tickled. To sum up the young of the higher apes have something : resembling our smile and laugh, and produce the requisite movements when Their attempt at laughter, as pleased. might be disposed to regard it, we appears as a sign of sudden joy in circumstances in which a child will laugh, e.g., on the reappearance of a beloved companion after a considerable It further interval. occurs when the animal is tickled, along with other manifestations which point to the existence of a rudiment of the child's capacity for fun and for the make-believe of play. One more fact should be laughable. It is probable, observers, that is monkeys added in order to bring out human the similarity here to the attitude towards the from the testimony of several dislike being laughed at.^ Now, it true that the enjoyment of fun and the dislike to being made its object are not the same to vary together in the case of thing. men ; Nor do they seem otherwise the agelast would not be so often found among those who keenly resent being the object of others' laughter. they may creatures which show a the objects of laughter 1 Nevertheless, be regarded in general as correlative traits distinct distaste for being may made be supposed to be capable of See Darwin, Ths Descent of Man, Part I., chap. iii. THE ORIGIN OP LAUGHTER 164 the laughing attitude, so far at least as to be able to understand it. Turning now from sub-human kinds of laughter to the full expression as we know it in ourselves, years of life. we may briefly and laugh during the first Here the question of the date of the first trace the history of the smile appearance of these expressive movements becomes important ; and happily we have more than one set of careful observations on the point. With respect to the smile, which be the to first to show Darwin and by Preyer. itself, commonly supposed notes made by is we have According to the former, the first smile appeared, in the case of two of his children, at the age of forty-five days, and, of a third, at a somewhat earlier date.i back, Not only were the corners of the mouth drawn but the eyes brightened and the eyelids slightly closed. Darwin adds that the circumstances pointed a happy state of mind. Preyer is much points out the difficulties of noting the pleasure. In the case of his own boy, first it to He fuller here.^ true smile of seems, the move- ments of the corners of the mouth, accompanied by the formation of dimples in the cheek, occurred in the second week, both in the waking and in the sleeping father thinks, however, that the first occurred on the twenty-sixth day, when the child's eyes lighted on the mother's smile, he adds, it was not an imitation The state. smile of pleasure after a face. good meal This early of another's imply a joyous recognition of the mother. It ; nor did was just the instinctive expression of a feeling of bodily satisfaction. ' So in The Expression of the Emotions, pp. 211, 212. contributed to Mind, vol. of which smiled when ' The references are ii. (1877), p. 288, forty-five, the other to his work, In the notes two infants are spoken when of, forty-six days old. Die SeeU des Kindes, 4te Auflage. one DATE OF INFANT'S FIRST SMILE Other observers first Dr. differ, too, in respect of the date of the occurrence of the true expressive smile. Champneys puts it 165 in the sixth, For example. Sigismund in the seventh week, agreeing roughly with Darwin whereas Miss Shinn ; gives as the date the latter half of the first month, and so Another lady, Mrs. K. C. supports Preyer's observations. Moore, would go farther than Preyer and say that the first may be added that smile occurs on the sixth day of Miss Shinn is more precise than Preyer in her account of the early development of the smile. the first — She tells us that, whereas —whom we will henceforth call (latter half of first month) was merely smile of her niece by her name, Ruth It life.^ the outcome of general comfort, a smile occurred in the second month which involved an agreeable perception, namely, that of faces bending over the child in which she took great ing much interest. This smile of special pleasure, express- gaiety, occm-red when she was lying fed, warm, and altogether comfortable. some At the It is fairly certain that these differences indicate inequalities of precocity in the children observed. same time, it seems probable that the several observers are dealing with different stages in the development of the smile. Preyer shows clearly that it undergoes considerable expansion, involving increased complexity of movement, and the addition of the important feature, the brightening of the eye. Mrs. Moore gives no description of sixth and seventh days, and vague resemblance ^ is what she saw on the presumably referring to a rudiment of a smile which had no to a Champneys and Sigismund are quoted by Preyer. Miss Shiun's ob- servations are given in her work, Notes on the Development of a Child, p. Mrs. Moore's are to be found in her Essay, The Mental Development 238. of a Child, p. 37. Dr. L. Hill writes that he noted the boy when he was three weeks older. old, and in his girl first smile in his when she was some days THE ORIGIN OF LAUGHTER 166 expressive significance and some things in Prayer's account ; lead us to infer that he is less highly de- that the movements speaking of a veloped smile than Darwin.^ All that can certainly be said, then, is of a smile, as an expression of pleasure, undergo a gradual process of development, and that an approach to a perfect smile of pleasure occurs some time in the second month of life. If we turn to the dates assigned to the a laugh, we Darwin encountered in the case of the smile. a smile first occurrence of find the uncertainties are at least equal to those may illustrates how gradually take on an accompaniment of sound One which grows more and more laughter-like. of his children, who, he thinks, first smiled at the age of forty -five days, developed about eight days later a which, he adds, however, till " more little " impressive smile, accompanied by a perhaps represented a laugh much later (113th distinct ". It " noises Another days old, accompanied his smile very like laughter ". A laughter, with all the it, occurred in the case of child of his, by was not, day) that the noises became broken up into the discrete sounds of a laugh. when and bleating " noise, sixty-five indications of genuine fun behind one of his children on the 110th day, when the game was tried of throwing a pinafore over the child's face suddenly withdrawing it, this being varied and then by the father's suddenly uncovering his own face and approaching the He adds that, some three or four weeks before appeared to enjoy as a good joke a little child's. this, his boy pinch on his nose and cheeks. Preyer puts the date of the first laughter-like sounds, as ' See especially wiiat lie says about an unusual expression, including " a strongly sparkling eye," which occurred in the eighth week, op. cit., p. 194. DATE OF FIRST LAUGH he puts that of the first smile, earlier 167 He than Darwin. says he observed a visible and audible laugh in his boy on This was a chuckling at the view the twenty-third day. The sounds were repeated of a rose-tinted curtain. in the following weeks at the sight of slowly swinging coloured objects and at new sounds, same time he tells cognisable as such going on, by first his mother. excited what was month when the boy it will Among the other observers of the most careful, Miss Shinn. be remembered, puts the date of smile as early as the first month, assigns the genuine laughter to the 118th day. child's first by the At the a person not looking at may suflSce to refer to one This lady, who, Ruth's those of the piano. occurred in the eighth first was playing with it e.g., us that a prolonged loud laughter, re- sight of the mother making was It It faces. is worth adding that Ruth reached her third performance eleven days In this later.^ case, too, it is probable that we have to do, not merely with differences of precocity in the children ob- what served, but with the difficulties of determining clear example of the expression doubt that the stages. This full reiteration of is concerned.'^ our laughter There is is is a no reached by brought out fully by Darwin, and is allowed Yet how much of the series of more or less laughter-like sounds produced by an infant during states of by Preyer. pleasure is to be regarded as entering into the development of laughter, it is give out curious not easy to say. little the 105th day, that ' I is Miss Shinn heard Ruth chuckling sounds of two syllables on thirteen days before she produced her am indebted to Miss Shinn for a sight of her complete original of my references are to these. notes ; and some * It is regrettable that Preyer does not describe with some precision the sounds produced by his boy on the twenty-third day. THE ORIGIN OF LAUGHTER 168 laugh. She adds under the date, 113tb day, that is to say, five days before the laugh, that the child had developed new throat sounds, crowing, croaking, and showed a etc., strong disposition to vary sounds in a pleasurable mood. seems highly improbable that these sounds were not It preparatory stages in the development of the laugh.i It is fairly certain that laughing Preyer'a words may no comes after smiling. doubt seem to suggest that the laugh (twenty-third day) comes before the sixth day) ; says that laughter ; first smile (twenty- but his account of the development of the two shows plainly that smile first this is not his is and remarks, meaning. He distinctly only a strengthened and audible (laut) further, that " in all (children) alike the utterance of pleasure begins with a scarcely noticeable smile, which quite gradually passes into laughter in the course of the first three months ''. He adds that this development depends on that of the higher brain centres, and the capability of having perceptions.^ The first laughter is, like the smile, an expression of pleasure. As Preyer puts it, the laughter is a mere heightening of the look of pleasure. It a higher level of agreeable consciousness. marks, however, Whereas the first clumsy experiments in smiling denote nothing but a comfortable state of repletion, the first attempts at laughter are responses to gladdening swinging coloured This laughter at objects, new sense-presentations, such as and the new sounds of a piano. visual and aural presentations was followed, according to Preyer, between the sixth and the Miss Shiun insists that the laugh did not develop out of the chuckle, it appeared, as many articulate sounds appear, with something of a sudden completeness. But this is just what we should expect if the laugh is an inherited movement. ' since apparently ^Op. cii., p. 197. EARLY FORMS OF LAUGHTER ninth week by a laughter more distinctly joyous or jubilant, as the child regarded his mother's face and appeared to This laughter of mental gaiety seems at an recognise it. early age —about month the fourth movements of the limbs etc.) (raising —to ally with itself and lowering of the arms, as a complex sign of high spirits or gladness. How far the provocative own) implied a rudiment child's am of fun, I and agreeable it head (or not sure. shows, however, the early connection between though by mentioned laughter of Darwin, namely, suddenly uncovering the his 169 It laughter surprise, that is to say, a mild shock, which, borders on the alarming, is on the whole glad- dening. One other early form young animals, certain has been of laughter, is is by found also in tickling. This observed, in the case of the child, in the second first or the third month. Preyer's tickling in the second month. ^ that his which that excited who was little girl, to titillation, responded first boy laughed in response to Dr. Leonard Hill tells me by-the-bye specially sensitive by laughter in the tenth week. Since our analysis has led us to regard the effect of tickling as largely mental, and as involving a playful attitude, this fact confirms the conclusion that the specialised laughter which is the accompaniment of play occurs in a well-defined form within the To sum up : first three months. We find, within the first two or three months, both the smile and the laugh as expressions of pleasure, including sensations of sense-presentations. We bodily comfort of laughter under tickling, which Preyer puts this at the end of the ' to be late. 2 Op. cit., p. 96. and gladdening find, further, in the reflex reaction first is observable about the half-year, which seems to me THE ORIGIN OF LAUGHTER 170 end of the second month, the germ of a sense of fun, or of mirthful play by excited and ; little this is indicated too in the laughter pinches on the cheek at the end of the third month. It certain that these tendencies are not learned is This imitation. is proved by the that imitative Preyer, normal child till fact, established movements do not occur considerably later, and by the in by by the fact that Laura Bridgman, who was shut out by her blindness and deafness from the lead of companions, the child, We developed these expressions. must conclude, then, that they are inherited tendencies. Here the psychologist might well stop in his inquiries, if Darwin and others had not opened up the larger vista of Can we, by carrying the eye the evolution of the species. along this vista, conjecture came to be acquired The first how these instinctive movements in the course of animal evolution question that arises in this inquiry is ? whether the smile or the laugh was the earlier to appear in the The expressions course of racial development. below man do not offer any of animals decisive clue here. The an- thropoid apes appear both to produce a kind of smile or grin, and to utter sounds analogous may, however, be contended that much less like to our laughter. It this so-called laughter is our laughter than the grin is like our smile. In the absence of better evidence, the fact that the smile appears first in the life of the child must, according to a well-known law of evolution, be taken as favouring the hypothesis that man's remote ancestors learned to smile before they could rise to the achievement of the laugh. This is further supported the individual, the laugh by the when it fact that, in the case of occurs announces a higher form of pleasurable consciousness, the level of perception SMILE AS PRECEDING LAUGH as distinguished by the pressed among from the first level of sensation smile. am Lastly, I imbeciles the smile persists lower degeneration than the laugh. which is ex- informed that down in the scale of Beddard writes to Dr. F. E. me: "I remember once seeing a 171 defective human monster (with no frontal lobes) whose only sign of intelligence was drawing up the lips when music was played "} commonly held It is much more is a pressing necessity for purposes of family and tribal preservation the former that, since the expression of pain, apprehension of danger among animals suffering, or is than that of pleasure or contentment,, developed considerably earlier than the latter. According to this view, we can understand why the adumwe find in animals brations of a smile and a laugh which closely related to man have been so imperfectly developed and appear only sporadically. Supposing that the smile was the movements pressive species, we can first conjecture how it came to be the and best-defined expression of pleasurable ing with this point of the two ex- human common to appear in the evolution of the we may states ? In deal- derive more definite aid from Darwin's principles. The mouth fact that the basis of a smile is a human of over, movement of the at once suggests a connection with the primal source enjoyment and there seems, moresome evidence of the existence of such a A baby after a good meal will, I believe, go as of animal to be connection. ; on performing something resembling sucking movements. The first these smiles may have arisen as a special modification of movements when there was a particularly lively feel- ing of organic contentment or well-being. ' On I believe, further, the point of the priority of the smile in the process of evolution, see Th. Bibot, La Psychologie des Sentiments, p. 346. THE ORIGIN OF LAUGHTER 172 that an infant when food is illustrated by choice apt to carry out movements of the mouth is shown to A it. similar tendency seems to he was given delicacy it a of the Again, our hypothesis ".^ in the fact that, according to others, the first smiles of infants happy condition when movement partaking nature of "an incipient smile some support which, at meal-time, slightly raised the corners of the mouth, the finds monkey the behaviour of a Preyer and were noticed during a of repletion after a good meal.^ Supposing the smile in origin its to have thus been organically connected with the pleasurable experience of we can easily see how it might get generalised sated appetite, Darwin and Wundt have iuto a common made us familiar with the principle that expressive move- sign of pleasure. ments may be transferred to states of feeling resembling those of which they were primarily the manifestations. The scratching of the head during a state of mental irri- tation is There a well-known instance of the transference. are, I believe, facts which go some way towards verifying the supposition of a transference of eating-i^igns to states of lively satisfaction are wont and pleasure generally. to express keen pleasure by gestures, e.g., Savages rubbing the belly, which seem to point to the voluminous satisfactions of the primal appetite. The clearest evidence, however, seems to be furnished by the account of a baboon given us by Darwin. This creature, after having been made furiously angry by his keeper, on making friends again, "rapidly moved up and down his jaws and lips and looked pleased ". Darwin, Expression of the Emotions, p. 133. Lehmann, in his interesting account of the development of the emotions and their expression in the individual, suggests that the first im' ^A. which expresses the pleasure of sweetness, is movements of sucking (Hauptgesetze des mensM. perfect smile of the infant, genetically related to the QefahlsUbens, ss. 295, 296). GENESIS OP SMILE Darwin adds that a may movement similar be observed in a man when he 173 or quiver of the jaws laughs heartily, though with us the muscles of the chest rather than those of the and jaws are " spasmodically aiFected "} lips Judging from the interval between the occurrence of the first smile and of the we may laugh in the first life of conjecture that laughter did not the individual, grow into a full sound in "primitive man," or his unknown immedi- reiterated ate predecessor, much till We later. should expect that a power would be a condi- considerable development of vocal mode tion of man's taking heartily to this The study of the infant The babble of the second and made up of a reiteration of many of emotional utterance. certainly supports this idea. third months, which is sounds, may The observations speech. vocal and consonantal prepare for laughter, as it certainly does for of Miss Shinn, quoted above, on the expansion of the range of vocal sound before the occurrence of the They seem first laugh are most significant here. to point to the fact that in the evolution of the species the first laughter was selected from among a great variety of sounds produced in pleasurable states. now Let us suppose that our immediate animal ancestor has reached the level of clear perceptions, and is given to the utterance of certain reiterated sounds during states of Let us further conceive of him as having his pleasure. sympathies developed up to the point of requiring a medium for but pleasures, and more expr^essing not only pains particularly for calling others' attention to the of cheering family who and welcome objects, of of the Such an animal his primal smiles would require vocal utterances presence member of a has been abroad for a time. would need to improve on ' e.g., and grins. some strength Darwin, Expression of the Emotions, pp. 134, 135. He in order THE ORIGIN OP LAUGHTER 174 something answering to the cackle to reach distant ears, of the hen when she has discovered some choice morsel and How desires to bring her brood to her side. provement to be effected is this im- ? One may hazard the guess that the process may have been The position of the open mouth something of this kind. during a broad smile was, we may reason, in itself favour- We able to the production of vocal sounds. analogy of positions of the eyes, speak of position " of the vocal position it as the chamber when opened. would pretty certainly be may, after the " primary This primary specially favourable to the utterance of a certain kind of sound, let us say that commonly indicated by " eh," ^ together with something of the guttural or chuckling accompaniment of this in the sound of laughter. the We may then infer that, reiterated babble-like sounds states of pleasurable satisfaction, the would be taken up. We when some Of were produced during same (primary) position should thus get, as psycho-physical concomitants of the sensed position of the opened mouth during a broad smile or iterate the whole " grin," not only a disposition to re- "eh" or some similar sound as a completion of the action, of which the opening of the mouth is the first stage, but a definite associative co-ordination between the movement of opening the mouth and the reiterated actions the muscles of the respiratory and vocal apparatus. way we may understand how, when the happy feeling excited into the joy of recognising a by the of this the pleasurable state expressed by a smile increased in intensity, when In as, for example, sight of a face passed member of the family, the ^ As pointed out above, the French e sound seems to be the common one in children's laughter. Preyer tells us that the corresponding sound in German (0) occurs in the first infantile babble (Development of Intellect, p. 239). TRANSITION FROM SMILE TO LAUGH movements would widen out 175 into those of a laughter-like utterance. It appears to me that, in this connection, the observed course of development of laughter in the individual without its suggestiveness. is not Miss Shinn remarks that Kuth's — mouth was opened wide on the 113th day five days before the first laugh while the child was tossed and tumbled. Under date of the 134th day, again, we read of much — laughter of an inaudible kind, consisting of broad laughterlike smiles and these observations certainly show that first laughter an expanded smile, ; about the date of the by the absence indistinguishable from a laugh save respiratory and vocal adjunct, words, they her first tell was frequent. us that about the time when of the In other she achieved laugh she was freely practising the intermediate facial step between the and the true laugh. earlier smile This theory would plainly illustrate Mr. Herbert Spencer's principle, that states of feeling affect the voluntary muscles in the order of increasing calibre, the smaller being called into play by But of higher intensity. must take into account and by those feelings of lower intensity, the larger this theory is not enough. We also the order of frequency of use, of consequent liability to discharge in the connected nerve-centres. in the seems probable that the muscles engaged It movements of the mouth and those exercised in phonation would, for these reasons, be specially liable to be acted upon. These wider tendencies would, according to the above hypothesis, be assisted by special associations. These would secure the combination of the two groups of movements, which I have assumed to have been employed independently as utterances of pleasurable feeling : namely, those involved in smiling, and those underlying the happy reiterated sounds of a quasi-infantile babbling. first THE ORIGIN OP LAUGHTER 176 One element the laugh, in explosive vigour, seems its Here, I think, the unaccounted for on this hypothesis. eifect of relief human from laughter, strain, may which be called is common so The in. For example, of the child seems to illustrate this element. that which occurs and during tickling, in a game of bo-peep, at the sight of the mother makiag the first may be said to dissolved. Perhaps faces from a serious attitude suddenly arise a factor in earliest laughter man great laugh was produced by proximate progenitor, when relief came or by his after fear or the So far as primitive laughter was the outcome of such concentrated energy seeking relief, this circumstance would help to account for the prolongation as well strain of battle. as for the strength of the sounds. Our conjecture cannot lay claim to be a hypothesis. It makes no attempt to explain the precise forms of the changes which enter both into the smile and into the laugh. At best, it is only a rough hint as to a possible mode of genesis. I have here treated of the genesis of laughter under more general aspect as an expression of pleasurable states of feeling. We have seen, however, that within the its first three months of hfe another and clearly speciaUsed variety of laughter emerges, namely, that called forth foUows from our analysis of the It tickling. tickling that it is one of the earliest demands special by of manifestations, in a clear form, of the laughter of fun or of play. it efiect As such, any attempt to explain attention in the development of laughter. As form, a specialised reaction having a clearly it is tickling is marked reflex natural to ask whether laughter in response to not inherited, and, evolution of the race. if And we so, how it arose in the find that suggestions have TICKLING OF ANIMALS been made for explaining the We phenomenon. genesis 177 of curious this will first glance again at the facts, and then examine the hypotheses put forward for explaining them. Here, again, the question how far animals are susceptible of the effect becomes important. Darwin's remark, that more if I have already alluded to a young chimpanzee particularly under the armpits, he responds of laughter. The sound The emission of these sounds is amount of is that a wrinkling in the lower young chimpanzee when by the of effect of tells us He apes. tickled for a slight Dr. Louis eyelids.^ on the young of anthropoid some time under the armpits would roll over on his back showing teeth and accompanying the movements, just as a child does. A The young all his by defensive simian grin young ourang at the a very similar Zoological Gardens (London) behaved in way. a kind accompanied by retraction Kobinson publishes other observations tickling by of a chuckling or laughing kind. corners of the mouth, and sometimes of the is tickled, of other animals, too, betray some degree Stanley Hall remarks that a dog will of ticklishness. retract the corners of his mouth and thus go some way tickled over the ribs.^ towards smiling if finds that horses and pigs are also ticklish ; Dr. Robinson and he thinks that these animals have specially ticklish regions, which correspond to a considerable extent to those which have been ascertained in the case of the child. We may now refer to the first appearances of the tickling reflex in the child. defensive 1 2 As pointed out above, the response by movements appears shortly Ex^ession of the Emotions, pp. 132-3. See the article already quoted on "The Laughing," etc., p. 33, after birth, whereas Psychology of Tickling, THE ORIGIN OF LAUGHTER 178 the earliest instance of a response second, or in the be noted that this date first is first clear occurs in the It is to distinctly later than that of the laughter of pleasure, though that of the by laughter half of the third month. first it is not far removed from appearance of the laughter of gaiety or jubilation. These chronological facts bear out the theory that the laughter of a tickled child has a distinct psychical antecedent. follows : On this point Dr. L. Robinson writes to me as "I have never been able to succeed in eliciting laughter from young infants under three months old means by of tickling, unless one also smiled and caught their attention in some such way ". This evidently points to the influence of mental agencies even in the first stages of laughter from tickling. With respect to the parts in which the tickling first excites laughter, difierent observers appear to have reached dissimilar results. Preyer distinctly speaks of the tickling of the sole of the foot as provoking laughter in the second month. Whether he Dr. Leonard Hill tried other parts he does not say. tells responded to tickling me that one of his children first when the titillation attacked the palm of the hand, or ran up the arm. Responses to the tickling of the neck and soles of the feet came later. The fact that the efiect of tickling becomes so well defined by, or soon after, the end of the second month, proves pretty conclusively that it is an inherited reflex and the evolutionist naturally asks what it means, what significance has been in the life of our ancestors. its Dr. Stanley Hall carries back evolutional speculation very far, and suggests that stratum of our psychic in in tickling life, that we may have it is the oldest a survival of a process remote animal progenitors for which touch was the only „REMOTE_ANCESTRY^P_IlCKLlIiG He sense. 179 supposes that in these circumstances even light or"ininimal"touches, say those coming from the movements of small parasites, being unannounced by sight or other far-reaching sense, would strong tionately explain how be accompanied by dispropor- reactions. He does not attempt to He laughter grew out of these reactions. does indeed call them reactions "of escape," but he does not follow up the idea by hinting that the violent shakings body by laughter, when of the it came, helped to get rid of the little pesterers. In truth, this ingenious thinker make the explanation of the laughter hardly appears to of tickling, as distinguished from the other reactions, the subject of a special inquiry.^ A more serious attempt to explain the evolution of the laughter of tickling has been He, made by Dr. Louis Robinson. too, hints at the vestigial survival of parasites, experiences of but appears to think that these account only for the disagreeable effects which are brought about when hairy orifices of the nostril and the ear are tickled. limitation strikes one as a little arbitrary. of laughter, which Dr. L. Hill called forth his fingers run up the arm of his of a vestigial reflex The the This reaction when he made infant, is surely suggestive handed down from ages of parasitic pestering.^ With regard to the laughing reaction, which, as seen, he considers to involve a distinct mode we have of stimulation, it is an inherited form of that common mode animals, which consists in an exchange young play among good-natured and make-believe attacks and defences, or a he suggests that of of sort of ^ See game of sham-fight. tlie article already quoted. Dr. Kobinson considers that another agreeable efiect of tickling maybe an inherited echo of the caresses of man's progenitors. ^ THE ORIGIN OF LAUGHTER 180 In support of this theory he lays stress on the fact that susceptibility to tickling number is shared in by the young of a of species of animals standing high in point of intelligence, including not only the higher apes, but the dog and the horse. He adds that, in general, there is a concomitance between the degree of playfulness of a young creature and that of its ticklishness, though lambs and kids which are not ticklish are allowed to be an awkward exception. If tickling is a playing at fighting we may expect it, we know that the first rude attacks of man, so far as like Now other kinds of play, to mimic serious forms of assault. we can gather from the movements of a passionate infant, took the forms of striking, tearing with the nails and biting. may Robinson puppy Dr. us that about 10 per cent, of the children he tells has examined pretended to bite as a Tickling be said to be a sort of mild pretence at clawing. when they were tickled, just will do. Dr. Robinson goes a step farther and seeks to show that the areas of the bodily surface which are specially ticklish in children are those likely to be attacked in serious warfare. In nearly all of them, he says, such as a large artery, is some important structure, close to the surface and would be were penetrated. They would liable to injury if the skin thus be highly vulnerable regions, and consequently those which would be singled out for attacks by teeth or claws. He argues that the same relation holds in the case of animals which attack one another in the same The regions of way as man. special ticklishness in their case, too, appear to correspond, roughly at least, with vulnerable regions. Indeed, in the young chimpanzee and the young ourang these ticklish areas are approximately the same as in the child. TICKLING AS PLAY-COMBAT 181 From all this he concludes that ticklishness, being bound up with the mimic warfare which fills so large a space in the life of many young animals, has its utility. The strong liking to be tickled, which children and, apparently, some other young animals express, serves, in combination with the playful impulse to carry out this gentle mode of attack, to develop mimic attacks and defences which and serious are of high value as training for the later warfare. These applications of the evolution theory are certainly and promising. interesting parasites I think the idea of relief might be worked out May further. it from not be that the light touches given by the fingers of the parent, or other member parasites of the ancestral family when hunting for on the surface of the young animal, have, by association with the efieets of relief from the troublesome visitors, have developed an agreeable feeling-tone As we ? mental seen, the laughter of tickling has a distinctly antecedent ; it appears in the child, only ning to enjoy laughingly little when he begin- is pinches on the cheek, and The otherwise to show a germ of a sense of fun. light and of touches, reminiscent at once of unpleasant settlers, delivering fingers, would, one imagines, be exactly fitted to supply that dissolution into nothing of momentary apprehension indicated by our analysis of the mental factor in tickling. With respect to Dr. Robinson's hypothesis, knowledged ungrudgingly to be a tical construction. facts, palm of the is may be ac- hypothe- But, as the writer frankly confesses, the here and there, do not point in serious objection it brilliant piece of its direction. A very the fact that the sole of the foot and the hand are not taken to establish a correspondence into account in his attempt between the ticklish areas of THE ORIGIN OF LAUGHTER 182 the surface and a high degree of vulnerability. Hall's returns it is the sole of the foot which quently mentioned as a ticklish area it was the first to and, as ; In Stanley is most we have fre- seen, give rise to laughter in the case of one child at least.i There is another and more serious objection to Dr. Robin- One may urge that the occurrence of such violent movements would, by shaking the body and by inducing fatigue much earlier than son's theory as need an explanation of laughter. be detrimental to that prolonged be, pretty certainly practice of skill in attack son attaches so much and defence, The supposition that playmate ; among combative animals The I think, highly probable. is which Dr. Robin- a variety of play de- tickling is veloped by natural selection children, to importance. is, play of animals, like that of largely a form of social activity involving a and is apt, as we know, to take the form of attack and defence, as in chasing, throwing over, pretending to bite, etc. These playful attacks closely related to teasing ; merely a play-imitation of the first stage of combat, that of Tickling pretty ob- challenging or exciting to contest.^ viously finds a fitting place we have seen, may be viewed as are, as indeed, teasing among the simpler forms of playful combat which have a teasing-like character. over, these forms of social play all More- seem to show, in a particularly clear manner, the utility referred to in the preceding chapter. 1 Stanley Hall also suggests that the most ticklish parts, which, according to his inquiries, are the sole of the foot, the throat, etc., are the " most vulnerable ". But he does not explain what he means by vulnerable here, and certainly does not appear to use the word in the sense given it by Dr. L. Eobinson. ^ Groos deals with the teasing of animals under the head of " Fighting Plays " {Play of Ammals, p. 136 ff.). LAUGHTER UTILITY OF Now, IN TICKLING this idea will, I think, help us to loud and prolonged laughter came to join bative game it understand how itself to the com- and being play — pure, —was to be developed out of teasing attacks, of tickling good-natured play 183 tickled. If would become a matter of the highest importance that first of all, that the assailant not serious attack, but its made it it This would mean, should be clearly understood to be such. clear that his playful semblance ; aim was and secondly, that the attacked party expressed his readiness to accept the assault in good part as sport. would be of the greatest It consequence to the animal that chanced to be in the play- mood and wished to make overtures of friendly combat that he should be sure of an equally gamesome attitude in the One may see this by watching what happens when a dog, unwisely trying to force a frolic on another dog, is met by a growl and possibly by an uncovering of the canine teeth. Now, what better sign of recipient of the challenge. good-temper, of readiness to accept the attack as pure fun, could nature have invented than the laugh doubfc, a pretty ? The smile is, no Yet good indicator in some circumstances. one must remember that the rudimentary smile of an apelike ancestor our own may, now and again, have been misleading, as A laugh would presumably smiles are apt to be. be less easy to affect in such circumstances than a smile any and, in case, it would be far less liable to be over- looked. In saying that the laughter which accompanies tickling and other value to closely allied its forms of play in children owes being an admirable friendly playful mood, I do not absent. mean its of announcing the that other signs are Dr. L. Robinson reminds us that a tickled child will roll over and the way on his rolling over back just seem like a to be puppy. The laughter two congenitally connected THE ORIGIN OF LAUGHTER 184 modes of abandonment of other ticklish animals, may It In the young to the playful attack. e.g., the puppy, the rolling over of itself suffice to give the friendly signal. seems not unlikely that this consideration, the utility of laughter as a guarantee to a playful challenger that his overtures will be received in the proper spirit, applies to the evolution of ally laughter which enters into such forms of all play as the pretence to attack, to frighten, and gener- social what we call good-natured teasing. It has been suggested that teasing might well be taken as the starting- By point in the evolution of play.^ by regarding we might a feature of social play, sideration of utility by the much, at fact, with this con- One is tempted, too, to follow this recognised in common language, that the later and more refined laughter least, of analogous to the set out constructing our theory of the in evolution of laughter. course adopting this idea, and laughter, in its elementary form, as essentially is effect of tickling.^ Nevertheless, as we have seen, the best evidence attainable points to the conclusion that this simple form of the laughter was preceded by, and grew out of social play of, a less specialised kind of laughter, that of sudden accession of pleasure. We may by tickling conjecture that the laughter provoked was reached in the evolution of our race soon after this reaction passed out of its primal tiated and undifferen- form as a general sign of pleasurable excitement, and began to be specialised as the expression of mental gaiety and of something like our hilarity. ^ H. M. Stanley, Psychological Beview, 2 This idea, that when we laugh mentally analogous to that The fact, noted above, 1899, p. 87. at ludicrous things the process of being tickled, is funda- has been made the basis of a curious and suggestive physiological theory of laughter, developed by a German writer. See Ewald Hecker, Die Physiologie und Psychologic des Lachens v/nd des Komischen. THE OLDEST FORM OP LAUGHTER that children only laugh in response to tickling are in a pleasurable state of mind seems hypothesis that the love of fun, which tickling and makes it of mirthful play with is to 185 when they confirm the at the bottom of perhaps the earliest clear instance its element of make-believe, first emerged gradually out of a more general feeling of gladness. 186 CHAPTER VII. DEVELOPMENT OF LAUGHTEB DURING THE PIEST THREE YEARS OP LIFE. Having examined the earliest and germs of the laughing impulse to the consideration of during the the new its distinctly hereditary in the child, we may pass expansion and specialisation am Although, so far as I first years. aware, child-study has not yet produced a methodical record of the changes which this interesting expression of feeling undergoes, we may by accessible be able to trace out of development. its Two how help of such data as are some of the main directions closely connected problems are involved here (a) : the expressive movements, the laugh and the smile, themselves change and get differentiated ; and (b) how the psychical process which precedes and excites these expressive movements grows and differences itself amusement enumerated in complexity into the various forms of gaiety or above. In dealing with these early manifestations course, look for reactions we shall, of which are spontaneous, in the and the lead of others. determine what are such. sense of not being due to imitation Yet it It has will not always be easy to been pointed out above that laughter is the most contagious of the expressive movements. dren, therefore, who are much given to imitation one of Chil- may be HOW TO GET PURE CHILD'S LAUGHTER 187 expected to show this contagiousness in a particularly clear manner. The however, not really so formidable as difficulties are, they might at seem to first If a child be. is, on the one hand, highly susceptible to the contagion of laughter, there is, is on the other, no expression of his feeling in which he more spontaneous. The swift directness of the " natural may or spontaneous laugh Not only fine observer. in the tone of and the laughter and when real, The note of affected laughter child is not it perfectly natural is It is well known artificial. particularly plain is careful to where a merely reproducing the laughter of others at the moment, but has is when may be detected merely imitative and is it observers of children. thing be readily discriminated by a but a difference so, laughable. it suggested to him by others that a Miss Shinn's niece developed at the end of the second year a forced laugh on hearing the word " funny " employed by others. The best safeguard against this error only child who is is This need not be so cruel an experiment as the social world of the merry told, to choose an well isolated from mirthful surroundings. little was a "laughing person". great value to the observations it looks. Ruth, nobody, we In are This circumstance gives made on this child. Her laughter was probably as purely self-initiated as anything in child-life can be. It may be added that, even the imitative and the be a pretty wide own artificial leave us dull " is could not eliminate would still observation in the child's For, as all his friends know, his frequently a response to things which grown-ups in quite another we element, there field for careful freer type of mirth. hearty laughter if way. " wholly unafl'ected, or affected DEVELOPMENT OF LAUGHTER 188 With regard to the development of the expressive move- ments themselves I can find but few data at hand. are enough, however, to show that the process commences during the tion first These of differentia- Mrs. Moore year. tells us that her boy in the thirty-third week acquired a new form of smile " which gradually but not entirely supplanted the (earlier) broad open-mouthed smile. wrinkled up, the eyes nearly to express an extreme closed. . . . . . The nose was . This smile seemed and more conscious enjoyment." Preyer remarks that his boy developed in the months of the first year " a laughter," which, presumably, I of difierent character as In the case of the boy C, of an expressive movement. whom had a last three movement more conscious ^ have written elsewhere, a new and clearly difier- was detected in the laugh of defiance (to be referred to later) which appeared early in the second enced note Mrs. year. Hogan says she noticed a at the age of fifty-five the first " " mischievous laugh" weeks, whereas Preyer remarks that roguish laugh " end of the second year. occurred in his boy's case at the A more precise phonetic changes in laughter during the years is record of the first two or three greatly to be desired. The movements of laughter are subject to the laws of movement in general. Repetition and Habit. They tend to and the result probably perfect themselves by practice ; involves a strengthening and an expansion of the wide- ranging organic commotion which makes up the reaction. A child of four will laugh on being tickled vigorously than one of two.^ much more Moreover, the efiiect of repeated exercises of the function would seem, as already 1 Loc. ^ I am cit., p. 39. indebted for this fact to Dr. L. Hill. applies to all the laughter of play. I believe a like remark CHANGES IN MOVEMENTS OP LAUGHTER 189 up in the motor-centres, from which the discharge in laughter issues, a condition of high hinted, to involve the setting instability, so that a very slight application of the stimulus, or (as in the case of tickling) the suffices to evoke the reaction. mere threat Lastly, this to apply this, work of organ- isation will plainly involve a fixing of the connection in the brain-centres between the effect of the stimulation and the motor reaction. We say that the impulse of laughter has become associated with a definite kind of sense-pre- The sentation. ing fingers instant response of a child to the threaten- a is clear example of the result of such an associative co-ordination. Other examples are seen when a particular sight or sound takes on permanently a funny A character. child that has come funny whenever will laugh regard a figure in the nurse as this recurs or is spoken of, moment is favourable. This is a noteworthy illustration of the way in which the which, as we all allow, action of the novel and unexpected provided that the mood to made by a picture book or an odd sound of the — has a large rSle in the excitation of laughter replaced which It by that itself may —may be of an antagonistic force, namely, habit, appears to secure the hilarious response. be added that so far as Habit comes the importance of the initial in, reducing psychical stage, and rendering the reaction automatic, the theory of Lange and James applies fairly well. The this case largely the reflex feeling of genial hilarity is in mental effect of the movements themselves, including the whole organic commotion brought about. Coming now to the development of the psychical element in laughter, we may, by way of introduction, refer to certain principles (a) which ought to be useful. with, any variety To begin of emotional reaction DEVELOPMENT OP LAUGHTER 190 excited by a particular kind of presentation appears, as repeated, to undergo a process of development, taking it is on more of fulness and complexity. A feeling of attachment to a person or to a place, or of admiration for a cherished work of art, grows fuller and deeper with the establishment of a relation of intimacy. Dimly realised resonances of former like experiences melt into, and deepen the and new feeling, woven elements are associative complication, and by growing into by it This reflection. increasing complexity affects both the ideational basis of the emotion and the closely connected emotional tone At first sight we might itself.^ be disposed to think that the feel- ing of sudden joy at the back of a merry explosion would prove to be an exception to this law. Since an element of novelty, a sense of joyous mental collapse under a sudden, yet harmless stimulus, runs through all our laughter, there might seem to be no room for any increase of depth and volume. But this it " in volume and The not so. A child's feeling of the hand seems "fun to gain force with the repetition of the experience. enjoyment of a laughing romp with the zest of the nurse, or, better, ways is at the approach of the tickling of of a kitten, with the father, of watching the funny and so forth, grows fuller because of the in- creasing complication of the psychosis behind the laughter.^ (6) In the second place the development of an emotion essentially a differentiation of definite is not merely into a more kind of experience as a whole, but into a number of •The nature and the treated, it, of the process of emotional development is more fully relation o£ its efieot to that of the dulling action of repeti- is indicated, in my work, The Human Mmd, vol. ii., p. 75 ft. Of course, increase of volume might arise through a widening of the sensational factor in the experience, due to the larger diffusion of somatic tion ' stimulation, which, as already remarked, laughter. is an element in the expansion of GROWTH OP LAUGHING PSYCHOSIS distinguishable sub-varieties of feeling. the reaction is called forth by new 191 In other words, excitants and new modes of stimulation which give rise to mental complexes some- what different Thus, as from those caused by the we mentally earlier excitants. develop, admirations having a richer ideational structure and more complexity of feeling -tone take the place of the first simple ones, which last die out or survive only as rudimentary processes. This enlargement of the field of exciting objects, with the concomitant differencing of the emotional state into a larger and larger number of shades, process of mental growth. It is the outcome of the whole means, first of all, differentiation of the child's experience, that the growing is, of his per- ceptions and ideas, as well as the expansion of his reflective In this processes. way a modified admiration attaches itself new kind of object, e.g., works of art, virtuous actions, when these come to be perceived and reflected on in such a way as to disclose their admirable side. to a In all such extensions the emotional reaction remains in may say, if ferred " to a We elements one and the same experience. its essential we like, that the expression has been " transnew situation or a new experience, through the working of a force which has been called " the analogy of feeling "} This process of extension by analogy of situation and attitude may of laughter. be seen to be a constituent in the development Taking its primitive form to be the expression of a sudden raising of the feeling-tone of consciousness to the level of gladness 1 —which elevation may be supposed to This expression is commonly used only where an expression on to a palpably dissimilar feeling. But an is passed essentially similar process takes place, according to my view, within the limits of development of we call the same emotion. what DEVELOPMENT OF LAUGHTER 192 involve at least an appreciable sense of relief from a fore- going state of strain or oppressive dulness see how the reaction is —we may readily passed on, so to speak, to analogous mental attitudes which are developed later. Let us take as an example a child who, having reached a dim apprehension of the customary behaviour of things begins to laugh at certain odd deviations from Here this. the transition appears clearly to be a kind of transference mediated by the identity of the mental attitude with that of the laughter of an earlier stage, say at the sight of the new and entertaining baubles. consciousness of rule it is on" by pretending Similarly when, after the developed, a child roguishly to disobey, we may regard " tries the new outburst of the spirit of fun as a natural transition from an laughing pretence of running earlier variety, the away from mother or nurse. we have to do here with more than a mere Such extensions always involve some amount Nevertheless, transference. of complication and enrichment of the mirthful experience. These later forms of mental gaiety depend on the develop- ment of more complex psychoses, both on the and on the emotional side. The first amusement intellectual at the sight of the ill-matched, the inconsequent, implies the advance of an analytic reflection A of relations. up to the point of a dim perception large part of the extension of the field of the laughable depends on this intellectual advance, a finer and more precise apprehension of what parts and so as a whole, as things. With the emotional of laughter is presented, in its also in its relations to other respect to the other condition, expansion of life, it is which fall enough to remark that within the first certain forms years of life arise directly out of a deepening of the emotional consciousness as a whole, e.g., the awakening of the " self-feeling," as seen COMPLICATION AND DIFFERENTIATION in the laughter of success or triumph ; on the other or, hand, of tenderness and sympathy, as illustrated first in the rudiments of a kindly humour. We a feature in development, differen- see, then, that, as tiation into a multiplicity of forms number inseparably connected is The gradual appearance with another feature, complication. of a 193 of laughters variously toned, such as that of slightly malicious elation at collapse of dignity, of entertain- ment at an intellectual inconsequence, and of a kindly amusement at a petty disaster, means that the elemental by feeling of joy is getting modified tions of A new final Among accretions or absorp- psychical elements. remark needed to prevent misapprehension. is the several processes of complication which underlie this differentiation of the laughing psychosis, arrest or tone down sympathy comes the reaction. some tend to It is thus that, when to be united with the laughing impulse^ the gaiety of the latter is apt to become subdued into something between a smile and the gentlest of laughs. In addition to this inhibitory effect of heterogeneous emotional elements we have that of new conative attitudes. A child soon finds out that a good deal of his rollicking laughter offence, and the work of With these general now may considerations to help us, first we may three years. differentiated dissimilar attitudes. as signs of qualitatively In the case of Ruth the two expres- sions remained for a time interchangeable, ' an be premised that the smile and the laugh only become gradually and frequently application of the principle of arrest to the changes in emotional has been made with great success by Th. Bibot in his volume, Psy- The states is spirits begins.^ look at the course of development of the laughing experience during the It taming the too wild ehologie des Sentiments, p. 260 flf. 13 DEVELOPMENT OF LAUGHTER 194 same alternated in the 129th day the smile, of its specialised Coming now But about the of joyous delight. fit it is remarked, began to take on one functions, the social one of greeting. we have found to laughter, that it begins at an early date to pass from a general sign of sudden increase of pleasure or good spirits into something akin This has been illustrated in the early to mirthful play. responses to tickling, and, a a laughing game By what to laugh when may ask, does the impulse the heart suddenly grows glad pass into the ? Allowing, as seems certain, that the play- inherited, can is simple forms of bo-peep). process of change, one laughter of play impulse (e.g., little later, to we connection between the two point out any psychological ? The answer has already been given in substance in our general analysis of the causes of laughter. when of pleasurable consciousness, and becomes gladness, say the it A sudden possesses the rise mind infant's flood of delight at the swinging coloured baubles, necessarily dissolves, for the time, the tense, serious attitude into a loose, play-like one. The child's his bauble ; consciousness and play is is now all just another gladness in face of way of effecting this dissolution of the serious attitude into a large gladness. Not only so, but the elemental mood of laughter resembles the play-mood, since make-believe. interest it finds its The gladdening satisfaction in pretence or object divested of all serious becomes a play-thing, a mere semblance of the thing of practical account moments. which the Its greeting child observed in the serious by the senses may be indeed, as a kind of play of these senses. described, Hence, the specialisation of the primal laughter of delight into that of fun would appear to be one of the simplest processes in the whole development of the emotion. LAUGHTER OF JOY AND OF FUN We may now briefly trace out some 195 of the phases of development of these two primal forms of laughter. With regard to the laughter of delight and jollity, we judge from the careful record of Ruth's emotional find, to and utterances, that there is a rapid development during child was thrown expressed crowing itself —by we read, the into a state of vivacious delight in smiles, —which movements, in cooing and in and voices which may be said the faces have "played" to to In this month, the fourth month.^ after her as she advent of the meal was that of a sat at The table. new joyous world, and, the child could have spoken, she would probably have if exclaimed, " Oh, what fun " ! The large change effected by the return of a familiar face and voice after an absence was only another way of transforming her world into a merry one. Towards the end of the fifth month, the note-book speaks over and over again of "jollity" and "high spirits," of the child's " laughing with glee when any one smiled or spoke to her," of "being exceedingly jolly, smiling, kicking and so sputtering," be the outcome of to new expansions consciousness, of a piu-e its and This growing gleefulness seemed forth. " Lebenslust ". of the pleasurable No doubt it had obscure source in a pleasurable coenaesthesis, the result of merrily life. of the Yet life muscular are told, working digestive and other processes of organic it had its higher conditions, also, in the expansion of the senses activities. and in the growing range of the Laughter and shouts of joy would, we accompany not merely the inrush and sounds, but the new use of delightful sights of bodily powers in exploring and experimenting. 1 Miss Shinn's observations are recorded in Parts Notes. III. and IV. of her DEVELOPMENT OP LAUGHTER 196 new world showed The new appearance This gaiety in taking possession of her itself in the greeting of friendly faces. an absence excited her laughter of her grandfather after on the 133rd day. By about the middle of the year, the child had, like Preyer's boy, developed a jubilant greeting nod with for her social belongings, nodding a friendly all the signs of huge delight. may sometimes These outbursts of laughing joy to have been preceded be seen a distinctly disagreeable state of In the case of Ruth, feeling. jollity by we are told that the fit of broke out, on one or two occasions, upon "instan- taneous relief from great general discomfort the 222nd day, having awoke and with joy and a sense of the room. I relief Again, on ". felt timid, she laughed when her mother came of overflowing gladness is often to some extent a Thus, a boy of one and a half years constraint. into have other evidence to show that this laughter relief from who had a new nurse, and for some days behaved with great gravity when with her, was during the same period "extremely hilarious " when alone with his parents. The gladness girl of the world grew larger to this happy when, towards the end of the seventh month, she was taken into the open and, shortly after, allowed to air, lie The wooing of the sun and shadow, the large on a quilt and roU on the ground. passing freshness, the play of stir of life in her and With old, moving and sounding made her this may " things, all this possessed laugh and ejaculate with pleasure ". be compared a note on a boy nine months who, lying in a clothes-basket in a garden one summer's day, looked up laughed with " at the leaves dancing in the sunshine a hearty noisy laugh The development year brought our of and ". bodily power in this same half- little maiden much gleeful laughter. EARLY FORMS OF GAIETY Any filled 197 experience of movement, passive as well as active, To her with noisy hilarity. brought out, at the end of the ride on anybody's foot month, the unmis- fifth A month later, the by the new frolicsome ex- takable signs of hilarious rapture. gleeful explosion was perience of being jumped and tossed. Similar expressions when new active movements were accom- of mirth occurred plished. we In the record of the middle of the ninth month, are told of a medley of movements, tumbling on the floor or lawn, sitting up and lying down, raising herself on the feet and hands, A of called out etc., which brought her singular joy ". part of the gleefulness of this widening experience movement due to is probable that the unexpected its seems It results. successful experiments in crawling, first climbing and the rest of muscular may give rise to new complexes and other sensations which come as a joyful surprise. Such impressive when For example, a the arms and hands begin to experiment. aged two and a quarter years, little girl, her head, and was seized gleeful outburst grow more varied and delightful surprises happened when throwing a first " is random with a spasm of ball at to jerk — half-wonderful, when over The hilarity. apt to occur, too, later on achieves the feat it a child half -amusing —of walking, of running and of jumping.^ In these expanding processes of we may detect the beginnings of of laughing enjoyment. jollity or more gleefulness specialised forms Thus, in the outburst of merri- ment which winds up a successful attempt to climb, we germ of that mode of reaction which is apt recognise the to follow at the moment of sudden relaxation of tension on the attainment of an end. We may be sure that a child 1 For a pretty reminiscent description of a first experience and jumping, see Pierre Loti, Boman d'tm Enfant, ii., p. 4 fE. of running DEVELOPMENT OP LAUGHTER 198 of nine months very serious finds the effort to stand a ; which occurs in case this may and and exhausting strain is infer that the laughter momentary largely due to relaxations of this strain. But again, these experiences clearly supply conditions favourable to the emergence of that " sudden glory " which enters into successful effort. of little Ruth The " .shouting and laughing (forty -five weeks) " on completing the magni- ficent exploit of climbing the staircase had, as her aunt's epithet " exultant " recognises, something of breathing jubilation of the successful mountain We are told further that, in the tenth month, the - free- climber. Ruth would break into the same exultant laugh after some successful mental this such as pointing out the right picture effort, was asked Here, then, when for. we have the laughter of a joyous feeling-tone new elements. These include, not merely the complicated by some dim form of an agreeable consciousness of growing power and of an expanding self. In the glee on mastering a new movement, e.g., riding on somebody's foot, we see traces of a more distinctly playful mood. We may now follow out the development of this large variety of gamesome delightful feeling of relief after prolonged effort, but mirth. The overflow of the health-filled reservoirs of muscular activity begins at an early stage to wear an unmistak- able aspect of playfulness. The first exercises in crawling, accompanied by various sounds of contentment and gladness, are indeed recognisable As the by all as a kind of play. forces of the organism establish themselves a manifest bent to a romping kind of game appears. more This, game in which co-operation enters, involves a development of the social consciousness, and its gleefulness comes as a FROM GLADNESS TO MIRTH 199 from the reverberations of mutual sympathy. in part good example of the hilarity of a romping game uproarious delight, in the seventh month, A Ruth's is when dragged about on a carpet, an experience which involved, of course, much loss of equilibrium and some amount of awkward That the bumps were of the essence of the bumping. enjoyment is confirmed by the fact that, in the tenth month, she would like to stand, holding on to a chair, and then deliberately to let herself go so as to " come down sitting with a thud," winding up the performance by "looking up laughing and triumphant ". Another game involving exciting jolts was liked in the middle of the twelfth month. The child was shot in her carriage, now from the aunt to the mother, and now back, each little ride ending up with a jolt, over which she grew very merry. Later on, end of the twentieth month) she laughed heartily (at the on being knocked down by her dog in a too pushful bit and she enjoyed in like manner some pretty rough play at the hands of a nine-year-old boy companion. This mirthful treatment of romps, which must have in- of play ; volved a palpable amount of discomfort, showing how laughter plays serious. least, to This little girl aboiit seems, up is interesting as the confines of the to the age of three, at have been curiously indifierent to pain. common Yet she was not wanting in looks, then, as the fun of these rather rough games if the childish timidity. It turned on dissolutions of nascent attitudes of apprehension, and, consequently, the laughter expressed something of a joyous contempt of fear. Indeed, it seems likely that an element of this joyous rebound from a half-developed state of fear entered into illustrated, much of this child's laughter, already on succeeding in a rather risky experiment, such as climbing the staircase. We read that, like other vigorous DEVELOPMENT OF LAUGHTER 200 was a keen pursuer of new experiences, even which she knew that some pain was involved. children, she in cases in The passion new experiments seems for trying urged her on, in spite of nascent fear ing and laughing joy of successful timid and the a sense of triumph over the weaker hardy experi- ability, illustrated in these ments, to turn situations suggestive of danger into play, was a singular proof this child's prevalent to have final shout- well have announced, along with the effort, The self. may ; " larkish of the firm foundation on mode " which of gaiety reposed. In some cases Ruth's play would take on a form which clearly involved a triumphing over fear. told that '' we Thus, are when, on the 429th day, she was asked to find auntie " in the dark she at first stood and still silent. Then, when her head was touched by somebody's hands, she broke into laughter and started off by herself to explore in the dark. this laughing Later on, with the growth of a bolder triumph over fear extended itself, spirit, so that in the twenty-ninth month she played at bear with her uncle, going into a dark room, with her hand in her aunt's, and enjoying " the exhilaration of unreal alarm " and when the uncle sprang out from growling fearfully, she " his dark hiding-place, laughed, shrieked and fled all in went a little too far in the use of the alarming she would check him by saying, " Don't do one ". If the uncle that again ". In these cases, it is evident, with alternating phases. itself at we have The a complex psychosis awful delight which vents once in a laugh and in a shriek and a flight tainly of a mixed feeling-tone. The laughter is is cer- the note of a triumphant spirit, and yet of one in which, in the moment of triumph, the nascent fear leaves its trace. In these laughing games we have clearly an element of MIRTH AS REBOUND FROM FEAR make-believe. A firm persuasion, low down in consciousness, bump and of the harmlessness of the coming bear in the blackness keeps the little girl's of the human heart steady and At the same turns the adventure into fun. 3,8 201 time, the play "pretending" would seem to involve at least a half- formed expectation of something, and probably, too, a final taste of delicious surprise at the fully realised nothingness In some forms of play-pretence of the half -expected. element of this expectation becomes more final annihilation of conspicuous and the distinct source of the hilarious exulta- When, tion. for example, in the eleventh month, Kuth sit- ting on the floor held out her arms to be taken up, and the this, stooped and kissed the child, was a perfect peal of laughter again and again. The increase of muscular activity shown in the laughing romps leads to the extension of mirthful enjoyment in an- mother, instead of doing there other way. A when vigorous child, even a girl, grows aggressive and attempts various forms of playful attack. As we have seen, to tickle another is merely one variety of a large class of teasing operations, in which the teased as well as the teasing party is Regarding now the child as supposed to find his merriment. begins to exercise at once his durance. The pulling of whiskers forms of practical jokes. week month the first and " we see that he very early own powers and others' en- teaser, one of the earliest to this pastime in the By the end of the sixth of the fifth month. little is Ruth took tormentor had grown aware of her power, became most eager clamour, at the nose, one that held her". to pull, ear, and with laughter and exultant especially the hair, of The boy C, at the same age, delighted in pulling his sister's hair, and was moved by her only to outbursts of laughter. As these practical jokes any cries intelligence develops, grow more cunning. Another little DEVELOPMENT OF LAUGHTER 202 of girl, whom I have written elsewhere under the when seventeen months M., " tick-tick," looking very saucy ; she tugged at his moustache, it, initial father's. and as he stooped to give and almost choked with '' ". laughter With asked for her old, this teasing of When animals. human companions we have sixteen months old, cat with shouts of laughter. that of Ruth would chase Another child, a boy, the' about the same age, went considerably further, and taking the pufF from toilet " Moses," the its pufi" proper who was and proceeded fire, the cat, to place went deliberately to- sitting unsuspectingly before the powder him, each new application of being accompanied by a short chuckle. There is no need of reading into cruel exultation over suffering.^ this laughter the note of Ruth's mischievous doings would take forms which had not even the semblance of cruelty. There was merely impish playfulness in the act of snatching off her grandmother's spectacles and even her cap, with full accompaniment month when lifted to of laughter, in the twenty-second spirit the other little girl, M., delighted, in untying the maid's apron strings much when two In say good-night. the same years old, and in other jocose forms of mischief. The laughing mood in these cases is understandable as a rioting in newly realised powers, a growing exultation as the consciousness of ability to produce striking effects grows clearer. violently Ruth, in her eleventh month, blew a whistle and looked round laughing others present. to her aunt and the Here, surely, the laughter was that of I have met with to a suggestion of a wish to pain in this early practical joking is the following The child M. when two years old stood on her mother's foot saying, " Oh, my poor toe " But it seems reasonable to say that in such moments of frolic pain is quite ' The nearest approaoli inflict : ! unrepresentable. MIRTH AS RIOTOUS EXULTATION rejoicing in a new power. form of clearer This sense of power implies a " self -feeling ". A child moments the moments of conscious of the self in such grows as he in " 203 of may grow newly keenly tried powers, intense pain ". This laughter, then, furnishes a good illustration of the sudden glory on which Hobbes lays emphasis. have assumed that in I this laughing mischief do with a form of (playful) teasing. The we have enjoys the fun of the attack and counts on your enjoying The indulgence also. of others, even if to assailant little it they do not show an equal readiness for the pastime, removes all thought of disobedience, of lawlessness. Yet things do not commonly remain at this point of The gathering energies of the child, encouraged by indulgence in games of romp, are pretty perfectly innocent fun. certain to develop distinctly rowdyish proceedings. for example, when about twenty-one months old, Ruth, scrambled defiantly on to the table at the close of a meal, seized on the salts, and scampered about laughing. new this plate About the same time rowdyism showed itself in flinging a Little boys, across the room and other mutinous acts. spirit of much given fun which they know I suspect, are to experiments in a violent kind of to be disorderly. One of them, aged two years eight and a half mouths, was fond of it on " by " trying pulling hair-pins out of his mother's hair, splashing in the puddles in the road, and so forth, to her great per- plexity and his plainly pronounced enjoyment. In these outbursts of laughing rowdyism we see more than an escape of pent-up energies, more than a mere overflow of factor, child of and " high spirits " ; they are complicated by a new something of the defiant temper of the two has had some experience may rebel. A of real disobedience, be said to have developed simple ideas of order DEVELOPMENT OF LAUGHTER 204 and We may law. reasonably infer, then, that in this some consciousness of setting law The presence of this new psychical factor is turbulent fun there at defiance. is In seen in the alteration of the laughing sounds themselves. we Ruth's case, are told, they were natural and joyous utterance. method " rough " and unlike the It is further seen in the of the fun, for, as Miss Shinn observes, how repeatedly to see far she could Ruth " tried go safely in roguish naughtiness". I think we find in this behaviour a clear instance of laughter becoming an ingredient in the attitude of throwing off a customary It is the early analogue of the restraint. laughter of the rowdies bent on window-smashing, of the riotous enjoyment of the people at festal seasons when the lord of misrule holds sway. The degree of conscious defiance of order vary greatly. much In what we view of may, no doubt, as the disorderly mirth of a child this ingredient of the laughing mood be small and sub-conscious and prominent. ; yet at times it grows Thus, Ruth, in the eleventh month, de- veloped a special expression for the attitude of defiance disobejring, namely, a comical face nose, together with laughter. year, may distinct when with a wrinkling of the The boy 0., early in the third would give out a laugh of a short mocking ring on receiving a prohibition, He would way. not to slap his dog companion. and laugh in a half -contemptuous moods of defiance he would go so far a member of his family and then laugh. His remain silent Sometimes in as to strike e.g., his laugh was sometimes highly suggestive of the mood of derision. In this note of warlike challenge we have a point of kinship with the is " crowing " laughter of the victor. Yet it doubtful whether a child at this early age reaches the GERM OF ROWDYISM mental attitude of a mocking contempt. 205 Preyer tells us that he has never observed scornful laughter within the first four years.^ When the consciousness of the unruly in these "high jinks " becomes distinct and begins to be oppressive, the laughter will be less boisterous and express more of playful The pretence. feint to rebel, child learns to be satisfied with making a with a make-believe unruliness. Ruth, on when pretending to disobey by biting ofl' the petals of flowers, and on the 455th day, by stuffing buttons into her mouth. The boy C, when about the same the 236th day, laughed age, had his little way of turning disobedience into a game. In the seventeenth month, when he was bidden by his mother up a picture he had got possession of, he and made a show of handing over his unlawful possession, and then drew his hands back with to give walked up to her much laughing enjoyment. A more complicated psychical attitude appears laughing pretence at disobedience takes on a when such " roguish Here we have, not only an element of slight uneasiness, but one of self-consciousness, which together give a distinct complexion to the whole mental attitude and to its aspect. expression. This ingredient of a timid self-consciousness or shyness under the scrutiny of others appears, as time after the simpler forms of we know, some In Ruth's case it on the 123rd day in a distinctly seems to have showed itself ' When roguish " attitude. fear. at dinner and spoken to by her grandfather, she turned her head as far as she could. On ' the 141st day, too, Op. three cit., and a p. 196. half. cise observations. I when have heard held in her nurse's arms, she of it The point should occurring in u, girl at certainly be determined the age of by more pre- DEVELOPMENT OP LAUGHTER 206 smiled at her grandfather and others and then ducked her head. This expression of roguish self-consciousness had more of the look of a nervous explosion in the eleventh month, when the a coi'ner girl laughed on being set on her feet in where she was much noticed ; and again, in the thirteenth month, as she tumbled about and showed herself This laughter, with something of the gSne of off. consciousness in it, was, we self- are told, not to be confounded with the expression of a complacent self-consciousness. The element of an the early playful C, " just mentioned, awkward shyness comes trying it it on was seen ". into much of In the case of the boy in the sly, the eyes and the short, half -nervous laugh, upward look when he was of face and disposed to play at disobedience. The fuller roguish laugh occurs frequently along with a risky bit of play, as when a boy of one and a half year would point to himself when asked for a finger-recognition of somebody else. In such cases the laughter seems like an attempt to get rid of the element of risk. When the masking of the impulse of fun by timidity is greater, the exto face with authority pression reaching only to a tentative smile, the roguishness of a child may easily wear a look of kinship with our grown-up humour.^ A account of the development of laughter during full these first years, as be of great value. how an ingredient of the play-mood, would It would, in particular, help us to see the reaction comes to be definitely co-ordinated with the sense of make-believe, and the attitude of throwing ofl" the burdensome restrictions of reality. The vocal mirth of children, as they give reins to their fancy, attests to • {op. Preyer cit, p. Xiaohen ". first observed roguish laughter at the end of the second year 196). He does not define the expression " schelmisohes ; ROGUISH MIRTH 207 the weight of this burden and to the intense delight which comes from its momentary abandonment. In seeking for the ^nd of defiance, we first fering influence of others. work even No by the inter- doubt this influence is at The nurse and the parents are pretty here. much certain to laugh at and traces of the laughter of play are not greatly troubled this laughter will react of the roguish upon the " child's trying own it on " merriment. In play, too, in which others usually take some part, there is this action of older persons' laughter. Still, in the main, the utterances are spontaneous, and at most are reinforced by way of some sympathetic rapport with another. otherwise It is when we come to consider the first amusement at the presentation of " funny " objects. The lead of others now complicates the phenomenon to a much more serious extent. The recognition of an object as "funny" implies some detection instances of laughing of a quaUty which acts on others as well as on the self consequently, it ^ ; presupposes a certain development of the Hence, some cautiousness social consciousness. is needed in noting the first clear examples of a perception of the quality. Before language comes and supplies a means of self -interpretation, we cannot safely say that child laughs in presence of an object there may because a a recognition As we have of something objectively "funny". laughter is seen, such be fully accounted for by supposing that the object has an exhilarating or gladdening effect on the child's feeling. On the other hand, have to cope with the child's when language difficulty, is added we already touched on, that a pronouncements are apt to be controlled by what others laugh at and call funny. the child's spontaneity and his ' Nevertheless, here, too, way Compare above, of discovering his p. 83. own 208 DEVELOPMENT OF LAUGHTER sources of amusement may enable us overcome the to diflSculties. Our study of the conditions of the perception suggests that a true enjoyment of presentations as oddities to be expected at a very early date. And for the reason that the new, especially if though An other and inhibitory attitudes. year of not later life, if also, is by may its not strange, even easily excite infant, during the fii-st apt to be disturbed and apparently alarmed at the approach of to be unafiected the laughter it is draw forth a joyous laugh, may fitted to is this, first of all, rejoicing aspect ; new objects, so as or, if he feels this, be accompanied by signs of fear. Ruth, on her 254th day, greeted a kitten which her father brought to show her with " all gradations from laughter and joy to In the second place—and this of more importance —the recognition of an object as funny presupposes the work fear ". is of experience in organising a rudimentary feeling for customary. consciousness and of an idea of a Now what is This, again, involves a development of the social all this requires a certain common amount order of things. of time. It hardly seems reasonable to look for a true apprehension of the laughable till some time after the appearance of an imitation of others' laughter and play -gestures, which was first observed, boy C, in the ninth month. Nor could weU be expected until after a child had acquired some in the case of the it understanding of others' language, so as to note agree in naming and describing how they certain objects as funny, which understanding only begins to be reached in the second half of the year. Hence, I should hesitate to speak of a clear recognition of a laughable object as such before the last quarter of the year. a little It seems to me, for example, rash to say that a boy of five months, laughed inordinately when who always a very jolly-looking physician. EARLY PERCEPTIONS OF THE FUNNY him a the image of Santa Glaus, paid " When of displayed a visit, humour "} sense of to 209 once the idea of objects of common laughter begins grow clear a child is, of course, able to develop perceptions the funny along his own lines. This he certainly seems The freshness of his world, the absence of the dulling effect of custom which is seen in the to do pretty briskly. him an excellent pioneer King Laughter. Among the sense-presentations which awaken the infantile laugh are new and queer sounds of various sorts and they may weU be selected for a study of the transitions from mere joyous exclamation to a hilarious greeting of what is "funny". Early in the second half of the first year, a perceptions of older folk, renders imknown in the largely territory of ; good health child in the ear, and to turn will begin to what is About the 222nd day brave surmount the alarms of new and little strange into fun. Ruth was able to laugh, when her not only at such an odd sound as that produced aunt rattled a tin cup on her teeth, but at that of a piano. Preyer's boy, later in the year, various new and out-of-the-way piano, of was given to laughing at sounds, such as that of the gurgling or clearing the throat, and even of thimder. Odd sounding articulations appear to be especially provo- cative of laughter about this time. day, Ruth laughed at as " Pah ! Pah ! " As early as the 149th new sounds invented by the aunt, such Queer guttural sounds seem to have a specially tickling effect. After words and their commoner forms have begun to grow familiar, new and odd-sounding words, especially names, are apt to be greeted with laughter. when one year ' nine months old, The was much impressed by the See Mrs. Hogan's Study of a Child, p. 18. 14 child M., DEVELOPMENT OP LAUGHTER 210 exclamation "good gracious " ! made by her mother on dis- covering that the water was coming through the ceiling of a room and the child would sometimes repeat ; When fun "shaking with laughter". seven months old she laughed on first it in pure she was two years hearing the name "Periwinkle". In these and similar cases of the hilarious response to sounds we seem to have, well within the first nine months, germ of a feeling for the odd or droll. The early development of this sense of the funny in sounds is aided by their aggressive force for the infant's consciousness, and by the circumstance that for the young ear they have pronounced a characteristics vances, which are probably and they are attended to, lost as merely as signs of things which interest The psychical process involved described as follows. development ad- not for their own sake, but us. in the transition may be Sounds, while by reason of their suddenness and unexpectedness they are apt to take the consciousness off its guard and to produce a kind of nervous shock, are of all sense-stimuli the most exhilarating. The sudden rousing of the consciousness to a large joyous commotion shock, is interfere Nor the fundamental fact. when will the jar of the the sense-organ develops and becomes hardier, with On this. the contrary, it will add something in the shape of an agreeable rebound from a nascent tude of uneasiness.^ The laughter of the child at the first sounds of the piano, which have frightened and other young animal, There is here, too, joicing, as the is, atti- many a child in part, a shout of victory. an element of " sudden glory " in the new expanding self is dimly conscious of reits superiority to the half-alarmed and shrinking self of the moment ^ 0/. before. what was said in chap, v., p. 142, apropos of Leigh Hunt's theory. SENSE OF THE FUNNY In this we have case, it is evident, of the laughable which will new sound 211 to do with a greeting vary greatly according to the The same psycho-physical condition of the child. laughs at a SOUNDS IN to-day will to-morrow, child that when in another mood, be disturbed by a quite similar surprise of the ear. But more wear The sudden and by new sounds is apt to involved in this laughter. is slightly disturbing attack of the ear We for the child's consciousness a game-like aspect. have only to think of the nursery rhymes, alluded to by Miss Shinn, in which the excitement of fun explosive shock at the end, the fun lies in play new In these rhymes For a ? manner as a kind of disorderly may hold much which is expressive of the This will apply not only to utterances like the play-mood. many series of quiet orderly sounds. child's ear, pitched for the intrinsic character of a sound, they " Pah! — sounds, the guttural utterances and the a child in a like rest, aifect by an the very soul of frivolous play, since it comes at the end of a not the secured the shock, though only half-unexpected shock which has in May is closely analogous to the which terminated in a good bump. rides it games Pah ! " which are clearly recognised others produced to entertaining. by as play, but to a nurse or a mother who is given Perhaps the gurgling sounds which moved the mirth of Preyer's boy appeared laughter-like. This tendency to look on certain sounds as a kind of play seems to supply a psychical link in the development of a We have feeling for the odd and out-of-the-way as such. seen how the play-impulse "tries straints of rule grow too irksome. it on" when I suspect that the the re- mirthful appreciation of the queer and out-of-the-way grows out of this inclination to a playful disorderliness or law-breaking. A child is apt to feel oppressed with the rules of propriety DEVELOPMENT OP LAUGHTER 212 By these rules imposed on him. of noises branded as is " quite a terrible multiplicity naughty," and the prohibition tends to fix the playful impulse precisely in the direction of the Children have a way, moreover, of pro- forbidden sounds. and jecting their experiences which we their inclinations into things What more call lifeless. natiu-al, then, that they should feel these incursions of violent and quite improper- sounding noises to be a kind of playful throwing aside of order and rule ? In the domain of the sentation rarely Yet there or joltiness. visible world, reaches, is perhaps, suddenness of pre- the point ample scope, here, working of the unexpected on the of shock too, for the The child's sensibilities. visual excitants of laughter, the sudden uncovering of first the face in bo-peep, the unexpected return of the familiar face after an interval of absence, the instant transformation accustomed features when the mother " makes a show how directly the surprisingly new may act on the young muscles of laughter. of the face," Here, too, new and we may see how the hilarious enjoyment of distorted face of the mother produces a laugh when ceased to alarm and observer, this making is taken as fun.^ of faces time towards the end of the The out-of-the-way emerges out of play-mirth. it has According to one grows into a standing pas- the second year.^ greeting of the baby-face in the mirror, Is not the which in Ruth's occurred on the 221st day (eighth month), and in case that of Preyer's boy at the end of the ninth month, a kind of accost of a newly discovered playmate the laughter of a little referred to, at the ? Perhaps boy, of one and a half year, already jumping of a ping-pong ball and at a ' Ruth's laughter at the mother's face was certainly very early. * Hogan, op. cit., p. 71. RESPONSES TO MERRY SIGHTS spring- blind going up or coming down with 213 a run, expressed a recognition of something play-like. This co-operation of the play -inclination in the perception is still more plainly and postures. The of the laughable in visual presentations in the illustrated effect of actions quickness of the eye of mirth for expressions of the of to, romping play Ruth was at the gambols of a horse or other animal. much entertained on her 441st day dog. Especially enlivening play-like mood seen in a child's laughter, already referred is is by the antics of a the appearance of quick, movements in grave elders addicted to decorous The girl M., at the age of eighteen months, deportment. broke into boisterous laughter on seeing her father as he ran to catch a may come with his handkerchief hanging out train, This sudden revelation of the playful temper of his pocket. to the child by way of postures and expressions. The awful laws of propriety soon tend to give the look of playful licence to certain bodily postures, especially that of The boy C, when twenty months lying down. old, laughed heartily on seeing his sister lying on the ground out of Making doors. faces, pouting lips and the rest become playful just because they are felt to be improper, the sort of thing one only does in a disorderly moment, playful —to the child's conscious- or other. May not the drolleries ness—of animal form, giraffe, actions, owe something example the long neck of the to suggestions of improper jocose such as trying to stretch oneself into Alice-like dimensions •^In for ? this blithe recognition of the irregular in others' be- haviour we have the rudiment of an appreciation of the laughable, not only as a violation of rule but as a loss of dignity. This is apparent in such laughter at the prostrate form of his cases as sister, the boy's illumined as DEVELOPMENT OF LAUGHTER 214 it was by the observation that, at the age of twenty-six months, he expressed great contempt at the spectacle of a Japanese gentleman stretched on the grass in the suburban Heath, which was the seemed child's daily resort, and which he strongly disposed to subject to his manners. Possibly, too, there tion of lowered dignity when was a touch of the same boy, own code of this apprecia- at the age of twenty-eight months, laughed greatly on seeing his father The batter in an old hat. new element laughter, complicated now by a of conscious superiority, probably took on a crowing note, though our dull ears clear detection of the change. that the laughter of children, may not be equal to a Not only common so, it is possible in the second year, at signs of disorderliness in the hair or dress of others, and especially superiors, implies a perception of something like lowered rank. In this new in the visible world different tones of mirth are no doubt distinguishable. As the higher effect of the forms of perception begin to develop the primitive laughter of joy may specialised persist kinds. and combine with Ruth's voicing of thirteenth month, on having a her, was new and more pair of mittens put largely an outburst of joy, though of the oddity of the thing probably On later merriment, in the combined with the other hand, the laughter called forth in the this. little age of twenty-one months, by the spectacle girl M., at the of a doll that on some dim sense had lost its arms presumably had in it, along with a sense of something weirdly absurd in the mutilated form, a pretty keen sub-consciousness of dollish proprieties set at defiance. Other directions in the development of this early laughter at entertaining spectacles in the fun of play with may its be said to have their origin pretence or make-believe. Mrs. DISCRIMINATION OF FUNNY ASPECTS 215 Hogan's boy, at the age of two years and two months, would laugh at his nurse's pretended efforts to put on his shoes, away wildly into freedom. which, instead of getting on, flew This laughter was evoked at the fun of the thing, and probably involved an interpretation of the nurse's action as Yet play. it had in it also, an appre- I think, the trace of farcical collapse of ciation of the absurdity of the effort. borne out by the fact that the boy, about the same This is time, would also laugh when the nurse, not in play, tried by hang a garment on a jumping to He may, of course, nail just too high for her. have regarded Yet tinuation of the play. it but a con- this, too, as seems reasonable to suppose that the merry current had one of its sources in the per- ception of the amusing aspect of failure, of effort missing its mark and lapsing into nothingness. I confess to have been surprised at what looks like the precocity of some children in the matter of honouring the proprieties of conduct. fourteen months old, surdly conscious is way" The little when only M., boy who stood by her at a small perambulator asking for a kiss. Was was not forthcoming. in a mood of nervous girl said to have laughed in an "ab- That kiss, we are told, the laugh merely an incident shyness, or did it signify a dim per" " ception of bad form on the part of the proposer ? Much care is needed in the interpretation of such expressive A small reactions. his pants slipped from a sense of the ing, aided perhaps of shame may have is, boy down. of eighteen But this months laughed when only have resulted may fun of the irregularity of the proceed- by others' amusement. A of course, not developed at this age true feeling ; yet a child caught from instruction a feeling of the shocking impropriety of an ill-timed casting aside of the clothestrammels. DEVELOPMENT OP LAUGHTER 216 We may find in the laughter of the child, within the period of the first three years, pretty clear indications of the development of a rude perception of amusing incongruities in dress and behaviour. The young eye has a keen outlook for the proprieties in the matter of clothes. Ruth, month amused at seeing her new amusement mittens put on, showed about the same date when her pink bonnet was put on her aunt's head. In this who was in the thirteenth case, the play-significance of the action for the child's con- sciousness is apparent. It seems fairly certain, indeed, that form of a recognition of the laughable grows this higher When out of the play -interpretation. at play children not only throw off rules of decorum and do improper things, they put aside ideas of appropriateness and launch out and into bizarre discontinuities and contrarieties of action speech. The play-attitude, as lawless and free, tends to Hence the readiness with which a inconsequence. child interprets such inconsequences as play. It is the same when a child laughs at droll stories of the doings of animals and persons. He may take fables and other fancies seriously enough at times, but if his mind is pitched for merriment, he will greatly appreciate the ex- travagant unsuitabilities of behaviour of the heroes of his The nursery books. months old, kittens, in meat is little girl M., when two which they are made to say, tough ; " " Waiter, this cat's asking in the midst of her merriment, you ever saw such funny tits Along with this rudiment spectacle of the incongruous, " Did ? of merry appreciation we have the festation of the closely related feeling of absurd. years seven laughed gaily at a passage in a story about first of the crude mani- amusement at the Children are said to have no measure of the pro- bable and possible, and to accept the wildest fancies in GLIMPSES OF THE UNFITTING unquestioning work during Yet experience begins her educative faith. and one may detect these first three years, sporadic traces of a feeling for A 217 what is gloriously incredible. boy, already alluded to, aged about one and a half year, laughed as his aunt asked him what the waves, which he was gravely observing, were saying. The boy C, when old, grew quite hilarious over the idea of flying up into the air. Some one had suggested his twenty-two months and he proceeded to cap the suggestion, " gee-gee (horse) fy air". The flying like a bird, adding, " Tit (sister) fy air," last idea of a flying horse especially delighted one innocent, as yet, of Greek mythology. may Lastly, a bare allusion ment of of wit. an appreciation That of pretence, this be made to the early develop- of word-play and the lighter kind grows out of the play-element, the love " Verbal fun, " trying it on at once evident. is common with an incorrect use of words and so forth, is outlet of the rollicking spirits of childhood. Mrs. Hogan's a boy, at the age of one year eight months, developed a fancy by their wrong names, a knife a " fork," Eath did the same towards the end of the for example. third year. The fun derived from punning seems to be immense in the case of many children at the close 'of our period, as when a boy on hearing his mother say she had just called on Mrs. Fawkes asked, "Did you call on Mrs. knives too ? " This easy childish mode of satisfying a for calling things jocose bent seen also in the use of false statements, not is seriously, but " in fun," as the child has of it. Ruth had such merry fibbing at the end of the third year. child will often " try called up on " this a fit A kind of verbal game, when for a moral lesson.^ This same roguish impulse to ^ See my " try it on Studies of Childhood, pp. 274-5. " with the DEVELOPMENT OP LAUGHTER 218 authorities leads to something like a play of wit in repartee. The merry interchange which relieves so many of intellectual attack and defence, serious relations of adult life, grows naturally enough in the case of children out of their relation The playful experiment of subjection to the grown-ups. the direction of disobedience is frequently accompanied in by pretty exercises in verbal fencing, the joke of which the perpetrator himself, sportive dialectic correction. A if get spots on her face. by way of meeting serious " How latter's chin, by After listening gravely she turned asked with " said, perhaps, little pimple a most mirthful smile," Lizzie (the nurse) det dat 'pot dere den Enough has been told she put out her tongue she would on her instructress and, putting her finger on a on the Such greatly enjoys. rate, arise, too, two and a quarter years was girl of a foolish nurse that any at may ? even in this slight ex- amination of children's laughter, to show that within the first three years all the main directions of the mirth of adults are foreshadowed. Humour itself, which is supposed only to come with maturity of feeling and reflection, begins to announce itself in a modest boy C, in his twenty-first way during The this period. month, had managed to twist his india-rubber horse, so that the head was caught between the tail and the legs. He laughed out loudly at waxed tender, saying in a pitiful so swung from the one emotional tone, " first, then Poor Gee-gee," and attitude to the other.^ This appearance of the two feelings, distinct though contiguous, is, of course, a very different thing from the highly organised sentiment which we call humour. Miss Shinn 1 Moat of the observations here quoted, on the laughter of the boy C. have appeared before in a chapter of my volume, StvMes of Childhood. The reader who is familiar with this chapter will, I feel sure, pardon the repetition. RANGE OF INFANT MIRTH tells 219 us that, in the case of Ruth, the period of infantile gaiety has been followed by one of serious practicality, into which come In humour does not enter. any case we have to recognise in this laughter of the first Perhaps it years something far removed from the It is a will humour of later. the adult. pure primitive gaiety, uncomplicated by reflection and sadness. It to disclose faint is enough for my purpose if it can be seen embryonic tracings of the main differentiation in the development of human lines of laughter. 220 CHAPTER Vm. THE LAUGHTER OP SAVAGES. last chapter we took a glance at the primitive forms human laughter as illustrated in children. We may now supplement this by a brief inquiry into the merri- In the of ment of the childhood of the race, so far as this is reflected in the laughter of those savage tribes which have under the direct observation of the We civilised come man. expect the two domains to disclose similar shall features, spontaneity, absence of reflection, whole-hearted simplicity. At the same time we shall expect the study of the laughter of savages to bring us more directly in touch with the social conditions which help to determine The study the directions of mirth. the study of a collective mind, that form of ideas, sentiments, of the savage is mind is to say, of a typical and psychical tendencies generally, Its modes of merriment, more serious emotional manifestations, have been observed as common traits of members of a tribal society. running through a community. like its A word may be said at the outset sources of our information. civilised man finds all his get into touch with the It is with respect to the commonplace that a powers taxed when he mind of a savage. of this access will naturally be greater be observed itself is an emotion which, while The when it ia tries to difficulties the trait to wont to display with an instinctive directness so long as the surround- OPENNESS IN DISPLAY OP FEELING 221 ings secure freedom, tends to hide itself as soon as any- The thing strange appears which induces a feeling of gSne. presence of strangers, so far removed from the plane of life of savages as the missionaries or officials of a civilised nation, would, one supposes, act as such a check to their risible impulses. It is possible, too, that the stranger a savage tribe may his look, dress, supply, quite and manner who visits unknowingly perhaps, of behaviour, a number in of pro- vocatives of laughter which are resisted from a feeling of what is due to a guest. That there is some hiding of the merry mood here is not a mere matter of inference, since travellers distinctly testify to the fact. The undisciplined savage wiU now and again show a degree of self-restraint comparable with that which an educated Frenchman will show when in a Paris street he is addressed by a hardy British youth in what the latter cheerfully supposes to be the language of the country. The following story may serve as an example. A public meeting was being held in a native village in Africa. An Englishman who was present got up on a recumbent trunk of a tree, which is used as a seat in native villages. The log rolled and the Englishman fell heavily. meeting looked as grave as of the programme. An if uninstructed observer might have hastily inferred that the tribe of humour ". Yet the whole the accident had been a part The narrator was wanting of the incident in a " sense knew better, and gives the incident as a proof of the great power of selfThe same writer observes that African restraint displayed. humour them "amuse themselves at his savages, while allowing a European traveller to and treat them expense after he they know » as children, will is gone, and, indeed, while he is present, if that he cannot understand their speech "} Eev. Duff Maodonaia, Africana (1882), i., pp. 266-7. THE LAUGHTER OF SAVAGES 222 how who know not These considerations will prepare us to understand some have regarded savages as dull creatures, commonly held by those visited them is suggested by a passage in one of Peacock's stories. In Crotchet Castle Mr. MacQueedy puts forward the thesis that laughter is "an involuntary action developed in man by the progress of civilisation," and adds that " the savage never laughs "} how to laugh. who have not That this view is only fair to say that travellers themselves have not It is At the same been so foolish as to uphold this view. time, some of them have drawn hasty conclusions from the fact that they happened never to have heard members of a par- A ticular tribe indulge in laughter. this reasoning curious illustration of from inadequate negative evidence is the dis- pute that took place, not so long ago, as to whether a people of Ceylon, known as Weddas (or Veddas), came gory of the laughing animal. It was into the cate- confidently asserted a certain Mr. Hartshome that they never laughed, even by when they were experimented upon, and were confronted with the Another spectacle of others convulsed. to understand this by his a taciturn and almost morose laughing reckless mood when it may " help us between mood when hungry, and not hungry". must evidently have observed them Could visitor remark that they vary in a a Hartshorns hungry mood. have been that, unlike Mary Kingsley, as some of us remember her playfully observing, he had something about him which kindled appetite 'It is ironically learned friend (Brougham) and the ^ ^ true that this astounding proposition is answered somewhat by Rev. Dr. Polliott, who says, " Give him modern Athens, the sham intellect Society Yet it seems odd that task for his amazing ignorance. velop his muscles taken to ? ". —they will de- this confident assertor was not The dispute may be followed by the curious by turning up the followviii., p. 316; cf. E. Desohamps, Pays des ing: Indian Antiguary, vol. DISCREPANT REPORTS OF VISITORS 223 Other illustrations of a too confident basing of a conclusion on failure to observe one may Thus be found. traveller, Bates, that the Brazilian A phlegmatic, apathetic temperament. Von den it is said by Indians are of a more recent visitor, Steinen, gives us a different impression, remarking in one instance that " the silent Indian tinually chattered, merrily" (lustig men and women con- and Eva's laughter sounded forth right heraus).-' These apparent discrepancies in the notes of difterent observers point, I suspect, to something besides such accidents as the particular The mood in provoke laughter ability to witness the failure of many which the is tribe is found. not possessed by meritorious attempts to excite children's merriment. by all adults Something of the easy good-nature which disarms timidity, of fraternal sympathy, and of the knack like themselves, of making your audience believe seems needed to draw forth fulness of these children of nature.^ all you are the mirth- We must always allow for this factor in the personal equation of the observer of savage ways. It is refreshing to find that missionaries have so often succeeded in getting at the lighter heathen. It speaks well for their genial moods of the humanity. The general impression one derives from these accounts is that savage tribes are certainly not given over to a sullen despair, but on the contrary have a large and abundant mirth. Like children, they appear to express The Taprobanian, vol. i., p. 192 ff. The German upholds the v?riter in the latter periodical, and says that the Veddas "laohen gerne," though some of them are bad tempered, and laugh but little. NaturforscJmngen auf Ceylon, pp. 378 and 540. ^ Carl von den Steinen, Unter den Naturvolkern Zentral-Brasiliens, p. 61. ''This applies, of course, to the detection of the whole of the social qualities which make up good-nature. F. Nansen attacks the missionary Egede for his misrepresentation of the Greenlanders in calling them coldblooded creatures. See Eskvmo Life, pp. 100, 101. Veddas, pp. 378-9 visitor, Sarasin, ; THE LAUGHTER OF SAVAGES 224 their emotions with great freedom, and their laughter and other signs of good spirits are of the most energetic kind. Darwin us that his correspondents, missionaries and tells him on this point. Loud laughter accompanied by jumping about and clapping of the hands, and others, satisfied frequently carried to the point of a flooding of the eyes these are conspicuous characteristics to be met with among the Australians and other savage tribes.^ Other testimony supports Darwin. Sturt, for example, tells us that the natives of Central Australia are a merry people, and laughing and talking all sit up The more recent the night long.^ observations of Lumholtz support the view that the natives are "very humorous".^ said by one gaiety The Maoris they are merry fellows : New (of Zealand) are traveller to be " remarkable for their natural : always laughing and joking, especially during the adventures of a journey Of the Tasmanians we read : fun in the despised aborigine " There ",^ is not a little Similarly, the ".* love of South Sea more accustomed to jesting, mirth and humour ".* The natives of Tahiti, again, "jest upon each other with greater freedom than the Europeans "J So, the Tongans have " a strong sense of the ludicrous " which they show in " the ordinary interIslanders are " than irritating and reproachful language course of life ".* Borneo, speaks of of every Kanowit Mr. Ling Roth, writing of the natives of " the chafi" and fun so dear to the heart ".' 1 Expression, of the Emotions, p. 209. ^Central Australia (18S3), ii., p. 138. ' Among Cammbals (1889), p. 291. New Zealand (1847), ii., p. 11. "Bonwiok, The Daily Life of the Tasmanians (1870), p. 174. * Angaa, Australia and "Ellis, Polynesian Resea/rches (18.32), 1., p. 96. A Voyage Bownd the World (1818), sBrskine, The Western Pacific (1853), p. 159. 'TurnbuU, 'Natives of Sarawak and Brit. N. Borneo, i., p. 372. p. 84. EXUBERANCE OF MIRTH In other regions, too, and among other races we the same exuberance of mirth. This is light on true of the natives when they are unspoiled by Europeans. The by one who knew them earlier, to be Africa, of 225 Kafirs were said, generally speaking a good-humoured people with a keen relish for amusement, and ready to join in a jest.^ to the Gold Coast joke, and people writes : found that the natives dearly loved a had a most Kingsley, as is still given to mirth and jokes. " West I think the is this Miss lively sense of the ludicrous.^ well known, found in the West Africans In a letter to me a she African, unadulterated, the most humorous form of human being there 'is, and him exceedingly good company for me ". Nor Visitors this makes joyous exuberance confined to the natives of warm climates. We find examples of it in the chiUy North. One who visited the Indians of the Canadian Red River (the Chippewas) about forty years ago says, that they are and fond of relating anecdotes they laugh immoderately at any trifling joke or absurdity and seem " full of frolic ; thoroughly to enjoy existence ".^ These recurring statements of travellers about the mirthsome extent supported by other fulness of savages are to The writer on the Tasmanians, already quoted, gives us a number of their difierent local names for fun. When a people and especially a savage people has a name for a thing, it is a fair inference that it has some evidence. — — considerable acquaintance with the thing To say that itself. this or that tribe is given to laughter and joking does not, of course, imply that the merry temper > » is Bev. Jos. Shooter, The Kafirs of Natal (1857), p. 232. Cruioksliaiik, The Gold Coast of Africa (1853), ii., p. 253. 'Hind, OanaMan Bed River Exploring Expedition (1860), ii., p. 135. Other examples of the mirthfulness of savages are given by Herbert Spencer, Vesorvptwe Sociology, Div. I., 15 —A. Pt. 2 TUB LAUGHTER OF SAVAGES 226 We the constant or even the predominant one. indeed, in certain cases that the mood is are told, a changeable one, and that these undisciplined men and women resemble children in their rapid transitions from grave to gay. Thus one traveller to the Gold Coast remarks that the inhabitants will change suddenly from reckless gaiety to On despondency.^ the other hand, as may be seen from our quotations, the predominance of the gay temper, as expressed in the habitual smile and readiness to laugh, seems to be a distinguishing One faces were two of " trait of certain " ordinarily bright and good-natured," and that them in particular, whom he always had a smile on their faces On the other hand, there tribes stand out folk savage peoples. traveller, writing of the Patagonians, teUs us that their by is knew intimately, ".^ reason to think that some from the general run of good-natured, merry a habitual preponderance of the grave in their bearing. and austere Rengger, for example, remarks of the Indians of Paraguay that they are serious and gloomy laugh only rarely, and never break into loud (diister), laughter.' There are probably serious savage there are serious children in England tribes, as and other civilised would be strange, too, if the treatment of American Indians and other aboriginal races by their countries. It civilised conquerors should again, even in naturally not have developed merry folk, now and something of a gloomy demeanour, at least in presence of the white man. Hence, these exceptional cases do not seem to impair our general conclusion, that laughter has a large dwelling-place the uncivilised peoples of the earth. • 'i 3 Cruiokshank, Gold Coast of Africa, he. cit. Home with the Patagonians (1873), Musters, At Saugethiere von Paraguay (1830), a. 10. p. 167. among DIFFERENCES AMONG TRIBES 227 The descriptions of the movements expressive of mirth, given by these visitors to savage tribes, are not as a rule full or exact. This might be taken to mean that the laugh- much like our own. Yet this would be a for we must remember that it is not easy ter of a savage is rash inference ; for one imtrained in the finer kinds of observation to note with precision movements so complex and so rapidly changeful as those which express gladness and mirth. The apparatus of the photographic camera and of the phono- graph has not as yet, I believe, been made use of for the purpose of registering these presumably primitive forms of laughter ere they vanish from the earth. Darwin, as we have seen, has satisfied himself as to the The concomitant movements of hands and feet seem to be common. A more precise account of these movements is given by Ling Roth. The Tasmanians, flooding of the eyes. he tells us, accompanied their loud bursts of laughter with movements of the hands to the head and quick tapping movements of the feet.^ The loud, deep-chested character of the men's laughter is sometimes specially noted. to Central Africa regrets that, A recent visitor under European influence, the men is being replaced by the " mission giggle " in the younger folk.^ deep-chested, hearty laughter of what is known as 1 have come across, too, one attempt to describe with some exactness the expression of a happy mood when it flows on more quietly. The good spirits of the Andamanese, it appears, show themselves in a sparkling of the eyes, and a wrinkling of the surrounding skin, also in a drawing back of the corners of the may It be mouth which remains concluded Tasmania that the facial partially open.^ movements and (2iid ed.), p. 38. ^ Ab<n'igines of 2 Johnston, British Central Africa (1897), p. 403. B. H. Man, " Aboriginal Inhabitants of the Andaman Islands," Journal ' of Anthropol. Institute, vol. xii., p. 88. TH« LAUGHTER OF SAVAGES 228 other changes correspond broadly with what we have seen to be the characteristic expression in the case of the children of racial physique though differences of civilised races; undoubtedly introduce a slight amount of dissimilarity into the expressive Much " movements of laughter.^ of this savage laughter gladsome mind," a flow of good thought of care or trouble. is just the outcome of a undisturbed by the spirits This persistent " cheerfulness," by our inadequate language, stands their possessors in good stead. The natural gaiety of the Maoris, assured, comes to their aid when they encounter we are hardship. They are full of fun even when short of food on to describe it a journey.^ But the laughter of savages does not appear merely as a general sign of gaiety and roUieking specialised into the laughter of our For example, we recoil become and attitudes similar to those which are expressed ditions by It has spirits. the expression of particular mental con- children. find instances of laughter occurring as a from something relates a own Two like timidity or shyness. boys, missionary, had had the small-pox and had not seen one another for a month. missionary's house they began another their disfigured faces. When they met in the by shyly hiding from one At last they summoned courage, and after many side looks at one another they faced round and burst out laughing, the elder boy saying, We marked "? Here escape from gene, from a feeling akin to shame, was the primary condition of the laughter, though this was no doubt reinforced by a sense of " are alike triumph as each discovered that he was, at off than the other. A least, not worse writer tells us that in East Africa ' See Baulin, op. eit., p. 94 ' Ling Eoth, Natives of Sarawak, * ff. etc., i., Angas, p. 81. loc. cit. SPECIALISED FORMS OF MIRTH " a slave never breaks a thing without an instinctive laugh of pleasure "} struction naughty yet ; This laugh may it shame; for it is us, that down is set part at be, in to the love of de- least, like that of a laugh of bravado hiding a consciousness child, a of naughtiness, a tells 229 mode drowning a nascent sense of of presumable, from what this same writer an East African slave does not destroy At the same owner's property with impunity. his time, one must allow that the process of destruction in itself may be to a savage, as alas it often is to an English boy, an easy way to the attainment of a " sudden glory " Savages appear to resemble children more clearly in their introduction of jocose attack into their play. Here we see an analogy between the mental attitude of a savage and that of an older child. Nothing comes out more plainly in the reports on these uncivilised peoples than their fondness for teasing, including practical jokes. The love of teasing A writer. much more one another than Europeans ".^ to testified is good authority freely by more than one us that savages tells " tease and jokingly (scherzhaft) This fondness for teasing comes out strongly in their mimicries of one another's defects, a point to be illustrated presently. as with our A form. observes : '' own boys, is In certain cases, the teasing, apt to take on a decidedly rough lady, writing of the inhabitants of Funafuti, It is thought a good practical joke in Funafuti saw an unsuspecting youth with a pandanus which produces a very painful scratch " a good deal for a girl to leaf," : of laughter on the one side is and volubility on the other the usual result of this joke ".^ 1 Burton, Lake Regions of Central Africa, 2 Waitz, NaturvOlker, 6ter Theil, * Mrs. Edgeworth David, Funafuti, p. 230. B. ii., 102. p. 331. THE LAUGHTER OF SAVAGES 230 new of the teasing instinct: they grow out Practical jokes are by The savage inventions which take the victim they do not distinctly mislead. surprise, if intelligence quite boyish in the fecundity of its invention in this is domain. The younger folk seem to practise rude jokes very like by our own youngsters. Here is an inyoung African negro, seeing an old woman carrying a pumpkin, approached her and shouted that there was something on her head. She forgot all about those carried out A stance. the pumpkin, shrieked at the thought of some hideous object on her head, and ran forward, allowing her tor- mentor laughingly As is to pick up the prize she had let fall.^ natural, these practical jocosities are sometimes directed, with a certain caution, of course, against the European. A young savage of shell-fish laid let of Tasmania once slyly down by him search for it removed a bag a sailor at the foot of a rock, and in vain, and, replaced the bag, showing himself " when tired of his joke, highly diverted " at the had played the European.^ As with ourselves, these practical jokes are wont to be paid back, and with " interest ". A story is told of certain trick he Hottentots who played off a joke on some sleeping com- panions by shooting a couple of arrows close to them, which made them waggons, where start up and hurry they were received for with arms to their a shout of The victims of this false alarm afterwards paid out the perpetrators. They succeeded in terrifying them by a skilful imitation of the roar of a lion, which drove them into camp screaming with terror.' In other cases the laughter. 1 Shooter, The Kafirs of Natal (1857), p. 232. 'Ling Both, Aborigines of Tasmania (2nd ed.), ' Wood, Natural History of Mam, i., p. 261. p. 29. PRACTICAL JOKES may practical joke and may even be 231 be retaliative of some serious annoyance, inflicted on some European " superior ''. how some of her West African " ladies " had been'piqued by the employee of a trading company, who tried to get them apart, when planting manioc, so as to hinder them from talking. They took their playful revenge by making a haycock over their tyrant and shouting Miss Kingsley relates " Get along, white man ! I 'spectable married She gives another instance so forth. A playful punishment in her ladies. had been rude to some young black official whereupon they resorted of them, him to the broader joke of throwing water "} passes for woman," and of this disposition to into " the batter that ' Closely connected with these modes of teasing, we have the practice of taking off bodily defects by mimicry and by These modes of playful attack appear to be nicknames. directed most commonly against outsiders, but instances are given of a discreet mimicry of a fellow-tribesman in his absence. It seems probable, though I have not found the much fact brought out explicitly, that of the amusement derived by these simple folk from their nightly talks, which are made gay with laughter, consists in teasing attacks on the bodily defects or peculiarities of certain members; though, from the evidence forthcoming, one would infer that a choral laughter over the stranger is the more usual feature in these social entertainments. In all this mirthful teasing it is easy to see strikes us as cruel, or, at least, as unfeeling. natural that the hilarity of peoples low now and of culture should down much that It only is in the scale again take on this aspect; as when, for example, they are said to laugh exultantly at iprom an Telegraph. article, "West African Woraen,'' contributed to the Daily THE LAUGHTER OF SAVAGES 232 Yet, on the whole, the the struggles of a drowning man.i merriment of these peoples, when the butt is a fellow- tribesman, though undoubtedly rough and often very does not seem to be so brutal as one might expect. We can understand the diversion of so large an amount savage mirth into these practical channels of coarse, —teasing, bantering and playing-oiF jokes upon members of one's tribe, by reflecting that laughter plays, as we working, if is a social process, shall see presently, a large part in the and smooth not also in the very maintenance, of the social fabric. In order to see the meaning of this teasing laughter, we must note the way which in it There accepted. is no doubt, to begin with, that savages have by nature is a lively dislike to being laughed indeed if this were not so, at. It would be strange seeing that both the monkeys below them and the white men above them display This seems to have aversion. we have as seen, laughter-loving, have show the butt of a joke. voked (gereizt) a of Ceylon, who, not impressed marked We been specially noted in The Weddas the case of certain races. all visitors It is related of one of these as made much pro- displeasure at being are told that they are when they this are laughed at (ausgelacht). men that, when during a dance he was thus treated by a European, he shot an arrow at Poor old folk among ourselves will, we the laugher.^ know, do much the same when they are jeered at by Bain in his English Composition and Rhetoric, but Mr. Ling Roth assures me that the statement is probably correct and says that he remembers having read recently an account of the amusement of Chinese bystanders on such an occasion, one man putting out a boat merely to ' This p. 237. is stated by Prof. I have been unable to verify the statement ; ; — save a hat ' 1 Sarasin, Forschungen auf Ceylon, s. 537. HOW TEASING IS ACCEPTED incautious boys, and even a youth has been A writer to shy tells us that a made good of other facetious attention holds savages as well. known This dislike of being a stone at a too robust jeerer. the object of a 233 common fireside amusement among certain savages is to tease the women till they become angry, which always produces great merriment. The teasing, it is added, is of a rough and not Further evidence of this distaste for very decent kind.' the douche of a voluble laughter is supplied by the curious ordeals of the Greenlanders, to be spoken of presently. On the other hand, there is ample evidence to show that game are, as a rule, acThe youth who bore tlie biting satire the rough jocosities of the teasing cepted in good part. of the pandanus leaf seems to compare favourably in this London policeman, who recently complained him by a lady of the tickling some part of his official visage with her respect with a in court of the soft attentions paid East End in dainty feather. Sometimes we are distinctly told that jokes are taken in good part, so long as they are seen to be intended So as such. of the African Hottentots ing to the authority already quoted.^ is and Kafirs, accord- Of the Tahitians it said that the jests played off at their expense are never taken in ill part.^ It is evident that the rougher kinds of jocosity here de- scribed allow considerable scope for something of the spirit One fears that this was felt by the women victimised by As with boys, so with savages, of superiority and contempt. to be present, for example, the men's coarse teasing. we may suppose that playful respect its limits, but that ' Sproat, Scenes 2 Wood, op. cit., »Turnbull, attack now and does not again it and Studies of Savage Life (1868), p. 51. p. 261, and Shooter, op. cit., p. 233. i., op. cit., p. 372. always allows itself THE LAUGHTER OF SAVAGES 234 by the brutish element to be infected humour Nor man. in when we remember how much surprising men owes in civilised of is this so-called piquancy to the same its brutish ingredient. This attitude of superiority and contempt seems, as one may might have expected, to be more apparent in what called the extra-tribal direction of jocosity, larly in the common of the nature of be particu- laughter at members of other rival and possibly hostile tribes. is more In certain cases we are told that this mockery and Among ridicule. savages and early communities, writes one authority, when their chief- amused themselves tain sat in his hall with his warriors, they by turning enemies and opponents into mockery, laughing at on their defects, giving them nickThe savage again like a boy is apt to be a vain sort of fellow, and to think that his ways are a lot better than those of the rest of mankind. Hence he their weaknesses, joking names, and so will, — with something of contempt in his heart, laugh at the bungling and — forth.^ efforts of will give a men of another tribe to kill a turtle, nickname to man or take off crazes, such as his the white with admirable mimicry some of his passion for road-making or for bartering. Yet it would, I think, be an error to treat this laughter at the outsider as a form of serious of the corrective superior. It is, ridicule, with its feeling even when lightly touched with contempt, savage play, and has for its chief ingredient the love of fun, and that delight in the mere contemplation of what is with his ethnic One foreign and odd which the savage shares betters. characteristic of this savage jocosity referred to by travellers have seen that the teasing of the ' is so frequently that I cannot pass women is Wright, History of CaricaPwre and Orotesgue, it by. We apt to take p. 2. COARSENESS OF MIRTH on an indecent form. We 235 are told, again and again, that savage jokes are commonly low and immoral. the joke, we are informed, the better The natives of the Gold Coast.^ it is The coarser liked by the jests of the natives of the islands in the Pacific are said to be " low and immoral to a disgusting degree".^ Possibly the European is not permitted to of this aspect of savage mirth. It is easy, know the worst however, to give To the simpler by the laws of decency too serious a significance. it savages, untrammelled people know them, there may feeling of as civilised be no suggestion here of a delight in the immoral as such. Their laughter may well them an undisguised reference to on hiding up has in it nothing improper indicate the fact that for what we insist that they are just within sight of the stadium of culture which convention begins to brand such references as at Young obscene. children among ourselves will, I believe, often laugh at such open and direct mention of unmentionable things many in in doing suspect and much in the same way. cases, I surmise, than a little It is hardly more bravado, a glorying something unusual which they are beginning to is forbidden, though this is no doubt apt to be accompanied by a perception of the indignity done by this uncovering to the person involved.' We may now turn to those forms of savage laughter which involve a more disinterested contemplation of things, and a rudimentary sense of their ludicrous phases. There ^ Ellis, op. cit., i., p. 97. Cruiokshank, loc. cit. easily one may overcharge this indictment of coarse immorality is illustrated by what Von den Steinen says of the laughter of the Brazil Indian women when he asked them the names of the several bodily parts. Some would have taken this to be the low joking of brazen-faced women. He distinctly tells us that it was "just simple innocent laughter," op. 1 'How cit., p. 65. THE LAUGHTER OF SAVAGES 236 is no doubt that the enjoyment world fills a large place in the conjecture that it is that of most boys may ; of the droll side of their One may savages. life of a larger pastime in their case than in for though the intellect of a savage not surpass that of a boy, his experience and matured good sense enable him to judge of the unseemly and the incongruous with considerable derive much mirth from The simplest form and quickness, and to skill the contemplation of them. of this merriment, serving, as in the case of the child, as a bridge from joyous expansion under a new sensuous excitement to an appreciation of the odd, is the common laughter of savages at what is strikingly new to them, and at the same time takes their fancy. For much amused at when they saw the dampers of the keys jumping up and down they " fairly laughed aloud "} In like manner the Indians of Hudson Bay took a compass for example, the natives of Borneo were very a piano, and a toy and laughed at account of its use.^ refusing to accept the owner's it, These are pretty clear examples of a mirthful delight at something which and appealing to the port, more expressive of a new, devoid of im- play-appetite. of the laughter at the lively haps, is The later stages compass-toy were, per- little dim sense of the absurdity of the suggestion that a dear wee play-thing could do such marvels. This gleeful greeting of what is at once new and exhilarating to sense answers in the case of these simple people to in ourselves is joyous admiration. African ladies, wives of a king, Thus, who we read what of certain expressed their delight at European works of art by repeated loud bursts the of Our own children show us now and again how new, when it not only captures the sense by its novelty, laughter.' 1 Ling Roth, ' Liohtenstein, Travels in Southern Africa, op. cit., i., p. 72. ^ Barrow, Hvdscm's Bay, p. ii., p. 312. 32. NEW AND ODD GREETING OF THE but holds by it may charm, its greeting, as free from the stiff evoke 237 this purely mirthful attitude of curiosity as it is from fearsomeness.^ good step from It is a fun of a new as foreign this childish abandonment to the toy-like thing to the recognition of something and opposed In these to the tribal custom. simple communities the unwritten laws of custom play a most important of Violations of part. any tribesman are apt them on the part dealt with to be seriously. This at once tends to limit the range of savage laughter the pressure of custom display of is too tyrannical to allow of a full the odd and irregular in human behaviour. These elements of the amusing have accordingly to be supplied from without ; and they are supplied in good measure, partly by other neighbouring tribes whose manners are by the Europeans them with a virtuous intention to reform and observable, and to a stiU larger extent who visit civilise. Let us first take a glance at the hilarious appreciation of The the other tribe's ways. grow particularly entertaining doing something which own spectacle of the foreigner will tribe. The is when he seems perfectly familiar to the observer's Tahitians, it seems, are laughed at dwellers in the neighbouring islands a turtle by pinching its to bungle in throat. when they As may be by the try to kill supposed, the trick, so useful to the beast, of drawing in the head gives a veritable look of the absurd to these attempts. So, too, the enlightened people of one island drew voluminous amusement from the news that those of another island who had just come into possession of the novelty, a pair of them by baking them.^ These two tried to sharpen show a dim apprehension tions » Compare above, pp. 72, 73. scissors, illustra- of the fitness of things as " Ellis, op. dt, i. , p. 97. THE LAUGHTER OF SAVAGES 238 "my determined, not by the relative standard of way," but by an objective standard. The field in which they cull most of their facetious enjoyment of the doings of outsiders would seem to be the ways There the difi'erences, the departure from " our way " and the inability to acquire this are great of their white visitors. enough to appeal strongly to They ludicrous. which of things useless. If the see the strike crude sense of the their odd white people do a number them as extraordinary Englishman laughs and quite at the foreigner for not taking his morning tub, the simple savage will turn the tables by making merry over our elaborate washings. Thus the Fuegians, though living much in the water, have no idea of washing themselves; acccordingly "when Europeans first came among them, the sight of a man washing his face seemed to them so irresistibly ludicrous that they Here burst into shrieks of laughter".^ is an example of a rather more complex feeling in presence of new-fangled European ways. It seems that a South African Prince, presumably as a compliment to the white man's custom, wished to shave himself and, as our youths frequently do on his first attempting the European visitor to natives present "stood feat, cut himself. He then asked him. The mute with admiration during the perform the office for whole performance, gazing with the utmost eagerness in their countenances, and bursting at length into a general — customary mode of ex- peal of laughter this being their pressing delight, astonishment, nay even embarrassment and fear." as ^ The we have last part of this seen, it is not so barrassment, or the fear in statement much itself, is a little loose, since, the astonishment, the em- which laughter expresses, as a relaxation of the strain involved in these attitudes. 'Wood, o]i. cit., ii., p. 522. ^ Li(,]itangtgijj^ qp_ cj^ _ jj_^ p_ 303. AMUSEMENT AT FOREIGN WAYS The laughter excited is of a rather -when the action of the white not merely because it man more 239 intellectual kind presents itself as absurd, rudely diverges from the customs of the natives, but because involves something out of the it range of their comprehension, and so appears incredible. It is then that the white evoking laughter : man shows —when like the fears — are apt to photographic camera they do not excite A evoke incredulous laughter. had learned some sentences traveller in down and read them laughed " South Africa of the speech of a tribe (the Sichuana language) from his man. f eUow superiority in his his arts, his apparatus off before most heartily " He then wrote them the man. when This simple his white him that it was the marks he had made which showed him what he was to say.^ A master book would in the told child pretty certainly join the savage in laughing at the idea of getting sounds out of the inert, stupid-looking word- symbols, if it were suddenly introduced him to in this way. When the may expose white man's doings are not absolutely new, he himself to the laughter of these merry folk manner of them. One would like to know by the odd aU the jokes which the natives of South Africa, of Poly" nesia, and the other abodes of the mirthful " Naturkind have had over the dress, the gestures, and the speech of their white visitors. We Yet this would be hard to get at. do know, however, how they are wont to greet some of our highly civilised performances. This which some Tasmanian women European manner of singing. behaved on a tion to the attentively while shouts ^ ; it lasted ; the is first way in introduc- They listened then some applauded by loud others laughed to splitting, while the Burohell, Travels in Southern Africa (1822), vol. young ii., p. 339. girls, THE LAUGHTER OF SAVAGES 240 no doubt more timid, remained silent.^ This laughter was, presumably, more than the expression of a wild delight. may Those who laughed be supposed to have been the most susceptible to the absurdity of this In the case of the closely song. are distinctly told that unheard of manner of we may allied art of dancing, our highly approved style The Sumatrans, writes one authority, have very slow dances which are thought to be ludicrous by Europeans. Yet, funnily appear ridiculous to the savage onlooker. enough, they think our customary dances " to the full as They compared our minuets to the fighting of two game cocks. ^ Did they also see a galop, one wonders, and if so, what did the lovers of slow dances say about this ? The " refinements " of the arts of civilised ludicrous men are ". ever apt to appear laughable to lower those down. The laughter when of these uninstructed people the clever white man simple accomplishments. fails to More grows loud achieve one of their pronounce the sounds of their language seems to be a source of merriment. we have quoted more than pronounced them badly".' " once, often laughed to splitting Another " I made mistakes or traveller, West Coast of Vancouver's speaking of Island, writes That they had some standard of correct speech from the readiness is evident of the children to ridicule a stranger mispronounces native words".* from Borneo. prolific The Tasmanians, writes one whom when, wishing to repeat their words, the natives of the The own particularly, his inability to girls, A who third example comes a visitor reports, made Europeans repeat sentences of their language after them, and burst out into loud laughter 1 ' Ling Both, Ling Both, (2nd " either at our pronunciation or at the ed.), p. 134. * (^. cit. (2nd ed.), p. 36. * op. cit. Marsden, History of Sumatra, Sproat, Savage Life, p. 266. p. 230. THE OUTSIDER AS IGNORAMUS comical things they had more made us utter "} 241 Nothing, perhaps, clearly exhibits the ludicrous value of the violation of a perfectly uniform custom than a mispronunciation of Nor language.^ just as it does to should eflfort, ing to do fail is this It all. seems absurd to a savage, an average English what seems to child, that him not merely the foreigner to require no but to be something one cannot help doing, like laugh- itself No or crying. doubt some feeling of superiority to the foreign ignoramus enters into the enjoyment here. Perhaps the children of Vancouver's Island felt this superiority we are distinctly told most of all. In some cases, however, that the ineptitude of Europeans, when it provokes laughter, out also the soothing accompaniment of kindly en- calls couragement. The exhibition thing " we do,'' of another kind of incompetence to do the highly provoking to the hilarious mood, breach of good manners ; is a for here there comes in something of the sense of social superiority, and something of the joyous momentary quette. when Just as " relief from the burden of rules of etiSociety " gets nearest to a genuine laugh confronted with the vulgarities of Midas as he pushes into her inner circle, so the savage keenly enjoys his oppor- tunity of detecting gaucherie and want of savoir faire on the side of his white he is visitors. Indeed, he seems ready, when sure of not offending, to treat these breaches of etiquette with good-natured merriment. A traveller tells visiting the house of an Indian chief down on what he took to be a bundle of composure of mind proper to a guest of us that on Canada he sat buffalo robes. The royalty must have in been slightly disturbed at the discovery that the robes began move and undulate beneath him, to till to his utter confusion Quoted by Ling Roth, Sarawak and British North Borneo, "Compare above, p. 104. 16 ' i., p. 93. THB LAUGHTER OF SAVAGES 242 he felt The the embers. chief, his three wives and the other native people in the tent " shrieked with laughter The trophe. behind among himself projected into the middle of the tent full " at the catas- measure of the good humour that this laughter revealed itself to the lay- white visitor when he saw emerging from the heap of robes the fourth and youngest wife of the chief, who, to her credit be it said, joined in the hilarity. Something of the reflective element seems to peep out in one variety of this laughter at the odd ways of the white A man. missionary, one of the discerning ones as seem, found the Sea Dyaks it would disposed to treat the idea of our They were curious to learn what was required of the religious worshipper, and particularly wanted to know whether he was forbidden to laugh; and they explained their inquisitiveness by confessing that, religious services as a joke. like Mr. Barrie's " Humorist," they being able to restrain themselves.^ were far from sure of Solemn ceremony with when meaning its severe demands will be apt, to provoke in savages and in children alike a keen desire its is hidden, for the relief of a laugh. A palpable ingredient of mind appears in the laughter of savages at the white man's ideas about the beginnings and the endings of things. The inquirer into their beliefs may present himself to them as a quite unreasonable sceptic, grubbing at the very roots of things which sensible accept as self-explanatory. The members men of a tribe in Central Australia (Arunta tribe) were immensely tickled by the question how The idea, that ' came by the sacred had handed down to them. their remote ancestors stones or sticks which they anything could have existed before these Hind, Canadian Bed Biver Expedition, ii., p. 135. Ling Roth, Sarawak and British North Borneo, ''See i., p. 75. ABSURDITY OF WHITE MAN'S IDEAS original ancestors, struck them as ridiculous. explanation of any custom of the tribe was, it, and therefore we do was The ultimate Our fathers did to go behind tradition so to pub forward an to challenge its sufficiency, Here we have a mental attitude absurd paradox.^ like To try and it ". " and unlike that of our children 243 at once for the latter are con- ; servative of tradition and disposed to accept authority, but same time very energetic in pushing back inquiry what came before ". Intelligence would seem not merely to be stirring, but at the into " to be capable of adroit play when the savage detects the ridiculous in the white man's ideas of the future of his race. How many of the simple savages who are instructed in the dogmas of the Christian religion accept them unquestioningly it would be hard to say. Many, perhaps, fail to put any definite meaning into what they hear. Now and again, however, we meet with an instance of a daring laugh at what strikes the hearer as utterly absurd. A teacher of the native Australians had once tried to explain to an intelligent black the doctrine of the immateriality and immortality He of the soul. away from afterwards learned that his pupil had gone the lesson to have a hearty absurdity of the idea without arms, legs, " we of laughter at the and going about The crass materialism spiritual ideas was much or mouth to eat " .^ of this tyro's efibrt to assimilate the same as fit of a man's living observe in our children. In this laughter at our ways and our ideas we superior people are inclined to see merely the ignorance and narrowness of mind of the laughers. savage may, once and again, 1 " in Yet it is possible that the making merry at our ex- Spencer and Gillen, The Native Tribes of Central Aust/ralia, pp. 136, 137. Quoted from Gideon Lang by Bonwiok, Daily Life of the Tasmanians p. 174. THE LAUGHTER OF SAVAGES 244 His good sense pense show himself really our superior. may be equal to the detection of some of the huge follies the matter of dress and other customs to which the in And he enlightened European so comically clings. been known and to strike the satirical note down self-satisfied Europeans so finely but practised so little what they upon and laugh "at the stupid who preached to look has preached "} We may now glance at the intra-tribal activity of the That mirthful impulse. this fills some place in the life of savage communities has been illustrated in our account of We their teasings. field for the play of must not expect to find here a large what we call the comic spirit. As we shall see presently, this spirit when the movement only begins to fly bravely of civilisation introduces more diversity of class, and, further, a greater liberty of utterance women A pretty clear tribesmen is accompany tested. illustration of laughter directed to fellow- by the merriment that supplied athletic Among favourite and other competitions amusement of the are accompanied by a good ing that the older men that some eflbrt made is is the throwing of trials of skill to preserve discipline.^ It is This merri- the expression of a keen Greenland in 1728. At the same time (1878), ii., Eskimos to- See Eskimo Life, pp. 106-7. ^Brough Smyth, Aborigines of Victoria and of our schoolboys' asserts this with respect to the attitude of the settled in is deal of laughter, notwithstand- enjoyment of the triumphs of the game. wards the Danes who said to are informed, a The no doubt largely the counterpart Nansen is which skiU are present to instruct the boys laughter in the playground. ' in we young men is the natives of Victoria, the spear and other similar exercises. ment —for as well as for men. p. 278. RIDICULING FELLOW-TRIBESMEN if, as one may assume, it is directed against blunders a sociological significance. which urges a youth example illustrates becomes a It " social do his best in the to A member prepared. of asked to do the same ; and the Another field. is totally un- A native was knowing what was The man singled out his ears. others, watched him attentively. to be done, has European party which was a Weddas could move visiting the it sanction," the impulse to laugh at a comrade's accomplish a feat for which he failure to 245 for the feat looked blankly towards the sky, his ears re" as if maining nailed to his head " ; at this moving spectacle one of the onlookers suddenly broke out into laughter, the others at once joining Here we have laughter in.^ at a fellow-tribesman, in face of Europeans too, exactly similar to that which make an attempt In is there less, is directed against the European himself. much exhibition of their limitations, especially is too, savage laughter has the ring of the merriment of the playground and of the circus. of the first forms of a reciprocal mirthful attack or bantering between classes life who when the preceded by a display of vanity and boastfulness. this respect, One Doubt- of this kind of laughter at those is that between the Sexes. Savage supplies us with clear cases of inter-sexual jocosity be- sides that of the teasing which, as sided game. Africa we find we have seen, is a two- In a collection of sayings and stories of West the following : look after a "pot-au-feu". he had skimmed off the A woman On left her husband to returning she found that bubbling foam and hidden it in a was She twits him with it and discovers to his slow wits that the savory scum has melted into nothing.^ This recalabash, naively supposing that this the cream of the dish. 'Sarasin, op. 2 cit., iii., p. 540. Burton, Wit and Wisdom of West Africa, p. 52. THE LAUGHTER OP SAVAGES 246 minds one of many a story of the Middle Ages, and shows how wide-spread is the exposure of the male incompetence to the lash of woman's merry wit. These jocose thrusts at the opposite sex are interesting as illustrating the the male differentiation of class-standards. If laughed at for his bungling at the mysteries is how much more when he actually fails to keep Mr. Ling up with the women folk in his own domain Roth, whose eye seems to have been specially focussed for of cooking, ! records of the mirthful utterances of savages, a boat-load of women who had us that tells been gathering oysters rowed a race with a visitors' crew and managed to beat them whereupon there was a fine outburst of feminine hilarity and much quizzing of the men who had allowed themselves to be beaten by women. ^ Here, surely, was a touch of a higher feeling, a dim perception at least ; permanent and universal forms of the of the , fitness of things. The call It humour to be found in the concourse of naming properly his his, chiefs children. we work just should quoted. to deal with the problem These, he contended, were not but had been begotten by certain spirits (the Antus or Hantus). to is seems that a stupid old soothsayer once called together a large of have met with, of what clearest example, I a dry One come many miles of the chiefs did not enjoy having to listen to this sort of stuff, so " he pretended in the midst of the soothsayer's discourse to faint away, and fell back gasping for breath, kicking his legs spasmodically in the air at the same time ". This interruption brought the tedious proceedings to an end, and so saved the was not 1 all : chief But this pay the chief from further boredom. the disappointed humbug had to Ling Both, Sarawak and British North Borneo, i., p. 83. EXAMPLE OF DRY HUMOUR who had ment is performance some fowls as a punish- his spoilt 247 The for allowing the spirits to attack him.' story- instructive as illustrating the tendency, as soon as classes begin to be marked Perhaps, indeed, off, man to score off a we have of another class. in this jocose imposition on the imposer a suggestion of the merry-making of kings and marked peoples at the expense of the clergy which was so a feature in mediaeval hilarity. A word may well be expended on the organisation laughing the of amusements among savage a white man peoples is subject of the propensity One tribes. regular into of the things which can learn from these much-misunderstood the of art Without entertainment. social luxurious salons, without plate and rare wines, without the theatre and the concert good deal their freely A much easy they have own war and feats in and the laugh social conversation. is long if chase. "Jokes pass not loud." standard dish in these social entertainments off the peculiarities When, they sing and chat, and older men fires and brag about lie they manage to obtain a they are relieved of the presence writes one traveller, of strangers Round hall, of genuine, unpretentious conviviality. of other Mimicry, the basis of the tribes is taking and of Europeans. actor's art, is often carried to a high degree of perfection among these uncouth savages; and it is highly prized. tribes of the When, imitate the peculiarities of tribe, it is 1 ^ is able to some absent member of the very common to hear with laughter.^ e.g., writes a missionary of the remote part of Victoria, a native The Indians the beard, of other all in the camp convulsed of Brazil hold the peculiarities, tribes Ling Both, op cit., i., pp. 83-4. Quoted by Darwin, Expression of up to laughter ^ Sproat, op. the Emotions, p. 209. by means cit., p. 51. THE LAUGHTER OF SAVAGES 248 This mimicry, as might be ex- of a lively pantomime.^ natives of New South Wales used to be so skilful in this them " Their mimicking of the that one wrote of art : oddities, dress, walk, gait whom all the Europeans so exact as to be a kind of historic register is several their authority tells and actions characters".^ The same us that the Tahitians are acute observers and even looks of the manners, actions, if and looks of they have seen from the time of Governor PhiUips downwards, of The embraces the odd ways of the white man. pected, of strangers ; and they have any singular imperfections or oddities, they will not fail to Another make themselves merry at their expense.' traveller certifies to the fact that the aborigines of Victoria were splendid mimics, and would, after attending the white man's church, "take a book and with much success imitate the clergyman in his manner, laughing enjoying the applause which they received mimicry is ".* A and turn for found also among the North American Indians. The Califomian Indians gave name " Wo'hah," formed from to the " American whites the whoa-haw," the sound they when they drove heard the early emigrants produce their an American coming up the There comes a wo'hah,' road, and cry out to his fellows "Let an Indian oxen. see ' ; at the same time swinging his arm as it will produce convulsive laughter." Along with if driving oxen, and ^ this skill in mimicry, savages show consider- able readiness in the verbal arts of descriptive caricature, In practising these, we are witty sayings and repartee. they make ample The possession ^ '> ' Von den Op. of these rudiments of talent naturally leads Steinen, op. cit., p. told, use of the instrument of irony. cit., p. 71. 372. North American Ethnology '' (J. ' TurubuU, op. cit., Brough Smyth, op. cit., i., W. Powell), vol. ill., p. 410. p. 88. p. 29. MIMICRY AND CARICATURE 249 It is attested again to a certain amount of specialisation. and again that our uncultured savage communities possess Indeed, we their professional pantomists, jesters and wits. read of crude forms of a comic art among savages so the scale as the Australians and the Tasmanians. low in Thus, Lumholtz writes of the pantomimic dances of the Australian blacks,^ and Ling Roth assures us that the Tasmanians have and mountebanks, who exhibit the their drolls of individuals with considerable force.^ trans, again, are to be found " peculiarities Among the Suma- characters of humour," who by buffoonery, mimicry, punning, repartee and satire are able to keep the company in laughter at intervals during a night's entertainment.' by a In some cases jesters are appointed chief, just as a fool kings. used to be selected by one of our In Samoa every chief has his regular clown, a privileged person who, among other liberties, is buffoon in Kanowit, who had allowed that A privileged of taking the food out of the chief's mouth.* been given an old gun, told the Resident that he had killed fourteen deer with one bullet. The Resident being had cut the puzzled, he explained that he bullet out each time.^ Here we have the exact counterpart to the trick of the European clown of the circus. Among the Eskimo of Greenland, it seems, there is a regular in which the aspiring " funny men " compete performance for popular favour. After a repast they get up, one after the other, each exhibiting his musical resources and by beating a drum by making singing, and adding a touch of the actor's art comical gestures, and playing ridiculous tricks with the face, head and limbs.^ 1 Op. cit., Much the same kind of contest pp. 239, 291. ^Li^g Roth, Tasmania (2nd 'Marsden, op. cit., p. 230. * Quoted by Waitz, Naturvolker, 6ter Theil, p. 102. ' Ling Both, Sarawak and British North Borneo, i., * Hans Bgede, Nat. Hist, of Greenlamd, pp. 156-7. takes place ed.), p. 38. p. 84. T»E LAUGHTER OF SAVAGES 250 in connection Each by singing one who with their peculiar ordeals, already referred two of the litigants tries to satirical make to. the other ridiculous, songs and relating misdeeds ; and the succeeds in getting the audience to laugh most at his jibes or invectives is Even pronounced the conqueror. such serious crimes as murder are often expiated in this merry fashion.^ In one or two eases we read of more elaborate entertain- Thus, some of the natives of the Western Pacific ments. have a regular masquerade performed before the King, into which may enter a with his sailor histrionic representation of a British by cutlass, acted role of a " combines with the a leading buffoon, premier " the of breaking through the strict laws of to the King and asking amid shouts ironically if " fool's " who privilege decorum by pointing was the King that of laughter.^ Other traces of a rudimentary art of the comic are to be found in the amusing songs and stories which can be The Australians had songs Europeans were caricatured, traced to savage invention. which the in peculiarities of the chorus being sung amid shouts of laughter.' comic song, heard among some took off the bodily peculiarities of some another tribe —in the graceful Another of the aborigines of Australia, lines —presumably of men : legs, oh, what legs The Kangaroo-rumped fellows. Oh, what legs, oh, what legs ^ Oh, wliat 1 I In these crude forms of art we probably find traces of the influence of European models. Nans en, Eskmo ' F. 2 Quoted from Jackson's Narrative Life, p. 187 ; There c/. Egede, (1840) are, however, stories loc. cit. by Brskine, Western p. 468. 'Bonwiek, * Grey, op. cit., p. 29. Two Expeditions in Australia (1841), ii., pp. 307-8. Pacific, RUDIMENTS OF COMIC ART 251 which seem to be a perfectly spontaneous growth. it is of enough to refer to the Of these originals of the delightful tales Uncle Remus, the substance of which, as their author tells he obtained from the blacks in the American us, Miss Kingsley writes to plantations.^ know made Lower Congo ". the tales are not Stories in the baby device of the tar is up. It me of these I struck the may '' : I Tar Baby be added that the to be found in its essentials in a collection of African stories.^ Our study seems own in Much of it is our little girl to tell us that savage laughter representing different levels is like of refinement. just naive, unthinking gaiety, like that of the spoken about in the preceding chapter. ing with this infantile gaiety we have Co-exist- the coarse brutal forms of laughter which we associate with the rougher kind of schoolboy. ones, in is Along with these lower forms we find higher which some amount of reference to discoverable. Lastly, we may the story of the man about sans arms, legs, etc., detect here social standards and there, as in by the idea of dead men going and of him who jocosely stripped a tickled humbug of his disguise, germs of a more thoughtful laughter;, and on the other hand, in the kindly tempering of the laughter of the girls at the Englishwoman's inability to movement towards sympathetic laughter. In other words, we detect the dim beginnings of that complex It seems probable feeling or attitude which we call humour. make mats, a that the quality, if not also the quantity, improves as we pass from the lowest and most degraded to the higher savage tribes.^ J. Chandler Harris, Uncle Bemus and his Friends. B. E. Dennett, Folklore of the Fjort, pp. 92-3. ^ Mr. Ling Roth has pointed out to me that the laughter of the Australian at the absurdity of the idea of a dead man going about without ' 2 THE LAUGHTER OF SAVAGES 252 Hence, no doubt, the common humour of the West African — more feminine it is not child-like it is very broad or coarse. it is only say what seems to '' others, we chuckle over, superior persons look and would call bufToonery." ^ One practical reflection to close community which has much to do in lower races " I can excellent joke seems so to —there are many jokes neither of us can see " with in quality, though of the me It is diflBcult to describe. me an by It is peculiar, : him : felt characteristics of the Miss Kingsley writes to hilarity of savage tribes. respect to the which has been difficulty travellers in describing the the point down on Any civilised way of managing with. the would surely be wise to take some heed And of their love of fun. this, because it has been found that appeals to this side have been more effective than the harsher measures to which even a gentle Briton An himself sometimes driven. may think African missionary, already quoted, writes that in cases where a disposition to quarrel shows "one joke itself borne out by one savages, legs, etc., when he occurs in a. who worth ten arguments".' is race usually placed The we generalisation in the text. a high order case ; This is to tell of his says of the East African that he delights Yet this apparent exception does of much good has not and, further, was an "intelligent" among the lowest in tlie scale. not, I think, affect the validity of the intellect displayed in this ridicule is not are distinctly told that the scofier in the native, that is to say, one of more than the average intelligence of his tribe. 1 me Mr. Ling Both writes that he agrees with Miss Kingsley as to the difference between the laughter of savages quite ready to accept this view so far as directions of the mirth. The diSerenoes it and of children. I should be concerns the special forms and of capacity, experience and habit involved in the difference between the child and adult will, of course, introduce temper. many dissimilarities into their manifestations I hold, however, that as regards the cesses involved, the similarity ^Maodonald, op. cit., i., is real p. 266. and of the mirthful fundamental psychical pro- great. RULING THE SAVAGE BY JOKES in a joke " letter to which manages him me like a Neapolitan Miss Kingsley writes : " I ".' In a have always found them into doing things that other people could them to do, with blows I could laugh them out things other people would have to blow out of them with I could chaff — not get of 253 a gun ". ^ Burton, op. cit., ii., pp. 338-9. 254 CHAPTER IX. LAUGHTEE IN SOCIAL EVOLUTION. In the two preceding chapters we have followed the earlier stages of the development of laughter in the individual and have glanced at its counterpart in the life of savage communities. now we try to push the how the mirth of If inquiry farther, and ask psychological the child de- velops into that complex sentiment which in these days we call thing is humour, we find ourselves forced to pause. however. clear, No One one of us would ever have acquired this valuable endowment but for the educative action of that advanced stage of social culture which our intellectual that we and moral environment. It is seems to follow need to look for a moment at the movement shall of social culture itself, to consider the impulse of laughter as one of the features in the life of a community, inquire how it and to has become transformed, almost beyond by the movement of social progress. To attempt to give an exhaustive account of these recognition, changes would clearly lead us very far. It may social be argued with force that every one of the great directions of social evolution, such as that of intellectual conceptions, of moral sentiments, of political and social liberty, of wealth, of the classes and ranks, has involved as its some change in the intensity, the mode of distribuand the manner of expression in daily life and in differentiation of effect tion, SOCIAL ASPECTS OF MIRTH But we do not need the laughing impulse. art, of consider so deeply. It will be 255 enough if we to briefly retrace those phases of social evolution which appear to carry with them immediate accompaniments considerable modi- as their mirthful fications of the We must in spirit. this inquiry begin This was aspect of laughter. by defining the chapter in connection with our study of the savages. One We of its have now to examine most obvious social touched on in the it more last mirth of closely. characteristics is its contagious- The potent appeal of laughter to a mechanical imitativeness is significant in more ways ness, already referred to.^ than one. is how It suggests large a part of human hilarity nothing but a kind of surface resonance, as empty of yawn ideas as the infectious or cough. But also that laughter is social in the sense that it A choral and so uniting. is it suggests essentially gathering of yokels at a fair moment to become a and the habit of laughing together will laughing at a clown tends for the coherent group ; tend to consolidate the group. When property still of ideas plays a part. of others' laughter, the the general roar, one's personality. To is It is as if the swift response drowning of one's own outburst in for the time the boundaries of efi'aced of the laugh, though together, is less automatic and issues and sentiments, the contagious the conjoint laughter from community rejoice together in the full utterance it perhaps no moves us less less deeply than to weep potent in cementing a lasting comradeship. The social side of laughter comprehends, however, much more than this. It is commonly recognised that the feeling expressed has something human 1 for its object. See p. 42. Now those LAUGHTER 256 who directly or SOCIAL EVOLUTION IN indirectly serve as the butt are all the world over disposed, till the grace of a genial tolerance has been added, to dislike and resent the part thrust on them. So far, then, laughter would seem to be anti-social and dividing, and, alas, the history of literature will furnish the student with notable illustrations. laughter becomes one of the despised Greenlanders Yet this hurtful edge in valuable social properties. its may As teach us, laughter supplies a mode of punishment which combines with effectiveness, economy and humanity, a good deal of enjoyment for the In onlookers. fashion, it all societies, if not exactly in the Greenland has been accorded an important place among the agencies which, by castigating and vices follies, seek to lower their vitality. The sharp edge of laughter represents, however, only one of its effects on the sensibilities of the butt. Savage life has given us illustrations, not only of its disagreeable con- sequences turned to judicial purposes, but of its agreeable consequences in cajoling others out of attitudes of hostility and stubbornness. a mode This curious of treatment which explained in the main by stitute a is its life may seem, of is to be To subis, like up the playThe mutual teasings and tends to call seen, as a training, virtues, such as the toleration, above one's private One we have and estimable good temper, of it playful function. in the recipient of the challenge. of savages serve, as in simple as joke for argument or coercive pressure tickling, to challenge to play, mood effect, primarily hurtful an daKija-i';, maintenance and the setting of comradeship feelings. other social aspect of laughter illustrated by savage needs to be touched on. In the instinctive tendency of the savage to ridicule the customs and ideas of outside folk we have one expression of the self-protective attitude of a SOCIAL UTILITY OF LAUGHTER 257 community against insidious outside influences. Just as the Hebrews ridiculed the religious ideas of the worshippers of Baal and so helped to keep their national faith intact, so these tribes laughter at low down in the culture what is have in their scale any con- foreign a prophylactic against No tamination from outside peoples. doubt this tendency in laughter will help to preserve once useful tribal characters when altered circumstances, introduced, for example, coming of the white man, require new adaptations. by the In this we see the essentially conservative function of laughter in the life of societies. On and delight. the white we shall need social consider very to which the mirthful carefully the attitude Now by In dealing with the connection between progress and laughter, towards we have seen, man may attract the other hand, as novelties in dress introduced spirit takes up social changes. these aspects of laughter point, as As to a social utility in laughter. we have seen, offspring of the play- impulse, it might, indeed, be expected to share in those benefits made which, as recent research has In our study of life of its progressive communities, illustrate this utility become a commonplace, at belong to play. shall fully. its have occasion to That laughing is individual subjects has least to the student of literature. shall be concerned tages, such as the we much more good, physically and morally, for Here we clear, development and persistence in the with its distinctly social advan- maintenance of customs which from the point of view of the community, or of some class of the community, are to be regarded as good, the keeping down of vices and follies, and the furtherance of far this utility extends is social co- operation. The question how cannot be answered simply. It will be 17 one which found that societies, LAUGHTER 258 SOCIAL EVOLUTION IN 60 far from universally recognising laughter as a useful have taken vast pains to restrain it. Indeed, our study of the fortunes of mirth in the advance of social life habit, wUl show us that it has had throughout to struggle for its existence. From what has just been said will be clear that it we have to consider the history of laughter and the move- shall ment Not only does of social evolution as inter-connected. a change in ideas, sentiments or institutions tend to modify the expression of the mirthful mood, there is a reciprocal upon ideas, sentiments and instituSuch interaction holds good generally between influence of laughter tions. amusements and community serve the recreations of a pursuits; serious in important ways to determine the sure of the vigour thrown into serious activities. case of laughter this reciprocal influence is mea- In the much more marked, owing to the circumstance that mirth has been wont make to play about serious things, to now and for its finely tipped shafts, these the target again going so far as to shoot one into the midst of the solemnities of social life. In the savage tribe The perception of we what find but little of class division. is unfit and the laughter which accompanies this are directed, for the most part, to bers of other communities. it is join The laughter choral because is that in which the whole tribe joins or ; Some but for that very reason it mem- is prepared to has a monotonous sound. differentiation of groups within the community seems necessary, not merely for the constitution of a society, but for the free play of the laughing thought and behaviour is a spirit. main condition Diversity in of the full flow of social gaiety. The germ of such diversity is present in the lowest CLASS-DIVISION AND MIRTH conceivable type of human community. male and female in which Nature, as work with human, if The to it institution of combine divine and puts asunder, at once joins together has been with us from the beginnings of and 259 human society; might be an amusing pastime to speculate how the our males of ancestors ape-like first gurgled out their and how the females managed ridicule of female inferiority, to use their first rudiment of speech-power in turning the tables on their lords and masters. must have been found rank, too, societies in the contrast Some differentiation of in the simplest human between the old and the young, and the closely connected opposition of the rulers and the ruled. But it would be hazardous to reason that, in the much in the way of exchange of fun passed between those who were presumably kept solemnly apart by the sense of their relative station. It is only when we move on to a society with a con- early stages of social evolution, siderable amount of class differentiation that its relation and distribution of the spirit of mirth grows to the nurture In glancing at these divisions apparent. adopt M. veniently Tarde's expression, we may con- "social group". Such a group may be either a class, the members of which have like functions and a common character connected with these, such as priests and traders; or it may be a set constituted merely by community of knowledge and taste, as the members of a society standing on a particular level of culture. Although this double way of dividing social groups necessarily leads to overlapping, it seems desirable to adopt it here, so as to give an adequate account of the relation of group- formation to the particular directions of social laughter. The development of distinct groups within a community influences the behaviour of the laughing impulse, first of LAUGHTER 260 all, SOCIAL EVOLUTION IN by introducing diversity judgments relative way In this intelligence. enlarges the field for those competence and about and of occupations, abilities it with fitness which, as savage laughter illustrates, simple forms of mirth have so much to do. Thus, the establishment of dis- employment and mode of tinctions of life between the sexes has contributed copiously to that mirthful quizzing by the other which seems of each human ingredient in The culture. to have been a prime jocosity from the lowest stages of male at slightly malicious laughter of the female incompetence, which treatment of his of literature. seen is in the schoolboy's sister, is illustrated throughout the course And good examples are not wanting of a turning of the tables by the female on the male. story of King which we have found the counterpart example of the more shrewish is less performance fall to of When — the — of is an male the sense of keen, and the impression of the folly of the fills the soul, the shrewish note the genial pitch of laughter. of industrial in savage life criticism ignoramus by the female expert. injury The Alfred's misadventure with the cakes The is apt to difierentiation and other employments, such as those of countryman and townsman, of landsman and seaman, of soldier and civilian, serve to certed laughter, and The formation of new develop new social groups further material and the opportunities for laughter noticeable and and impressive speech. In this way that which contradicts our been made wide and may suffice to centres of con- points of attack. enlarges the by introducing differences of behaviour, dress the field of the odd, the absurd, own customs and fertile. A mere standards, has difference of locality generate such differences. Not so many years ago, one could hear in the West of England the FUNCTIONS OP GROUP-LAUGHTER which the people in one small town or jibes wont We to hurl at those in another. 261 were district read that in the when local differences of dress and speech were much more marked than now, satires on people of parthough probably ticular localities were not uncommon much more than a perception of the laughably odd was Middle Ages, so — involved in these rather fierce derisions.^ The immediate sets utility of this mirthful quizzing of other would, like that carried out by one savage tribe on another, consist in the preservation of the characteristics of own one's set. But the play of laughter about class-dis- When tinctions illustrates another of its benefits. gets used to the distinctive ways of another, regard them as right and proper for the latter carry one set tends to it and ; it mem- inner sentiment of the other group by deriding those bers may regard for their propriety so far as to support the its who do ive customs not conform to their group-customs. Distinct- — have been conserved not only to adopt ethical terms having a somewhat different meaning —by " internal sanctions" in the shape of serious penalties as well as ridicule administered ' by fellow-members by The of the set, but external sanctions " in the shape of outside mockery. imposing soldierly attitude has perhaps been kept up quite as much by the merry quizzing of civilians as by any military discipline and esprit de corps. A poor tottering hero in uniform could, one opines, never have escaped the eye of citizens lying in wait for the laughable. The men occur screwing up of finer opportunities for this mirthful of other groups to their proper moral height when the peculiarities of the mode a special rule of behaviour, and, particularly, was a severe 1 one. The hollow would of life imposed when hero, trying Wright, History of Caricature amd Grotesque, this rule to hide the p. 181. LAUGHTER 262 SOCIAL EVOLUTION IN poverty of his courage in braggadocio, has been a favourite figure in comic literature, classic clergy A and modern. illustration of this situation is the laughter by the people during the Middle Ages. catures of the monk—representing notable heaped on the The cari- him, for instance, as Reynard in the pulpit with a cock below for clerk, and the many Gontes which exposed his cunningly con- a trived and immoralities, frequently them with visited well-merited chastisement, show pretty plainly that the popular laughter in this case had in it something of hate and contempt, and was directed in part to the exposure and punishment of the celibate class. This may be asserted, even though the holy it must not be forgotten that in these Gontes infrequently emerges from his man by no means dangerous experiment unscathed : a fact which suggests that in the popular sentiment there lurked, not merely some- thing of the child's mirthful wonder at daring cunning, but a certain sympathetic tolerance for a caste, on the shoulders of which was laid a The mental and there somewhat weighty yoke. attitude of the narrator rather suggests here that of an easy-going Englishman when confronted with the spectacle, say of a drunken sailor or soldier.^ Another in for class much physician. having high pretensions, which has come of the " screwing-up " kind of laughter, Next to the healer of the soul, the most for mortals. his pedantries layman with mirthful the he undertakes In Gil Bias, in the comedies of Moliere, and in other works, methods and is we may were apt to see how his ancient affect the intelligent ridicule. ' M. Jos. BMier in his interesting study, L'Esprit des Fabliaux, though he argues that the fabliaux in general had no social aim (" port^e sooiale "), has to admit that in the case of the treatment of the priests these " contes k rire en vers " betray a genuine hatred, ai hatred which (he adds) rune through other forms of literature of the Middle Ages. SCREWING UP LAPSING SUPERIORS So far nothing has been said of the 263 rank of the groups The differentiating of a higher from a lower with more or less of authority on one side and thus formed. caste, subserviance on the other, will turn out to be the most important feature in social grouping in bearing on the its As we have forth of social laughter. calling seen, our merriment has much to do with dignities, with the claims on our respect made by things above us while, on the ; other hand, the contemptuous laugh which has had volume and duration implies a relation if of superior and inferior only the fugitive one created by the situation of quizzer. All stages of group-formation seem to involve something of this distinction between an upper and a lower The class. simplest conceivable structure of society includes a head and ruler of family, clan or tribe, and subjects. significance of social grouping as a Hence, the vast condition of choral laughter. How far persons in positions of authority have gratified of superiority their sense below them, power is real by derisive laughter at those would, of course, be hard to say. When and absolute there are other ways of ex- it pressing contempt. Literature undoubtedly furnishes ex- amples of the ridicule by the social superior of the ways of a lower (o. as in the Provencal class, poem of Bertran de Bom 1180) in which the villains are treated contemptuously. Yet the larger part of literature, not being produced for a ruling caste, does not throw One much light on this subject. can only infer with some probability, from the relations of parents and adults, generally, to children, and of white 1 B^dier points out iu the work quoted that the writers of the fabliaux, which issue from the burgher class, and are written for this class, take sides with the weak villains rather than with the strong knightly class (see p. 291 ff.). Cf., however, Wright, op. cit., p. 114. LAUGHTER 264 IN SOCIAL EVOLUTION masters to their coloured slaves, that power has always been tempered by some admixture of good-nature, which composition has produced a certain amount of playful and cementing. jocosity, at once corrective derisive laughter of the superior is particularly loud The in certain cases might where the authority is not so real as it Man's ridicule of his not too obedient spouse be. may be said almost to shriek Egypt in papyri of adown the ages. We may read of the fourteenth or thirteenth century of the misfortunes of a husband, named Anoupou.^ The Greek comedians thought no abuse of the sex too B.C. bitter or too coarse.^ In Latin literature we have of different types portraits of In mediaeval figures of various brutes, a fox, a mare, etc.^ society, the is low opinion of satirical women, drawn under the women entertained by their lords illustrated in the firm persuasion that the only way to — treat them was to beat them watching them was quite vain so that they might be occupied all the day with — Sometimes, as in the Arabian Nights, this con- crying.* tempt takes the form of bitter denunciation most part, Even the it ; but, for the has laughed in the brighter key of comedy. satire here is wont to lose all trace of savageness, and to assume the tone of a good-natured acceptance of the incurable. While the formation of ranks has thus secured a social wide range for superciUous mocking of inferiors, it has guaranteed these ample opportunity of avenging themselves by laughter How ' at the expense of the authorities. soon in man's history any such laughter became See Maapero, Les Contes populaires de I'^gypte, Introduction (" des deux frdres"). ^ Percy Gardner, Greek Antiquities, ' Tyrrell, Latin, Poetry, p. 220. p. 353. * B6dier, op. cit, p. 279 fi. Oonte TURNING ON MASTERS possible, it would be hard In the simpler types of to say. community, the severe restraints laid of the tribe must, one supposes, indulgence as is by sons 265 on youths by the men have been fatal to any in laughter at the expense of fathers, such comedy both ancient and modern. The must have any impulse of laughter, if it happened to arise. illustrated in penalties attached to breach of ceremonial rule stifled It is said that when the chief of a certain tribe chanced to stumble, his subjects were bound order to cover up his defect.^ custom may have in lain its to pretend to stumble in The utility of this quaint effectual suppression of the This theory, however, postulates a kind of risible impulse. removed from the modern, of whom it seems might be trusted to see stumblings and worse without feeling an over-mastering temptation to laugh. One can only conjecture that men began to discern and courtier widely safe to say that he enjoy the amusing side of authority and asserting from itself, its solemn ways of in their free moments, at a safe distance tell-tale eyes. What is known of the hard-worked slave of antiquity suggestive not merely of play after toil, is but of a safe turn- When, as we read, the Egyptian workman got fun " out of the smallest incident in the day's work an awkward apprentice cutting his finger, a comrade ing on task-masters. — sleeping over his task him," and so forth, whom did the overseer lashes to not something of a malicious crowing over the overseer express itself awaken spirit too ? of The analogy of the judiciously half-smothered laughter of the English schoolboy in playground or dormitory suggests the answer. We must not wonder if these dangerous ex- cursions of the spirit of fun have failed to be recorded. ^H. Spencer, Princvples of 205, 206. Sociology, "Ceremonial Institutions," pp. LAUGHTER 266 Still more IN SOCIAL EVOLUTION significant is another picture from the same representing a tussle between overseer and which "the hand,, workmen in an stick vainly interferes," so that "at least hour elapses before quiet is re-established".^ This looks like the rollicking laughter of schoolboys at the spectacle ceremony suddenly turned of an orderly interpretation is The to disorder. borne out by the fact that these same- Egyptians were able to enter into the fun of a loss of dignity in a solemn function, for example, the upsetting by a collision of the richly supplied table in the funereal and the falling of a of conveying The return it of mummy on a priest during the boat,- ceremony to its resting-place.^ contemptuous laughter from the slave to his- master was certainly allowed to some extent among the Romans. It became a well-recognised privilege during The of the chief annual festivals (Saturnalia). one- slaves in the plays of Plautus treat the tyranny under which they live " in a spirit of gay bravado ".^ Nor need we be sur if we remember that the modern prised at these liberties schoolmaster must almost be perfect if he does not find expedient, not merely to permit his pupils desipere in but to allow them expense. The now and cajoling Kingsley found so African, may again to have a mild joke at by means serviceable for of jokes, which it loco, his- Miss^ managing the West and its virtue of course stop short of this, in the substitution of a light, laughing treatment for lie bullying. Yet genial laughter, when the contempt has been vaporised out of it, necessarily tends at the levelling of planes, as is seen in the ' moment Maspero, Life in Ancient Egypt and Assyria, chap. i. 'Wilkinson, Manners and Customs of Ancient Egyptians, 429. " Simcox, Hist, of Latim Liter., i., p. 46. to a immediate assertion of iii., pp. 447,. WOMAN'S RETORT the right of reciprocity. why the schoolmaster is, the method of jocosity. it This 267 perhaps the main reason is in general, chary of introducing His laughter is apt to sound as if held some of the gritty deposit of contempt. The really delightful illustration of the turning of the on masters by those in subjection is to be found in woman's retort on man's contemptuous treatment. She has again and again managed to outwit him, as we have found tables him dolefully admitting, and has had her full laugh at his to manage her. The mediaeval fabliaux are certainly disposed to award success in strategy to her, cumbrous attempts Her ways of befooling him, too, have often been so simple as when she persuades him that he has been dreaming what he fancies he has observed that rather than to her lord. — — the poor dupe ought, one supposes, to have died of chagrin. And, when there has been a call for the finer sort of manoeuvring, she wins the unprejudiced reader to her side by displaying an admirable ingenuity and subtlety of in- vention, qualities which Mr. Herbert Spencer would probably regard as secondary sexual characters evolved during ages of marital tyranny. latter days there is Of her modes him The shout of turning on no need to speak. in these of con- temptuous laughter seems to have passed from the one side of the eternal fray to the other. But this hardly belongs to the present division of our subject. It may be added that the laughter of the laity at the clergy illustrates, in addition to the impulse already dealt with, the itching of spirited mortals to turn on oppressors. The denunciations and anathemas of this class, backed, as they asseverate, by supernatural sanctions, have always been trying to untamed men and women. of our ancestors for stories disgraceful to drew some of its And the appetite monks and priests keenness from this rebelliousness of LAUGHTER 268 man the natural IN SOCIAL EVOLUTION Here against spiritual tyrannies. illustration of the feminine retort with a gossip of hers in church : : A woman was is an chatting bidden by the preaching wonder which friar to hold her peace she exclaimed, " I babbles most of the two?"^ Still another variety of social laughter springs out of this and distinction of superior inferior groups. The impulse of exalted persons to assert themselves and to strike their inferiors with awe—an impulse by the way which the pea- cock and other birds will betray in the presence of their inferior, man the display — by those apt to be disallowed is is whom for thing, they feel, to It is one intended. acknowledge true authority, another to bow down to the exaggeration of its claim, to the boastful exhibition of mirthful eye for the entertainment latent in The power Hence, perhaps, some of the quickness of the and rank. soldier who braggadocio. all needlessly emphasises the fact that he pos- sesses the height and spirit of his calling imposing vociferation and the rest, by strutting, by has probably always been a source of comic merriment, as the Miles Plautus and the Bobadil of Ben Jonson gloriosus of may remind us. It will be evident that all this laughter of inferiors at superiors, own whether these are so really or merely in their opinion, must, so far as it has got home, valuable corrective function. If the derision of the lord helps to keep in place his inferior more does the laughter to what have had a dame or vassal, much him of his inferior serve to hold befits his rank. Noblesse oblige is a rule largely maintained by the demands of those below to pay homage. These, as who are expected we know, have been much em- ployed in claiming modest rights from their curbing of a king's tyrannies ^ may have " betters ". The required a rebellion Given in Hazlitt'a New London Jest Book, pp. 31, 32. LAUGHTER OF INFERIORS UTILITY OF of his barons, or a riot of his people 269 yet a good deal of : checking of tyrannic propensities has been carried out by the unalarming expedient of ridicule. we may enlightened country now and again Even observe in to inflate their dignity in a free officials unduly ; and a tendency so that one infers that the restraining force of the laughter of inferiors still counts. The results of this spirited turning of the The impish been considerable. worm have mirth has taken spirit of up its abode with the common people, and instructed them in the rich soiu-ces of the laughable which lie in aU rank and dignity. On the other hand, the " high and mighty " have, from a true instinct of self-preservation, waged fierce war with this irreverent attitude of The struggles between the two will be the multitude. spoken of presently. The scope which, given the disposition, for laughter these divisions of group and of rank bring with is further widened by the vital them circumstance that, as groups in the same community, they have to enter into A various relations with one another. of opposition and harmony of judicious mixture interest seems to be favourable to a rich production of mirth. This is most illus- trated even in such masterful relations as that of the overseer and the commanding the compulsion of the rod of the officer, who may find that inadequate to the extraction is required amount of work, and so have to cast about for other instruments. The good efiect of a skilful use of the cajoling laugh has already been illustrated. ness in the relation of situation and is It is seen that, in spite of inclination with particular husband and wife ; clear- for the fun of the profound difierences of taste and of a sharp antagonism, the necessity of LAUGHTER 270 common SOCIAL EVOLUTION IN and ends holds them together in daily interests This necessity, ever present to the wiser of association. them, has tempered, the contempt and forced the derider to humour. at least a pretence of good The same may be The quality and said of the relation of the sexes in general. is wont to lighten a talk between young man and a young woman on a first introduction are pretty closely determined by the consciousness of sexual range of the fun which a relation on either Shyness, a disposition to regard side. the other suspiciously as opponent, together with the instinct to please and win admiration, and the desire to strike on points of sympathy — all this helps to bring about, and reflected in the peculiar wrigglings in spirit expresses itself One tility of the best and a desire on such an occasion. examples of the combined to agree The the market place. is The direct buyer and relation of and sharply felt effect of hos- found in the humours of to be to be pregnant with opportunities for side. is which the mirthful seller merry fooling on seems either opposition of interest is apt to beget a good deal of the rough sort of "taking Not only down". will the attack, the situation may tongue be stirred to derisive even beget retaliations in the The merchant, shape of practical jokes. as the expert, has always had the upper hand in the contest of wits. His customer has had to find consolation in satires on the cheat, such as those which were On common in the Middle Ages.^ the other hand, the need of coming to an agreement has served to bring into the haggling process a good deal of the conciliative known ' kind of laughter. The vendor has always the value of good-natured banter as an instrument Wright, op. cit., p. 133. A good story serving him, is given by Bidier, op. a retaliative practical joke, spilt some wine on p. 272 ff. of carried out by a bachelor on a tavern keeper cit., iii., who had HUMOURS OF MARKET-PLACE of persuasion. 271 This overflow of the spirit of fun into the may channels of serious business be seen as a faint still survival in front of a cheap-Jack's van. George Eliot has given us a charming picture of the play of this spirit in the -south in her chapter on " The Peasants' Fair in Bomola. '' The same intrusion of fun as an auxiliary into the busi- ness relations of groups is opposition has to be toned at, as in and the seen in many down and that of opposed political parties, religious bodies The appearance like. of the laughing imp, if only he behaves himself, in these rather ^oups warm encounters of serves to cool the atmosphere and to temper ani- mosity by at contact. and other cases where a modus vivendi arrived least momentary experience a half-suspicious attitude are apt to take of genial much, indeed, to tone down the uneasy It does up on first which members of any group having to do with those of a strange group, especially one of higher rank. We may now summarise the chief reciprocal laughter of classes at the In the at the first place, it helps, like ways social utilities of the ways of other classes. the laughter of the savage tribe any tendency of other tribes, to counteract to imitate the manners and customs of foreign groups. What we have laughed is at, we are not likely to adopt. This To laugh at the self -protective function of laughter. of another group is, moreover, in most cases at dulge in a feeling of our own superiority ; and would have a further conservative tendency, it is the laugh of the expert in his the ways least, to in- this attitude especially own department when at the outside ignoramus. Let us now glance at the are being laughed ridicule, especially at. efiect on the group whose ways To be the when we have object of another set's the right of retort, so far from necessarily weakening our hold on that which is LAUGHTER 272 ridiculed may strengthen what we we have When we are strongly at- us cling the more firmly Laughter in cherish. seen, it. may make tached, others' laughter to SOCIAL EVOLUTION IN this case is, ing of others' ridicule, a training which has in of a moral Yet indeed, as an excellent training in a good-natured it suffer- the virtue tonic. this inter-groupal laughter is not wholly subservient to the maintenance of characteristic differences. higher forms of society, at .similative action as well. least, It In all the such ridicule has an as- manages to some extent, by inducing self-criticism, to get rid of useless excrescences. Thus, it down helps to keep narrowness which narrowness which cries, " is class-vanity, the professional ! There's nothing like leather " a so delightfully satirised by Moli^re in the wranglings of M. Jourdain's professors. The of a correction of this exclusive feeling of self-importance group by outside laughter has always been at work, helping to keep groups in friendly touch, and hindering the sectional or professional esprit de corps from overpower- we ing the larger social consciousness which call national sentiment, and the common-sense of the community. this last So more far, we have laughter of what societies. Of will be said presently. illustrated the bearing may on the ways of be called the structural features of There has been no reference to the effects of meant by the successive changes of fashion in manners, dress and so forth, and of those more persistent movements which make up what we The least reflection will show that in call social progress. social movements, of all that is this continual flux of things social, the unceasing modifica- tions of the head-covering down of old beliefs of intellect," and we have and the institutions rest, and the trampling by the resistless " march at least as large a field for the gambols CHANGE AND FASHION 273 of the laughing spirit as in the distinctions and oddly com- bined relations of classes. We may fashion. and so by best begin may be These which are marked forth, movements of manners from the improvements referring to the defined as changes in dress, off by two circumstances entering into progress : (1) that they are capricious, not the products of a rational choice of the best and ; When we (2) that they are of comparatively short duration. a call mode of doing a thing a fashion, we imply, unknowingly perhaps, that it has not the cachet of a change for the better, and that as such it has no security quite of tenure. J A fashion differs from a custom in being essentially com- municable from one group to another, and even from one nation to another. Its development thus belongs to a com- paratively late period of social evolution. and women is explained by the fact that Its hold it on men two appeals to of their strongest instincts, the craving for novelty and the impulse to imitate superiors. Keeping to the intra-national note that the movement diffusion of manners, of fashion is we normally from the This movement may commenced far back in the evolution of communities where class-distinctions were rigorously enforced. The attitude of reverence towards superiors has for its psychohighest rank or ranks downwards. well have logical concomitant the impulse to imitate. will copy the voice and gestures of one Just as children whom they look up to, so savages will copy the ways of Europeans who manage to make themselves respected. In the ceremonies of primitive tribes and even of highly complex societies, church ritual, of imitation. a good deal of scope We may is e.g., offered for this flattery infer, indeed, that the impulse to adopt the ways of exalted personages must always have 18 LAUGHTER 274 IN SOCIAL EVOLUTION been at work. In the earlier stages of human history this impulse was checked by the force of custom and of law, e.g., sumptuary laws. This imitation from below must strike at the root of those external differences, such as style of dress, between group and group, observance of which has helped greatly to maintain class-distinctions. It could only have made way So against these barriers gradually. in sooth, does the feat appear to be, difficult, that Mr. Herbert Spencer suggests that fashion, as the imitation of those of high rank and authority, began in a change of custom in the rule already alluded to that when ; as the king slipped the onlooking courtiers should at once imitate his awkward- ness. It is probable that the imitation of what fixed in the costume is distinctive and manners of the higher ceded by some interval the imitation of the changes How fashion. quite clear. and class pre- we call the two are connected does not seem to be Did the rulers and those immediately about them, piqued at the adoption of their ways by the vulgar, try to steal a march on imitation To judge from what takes " yes ' ". am I by changing their customs place to-day, one told that ladies strongly object to go on wearing a fashionable hat as soon as worn by factory this be, it ? would answer girls, it becomes generally or other inferior group. seems certain that the However " leaders of society," while they reserve for special ceremonial occasions a distinctive dress, mode of speech and the rest, choose to alter these from Such alterations may be the result of the caprices of a " leader," guided by some inventor, or they may take the form of an assimilation of a foreign time to time for other purposes. mode. Lastly, the leaders Court people: origination of may include others besides the the universities are many accredited with the of the pretty bits of slang, the use of DESCENT OF FASHION which is supposed to betoken a certain " up-to-dateness 275 social altitude and ". In the midst of these changes of fashion something of custom may woman to-day, be seen we still to persist. Taking the dress of note that in spite of experiments like those of the Bloomers, skirts continue to be a permanent Fashions in respect of width, and feature in female attire. may come and even of length, go, but the slcirt as skirt seems to go on for ever. Even when the impulse of the upper class bably long before keen to adopt the dress was allowed a it acted on all and behaviour it was proEach rank, whilst certain play, ranks. ways of the class above it, any further descent of the imitative in its imitation of the would naturally resist movement. In this descent of fashion from higher to lower ranks we see a mutual modification of fashion and permanent custom. In some cases imitation from below may be stopped pretty early through lack of means for giving efiect to it. The joy of wearing pearls, or other precious stones in fashion at the Yet there are moment, denied the young seamstress. solaces here in the shape of Again, the lower middle class, are, for obvious reasons, for the is Queen Anne not to speak of the cottagers, not likely to be affected by a craze style in domestic architecture. in the case of dress, fine limitations might find it hard to define, restrained by lower ranks. by class-custom. which the seem example, on the architecture of the assimilated "imitations". hat, to " Even mere male " be imposed, for when a new Here, again, fashion is style is clearly Ideas of neatness, of an un- aggressive quietness appear to be valued, in theory at least, in milliners, domestic servants, and others who minister to The very ex- the wants of the titled and the wealthy. LAUGHTER 276 SOCIAL EVOLUTION IN pression " the fashionable world " implies that the fuU mag- a monopoly. and luxury of fashion is The imitation of the manners of high life by the middle class is in most cases a pretty clear acknowledgment of a One of the most amusing examples superior social quality. nificence snobbism of this thinly- veiled lately in vogue. A is the elevated hand-shake fashion like this easily reaches the eye of the vulgar, focussed for the first appearance of a characteristic of " high the illustrated paper. new by way of the theatre or of point worth noting here is the life," A exaggeration of what the imitators regard as of the essence of the new ''mode". symbolism (if It any) those hand-shake up to the would be curious to hear what who appeared so eager to get the level of the eyes assigned to this fashionable rite. This eager and almost simian mimicry of the ways of society's leaders must, it is evident, tend to the obliteration of recognisable class-distinctions in ordinary We life. only need to compare the spectacle of a crowd in London to-day with that of a mediaeval city crowd, as represented in a drawing of the time, to see what a depressing amount of assimilation in dress the forces of fashion have brought about. The connections between these movements of fashion and the spirit of laughter are numerous and pretty obvious. Even the primal movement, the adoption of a fashion by the head of a community from abroad, offers a rich spectacle for those How who lie in wait for the coming of the ludicrous. finely the folly that lurks in a slavish submission to fashion grins out at us from the story of those chiefs who, goaded by the fashion set New by others Zealand of giving great feasts, would often push their feast-givings to the point of causing a famine ' among their peoples H. Spencer, op. cit., p. 208. ! ^ The following MERRY ASPECTS OF FASHION of a foreign fashion by a court has in it, 277 moreover, always something to prick the spirit of malicious laughter in the Not subjects. so terribly long since, the importation of customs from one European court to another, and a reciprocation of the loan, of subject by way was the of family connections, malicious laughter in each of the rather a countries affected. It is, however, in the downward rush of fashion from rank to rank, and the incidents which attend it, that the The seeker for the laughable will find his satisfaction. movement eagerness of persons to be in the van of the will of itself produce a crop of ludicrous aspects: for the first sudden appearance of a large and capturing novelty, say in manner a high-branded bonnet or of speech, brings to us something of the delightful gaiety which the sight of the clown brings to a with the full, It is a child. huge folly, which we greet unthinking roar of hilarity. Never, indeed, does the inherent non-rationality of a large part of human and so unmistakably as when a fashion which has reigned long enough to become behaviour reveal itself accepted as right so directly thus rudely thrust aside in favour is whence the laughing contempt poured on new fashions by comic poets and satirists.^ Nor is this all, or the best. The behaviour of the ardent The aspirant has its absurd aspect even for dull souls. of an interloper : which consists in stepping out of one's form of self-assertion rank always viewed by those of the deserted rank with is an acidulated amusement eager to appropriate a as persons who ; new and those who are too manifestly fashion are wont to be regarded are trying to get above their set. If the "It was primarily against ' Curtiua remarks of the Greek comic poets the novel fashion of the day that they aimed their blows " (Hist, of Greece, : ii., p. 539). LAUGHTER 278 fashionable cosmetic will be by those IN is laid SOCIAL EVOLUTION on thickly, as it pretty certainly more vulgar form of social wax still greater. The display in seized with the ambition, the fun will this case adds to the delightful transformation of the clown a touch of the bombast of the mountebank. New possibilities of mirth arise out of the collision be- tween the imitative impulse and respect to be fashionable, An for the customs of one's group. exaggeration of some- thing in dress or speech which savours of an attempt to break through class-barriers cannot but amuse the onlooker disposed to mirth. wont Middle-class house-wives are, one hears, to enliven the dulness of their Sunday afternoons by a stealthy quizzing of their " maids " as they set out for their The maid's parade. — could suc—would doubtless draw village acquaintance ceed in stifling envious admiration ^if it a more rollicking enjoyment from the spectacle. any appearance set is greeted of craning one's by a slightly malicious laughter ; donning of fashionable array is In general, neck so as to overtop one's and the bold the most easily recognisable manifestation of the craning impulse. For a more purely disinterested spectator, too, the situation has its entertain- The str,uggle in the panting bosom of a young woman, whether of white or of coloured race, as the ing drollness. —recom- passionate longing for some bewitching novelty mended, too, by the lead of her superiors — sharply is confronted with the sense of what befits her, and possibly a vague fear of being plunged by a fiery zeal into the morass of the laughable, has its comic pathos for the instructed eye. One further contribution to the fun of the world this hob eagerness to a reference. pay homage to rank is made by perhaps worth Like the verbal kind, the flattery of imitation When the soul of man is often visibly hollow. is held captive by the necessity of doing what or is woman done by THE FUN OF FASHION'S DESCENT others —especially by others higher up for thought of sincerity : —there whence, among many is 279 no room results, this him who can be pure spectator responsive one, that for to the amusing aspects of things, the spectacle of a great national demonstration of loyalty cannot fail to have its diverting aspect. No doubt the pushing worshippers of fashion, they if only wait long enough, get their chance of laughing back. As soon at as the first, settles the moment new thing, so charged with rollicking gaiety down to a commonplace habit, there comes for ridiculing the popular figure on the stage, the " That belated imitator. old dowdy," is commonly represented as ridiculously behind the times in respect of Yet the range of jocosity inspired by respect for mere newness, on the value of which reason has had nothing attire. to say, is evidently limited. We may now turn to those deeper currents of change which together make distinct up progress social ; including all advance from lower to higher forms of intelligence, sentiment and character, as well as from lower to higher types of social institutions in We may either life ; and, along with these, the growth of which these changes express themselves. assume that these progressive changes from the adoption capacity appearing in individuals who are community, or from the propagation of institutions arise, mental of the products of superior members of the ideas, inventions, from one country to another. To say precisely how the production and circulation of a social improvement takes place is not easy. Men of imaginative minds, with an exceptionally large mechanical, legislative, or other insight, or with a fine feeling for the subtle things of beauty or of the moral order, there be. Against all must attempted innovation, however, whether LAUGHTER 280 SOCIAL EVOLUTION IN from within or from without, the attitude tism sets itself as to perceive the a serious obstacle. charm conserva- of Here, too, and influence of rank. we seem It is only when some recognised authority proclaims the value of the new discovery that the multitude, which was perhaps a moment before doing its best to trample on it, turns deferentially A The and kneels. commonly or as good follows free adoption of it as true much later. startlingly new idea, whether in the utilities of life, finds in its intrinsic reasonableness science, religion, or The when it laughs, just as when it is serious^ judges things by the standard of what is customary. What violently jars with this is viewed as legitimate game for, ridicule. The history of ideas and of the social movements no defence against the attacks of malicious mirth. ordinary mind growing out The of them is one long illustration of this truth. idea of a larger freedom women was treated matter for wild again after this, But advocates. the crowd. hilarity. and higher functions for theatre of ancient Greece as The idea came up again and thanks to the zeal and courage of isolated it And Mill advocated by the continued to excite the loud laughter of less the than half a century ago, when spiritual women, the response was at amusement. Only to-day is and first legal J. S. emancipation of largely an expression of a part of the civilised world beginning to recognise the naturalness and fitness of the idea that women should have their share, both in the in- tellectual gains of the larger work We may see new more advanced education, and in the of the world. by this illustration how mighty a force every idea of a large revolutionary character has to meet and to overcome. Darwin's idea of the evolution of in the sixties to the mass man seemed of Englishmen, including a bishop NEW RIDICULE OF IDEAS 281 Oxford and many another high up in the of intellectual culture, The our missionaries strike a keen-witted savage. the monkey, which of caricature, scale of very much as some of the teachings of is, by the way, one rendered excellent figure of of the oldest service to symbols those who, naturally enough, greeted the proposed topsy-turvyness of Darwinism with boisterous cachinnations. much It is wards the first the same with the attitude of the crowd to- Much merriment use of practical inventions. accompanied the introduction from abroad by the gallants of the Restoration of so simple the fork ^ —a fact to when he abroad is an innovation as the use of be remembered by the English tourist disposed to laugh at the sight of a too In such lavish use of the knife. the novelty are laughed at very new fashion. The absurdity cases, the first adopters of much as in the case of a of the adoption in either case turns on the delightful freshness and the glorious irregularity of the proceeding. On we meet here, too, with a recoil upon the laugher. Though a respect for the customary prompts us at first to ridicule any sudden and the other ' hand, of laughter impressive change in ideas or habits of change will is life, urge us to obstinate prejudice in favour of the old. one of its beliefs that of life. chief when the Laughter finds functions in ridiculing worn-out ideas, have been proved Nowhere, perhaps, illusory, is of survivals of the discarded many examples decaying and growing ways of this effete. and discarded habits the elation of mirth more distinctly audible than in this ridicule gives us yet, way of becoming fixed, the same feeling make merry over those who show an in a fair by an advancing age of its predecessors. Art merriment over what Every age igee Ward, Engl. Dram. Poets, ii., of stir p. iOl. is and com- LAUdHTER 282 IN motion has probably had SOCIAL EVOLUTION its satirical literature, striking The with boisterous mirth at the disappearing phantoms. broad and genial comedy of Aristophanes pushed against the tottering mythology of his time, and the evoked The great work of Cervantes same period poked fun at a large outflow of mirth. and the fall satires (pasquins) of the the sentimental clinging to the decaying order of chivalry and feudalism.^ Merry-making over the death of outworn ideas and institutions has frequently been reinforced by the deep and refreshing expiration which accompanies relief from pres- This elemental form of laughter has entered into sure. all those happy moments of national life when the whole people has become closely united in a joyous self-abandonPlautus, the comedian of the people, reflects in his ment. broad merriment the rebound of the War from Punic spirit after the second a long continued state of tension, and the craving of the masses for a more unrestrained enjoy- ment of the pleasures of life.^ The popular art of the Middle Ages, in which the demons seem to play the harmless part of the policeman in a modern pantomime, illustrates A the rebound from like relief of tension an oppressive superstition. and outburst of pent-up spirits are recognisable in the literature of the Reformation and of the English Restoration. The same exhilarant aspect of the vanishing of the outworn moves us in a quieter way when we ridicule the survivals of customs and rites which have lost their significance. This form of hilarious enjoyment, which im- plies a piercing through of appearances and a searching into meanings, will be more fully considered later on. It seems to follow from what has been said that laughter 1 Wright, op. cit., chap. xix. ' Sellar, Roman Poets, p. 167. MIRTH AS INFLUENCING CHANGE manner upon changes of social habit. resists the wildness of the craving for the reacts in a double First of all, it new (neomania). comer, As schoolboys are wont to treat a new- applies its lash vigorously to a proposed innovation, it in order to see what " stuff" In justify its existence. the 28? movement of change. it is made way this On of, and whether it can moderates the pace of it the other hand, the process of throwing off an outworn habit It thus so to speak, the coup de grace. it completes by giving it, combines the service rendered to a herd of sheep on the march by the shepherd who walks in front, with that rendered by the sheep-dog which runs back again and again to the laggards. It seems to be enforcing Goethe's maxim : " Oline Hast Aber ohne Bast." We may now glance at some of the workings of this complex movement of social sets, social progress and on their reciprocal on the formation of attitudes. is evident that, by introducing much more subdivision employment and exclusive knowledge of experts, progress will tend to widen the area of mutual quizzing and chaffing, already dealt with. It is of more importance to point out that the advance of a community in knowledge and culture It of will lead to the formation of differences of rank. division shows new groups The importance itself in classic comedy. the lively contempt of the urban inferior,! town life Juvenal expresses citizen for his provincial and our own comedy of the Restoration, taking as its standard, pours ridicule on the country It is illustrated also in the relation of the clergy gentry.^ p. 52. 1 Tyrrell, op. ' Ward, Engl. Dram. made fun involving certain of this kind of group- of cit., the " oit Poets, ii., pp. 398-9. " as the inferior of the The Restoration comedy alsa West-end gentleman. LAUGHTER 284 as the learned class, SOCIAL EVOLUTION IN to the ignorant laity. As the contes amusingly suggest, a large part of the authority of the Dark Ages rested on this intellectual we view culture widely we may speak of clergy during the superiority. an If number indefinite tellectual dignity. of levels composing a scale of in- These levels are commonly supposed to man coincide with such groups as the professional class, the of business (Kaufman), and the lower coincidence can be assumed a common class A possession. —which is large class. But no such education has become portion of our "upper" determined no longer by descent but to a considerable extent well-informed. when once A by wealth — is neither cultured nor even clerk will often be found to have more general knowledge and literary taste than his well-dressed employer, and a working man, in spite of the limitations may know more about such subjects as philosophy and history than the great majority of the middle of poverty, class. We see then that the strata representing gradations of culture are largely independent of commonly recognised These older distinctions may, indeed, be very divisions. much toned down by line of division the culture-movement. The ancient between the superior man and his inferior spouse has been half effaced by the admission of women into The culture divisions are real social groups, each being bound together by a large community of ideas, tastes and interests and their importance the higher culture circle. ; in the system of social grouping tends to increase. The development important change in the standards of laughter is, new and of culture groups introduces a so to speak, tied. When to fitness, superiority which lacking is in a clearly recognisable basis of reason, its ridicule of inferiors can only and often is, have of the its most source in a pride which foolish. When, however, may it be, resides PROGRESS AND GROUP-FORMATION more in the possession of greater spiritual wealth, ideas and a more acute sense shows a ing, As and more penetrating. that, though it is felt refined of the fitting, the laughter itself It is less boisterous, finer quality. 285 such, to be irritating, more discern- we need not wonder it is The nouveau riohe, whose vulgarity reveals not understood. itself as appears in a society having refined manners, soon as he may wince under the half-repressed smile, though he seems for the most part by an well protected much As Schopen- insensitive tegument. hauer has observed, the man of mediocre intelligence dislikes encountering his intellectual superior ; very and it merry onlookers, perhaps, so happens, for the gratification of that social ambition not infrequently precipitates into a sharp encounter with those who have its possessor a whole world which he knows nothing. of ideas of Not but that may now and again The possession of ideas the inferior here, too, have his chance of laughing back. and of an exacting taste is apt to appear affected to one wanting in them. Midas, accustomed to measure values by incomes, and to identify intelligence with the cleverness of the money-maker, not unnaturally regards a habit of appeal- ing to ideas as an eccentric superfluity ; and so laughter may come consolingly to him who is utterly beaten in the The " common-sense " of the average encounter of wits. Briton scores tion against many sphere of practical A a loud laugh in is confident self-asserof ideas into the affairs. further effect of the formation its any proposed introduction movement seen in the divisions into of culture on groupsects, a phenomenon which seems to be conspicuous in the communities built by our race. This tendency to a minute subdivision of religious, political of relation. up We and other bodies introduces a new kind cannot weU say that one section surpasses LAUGHTER 286 its rivals This in intelligence. but the rules of the question open. On SOCIAL EVOLUTION IN new game social may not or be the number of particular creeds or shade of opinion being often fine, leads to a The bifurcation of "higher" and "lower" groups. mass or majority which naturally Yet tiny minorities as faddists and cranks. "higher" here laughs at case, require us to leave the the other hand, this differentiation of organised opinion into a " views," the may is the again, the fine impartiality of the god of laughter, to whom, since mankind for the greater part wise, the difference of the many and is the few count, occasionally gives the despised minority for minorities do sometimes represent ideas other than may its hardly chance which are born for sovereignty. While the progress of a nation in ideas and institutions thus serves in a manner to multiply groups, and so to introduce and new opportunities for the indulgence of group attack retaliation, it tends barriers. It does this on the whole to break down their by means of the pulpit, the press, and the educational agencies which help to circulate new These conduce, both directly ideas through all classes. and indirectly, to a certain assimilation of groups and ; assimilative action have is seen, it leaves going on rapidly to-day. ample room for culture, since natural differences of coarseness in the intellectual fibre will trast of the cultured The spread we grades of and fineness always secure the broad con- and the uncultured. of knowledge indirectly acts Yet, as different and culture through all classes by throwing open on group-distinctions the occupations of one class to members of others, and more The workman's son who particularly of " lower " ones. has a brain and cultivates his way to the university it may, as we are often told, find and take his place unchallenged FUNNY ASPECT OP GROUP-CHANGING among the lawyers, the doctors, or the exalted " 287 dons themselves. Now all sudden changes in class, especially elevation, are apt to appear laughable. motion comes by royal favour, we such as involve Even when feel the leap into a pro- higher sphere to be anomalous, and are wont to examine the grounds of the new title with some care. The conservative men oppose themselves laughingly to the appearance of new dignitaries very much as they oppose themselves to the appearance of new ideas, and some teminstincts of porary unfitness in the person for his new social niche to be expected. In the comedy of the Restoration, we are no measure mushroom growths " told, creation is is of kept in pouring contempt on the yesterday, the knights of recent ".^ Something of this impression of the incongruously new is produced for a moment even in the case of a well-earned rise in the social scale. The young aspirant's family and connections, living on in the less brilliant light, will perforce laugh, though perhaps with something of sympathetic admiration, at the oddity of the sudden elevation and the young man will be singularly fortunate if he does not now and again betray an amusing unfamiliarity with the ways of the company he has joined. Yet the confusion of ranks due to the universalising of education is small and unimpressive when compared with that arising from another cause. The great destroyer of fixed class-boundaries is the force which tends to transmute a community into a plutocracy. This tendency may, no ; rising doubt, illustrate in a measure the tion ; for efi'ect of a difiused educa- the successful fortune-builder will have attained success by 1 Ward, op. scientific cit., ii., sometimes knowledge pp. 399, 400. skilfully LAUGHTER 288 applied. ties IN Yet the presence SOCIAL EVOLUTION —or the absence — of other quali- than the intellectual seems to have much to do in these days with sudden elevations in the plutocratic scale. As man the comedy of Moliere "wistfully at its higher region it may tell us, the spectacle of a standing at the foot of the social ladder and looking up has something entertaining in both for those on his actual level and for those on the Later, when the wistful glance is by actual climbing, the unrehearsed performances may grow mirth-provoking even to the point of tearful mistiness. Nor does the attainment of the goal make an level of his ambition. followed end of the fun, since the maintenance of a decorous equilibrium at the new altitude may turn out to be even more precarious than the climbing, especially when relatives and other accidents of the humbler state persist in their attachment. On the other hand, these climbings exhibit much in the way of amusing imposture for men, as Schopenhauer tells us, have been known to push their way, unqualified and ; impious, even into literary flected distinction by circles, and snatch a kind of re- the use of arts at once ancient and vulgar. The spectacle of changing one's class exhibits the aspect of fraud in another way. amusing up in the climbing money- When society " leaders high pay homage to the deity of maker by betaking themselves to trade under assumed " names, the mirth of Midas and of his whole despised caste may find its opportune vent. We may now briefly indicate the general effect of the (a) upon the quality and the moods of a people, To begin with, the advance and wider spread of the wave of culture will clearly tend to effect a general raising social mode movements just sketched of distribution of the hilarious IMPROVEMENT OP LAUGHTER and of the standard of taste, by the development educative influence, is and the extension of its main the direct outcome of of art in the and intellectual progress an appreciation of This result, though effected in the quality of the ludicrous. part to develop 289 of that increase in refinement of this progress. One may by saying that the standard of ideas tends gradually to gain ground, hemming in if not narrowing that of custom. The primal laugh, void of intellectual content, becomes less general, the laugh of the mind more feeling which seems to depend on describe this change frequent. This in the case of effect of members an introduction of ideas holds good of all classes in so far as they enter way particular into the higher culture group. In this standards of locality and of social group begin to count less in our laughter. This expansion of the intellectual view effect of more flected in all the is re- Any refined varieties of comic art. manifest insistance on dignity of rank, more especially when the group not of imposing aspect, whether the is petite noblesse in a small " Residency " town on the Con- tinent or the families which compose " Society " obscure town in England, the ludicrous. On is felt to in an be on the verge of the other hand, a magnifying of the dignity of a person or a class by those below, when accompanied by a cringing demeanour, is apt to take on the amusing aspect of flunkeyism, the due appreciation of which presupposes a certain maturity of the laughter of the mind. The general tendency very imperfectly of this advance of ideas realised. military marches, is The march is it is some not quite so uniformly triumphant wont to be represented. A considerable part laughter among what are called the educated classes as as yet of mind, like of the is still LAUGHTER 290 but little influenced SOCIAL EVOLUTION IN by the finer and deeper perception of ludicrous quality; while, as for the uneducated majority of all social grades, any it would be hard to find in their mirth from the advance of the distinct traces of a deposit One might venture on the supposition appreciation of the ludicrous shown to-day by culture-stream. that the the frequenters of a is, both as to its " high class intellectual refinement of feeling, but '' Music Hall in London penetration and as to its anything, above that of little, if a mediaeval crowd which gathered to see and hear the jokes of the So slow a process jonglev/r. is the infiltra- tion of refining influence from the higher strata of culture downwards. (6) This change in the quality of social laughter through an infusion of ideas has undoubtedly been accompanied by a change in its quantity, as seen in a decline of the older, voluminous merriment of the people. collective outburst, already touched on, all students of the past, is This fall in largely due to a toning down the simpler and heartier utterances of the common This change is the and recognised by of people. so important as to call for a short investi- gation. In simpler types of society, the more hearty and voluminous laughter probably came from the lowest strata. It is enough to recall the mirth of the Egyptian and the Roman slave. Later on, the large scope for indulgence in laughter was supplied by an organisation of mirth in the shape of shows and other popular entertainments. was possibly the germ of There such an organisation in the annual celebration "in honour of the most jocund god of laughter " referred to by Apuleius.^ One may merry-makings at the harvest and vintage » The Oolden Ass, Bk. III., oh. 55. instance the festivals out of DECLINE OF POPULAR MIRTH which Greek comedy took its rise, and of the multitude at fairs 291 and the rollicking fun during the Middle festivals That the people were the true experts in the Ages. of laughter is further suggested hy secrets the fact that slaves, both Greek and Roman, were selected as jesters and wits by The well-to-do people. bably from the same courts kept by Orientals were pro- The later " fools " of were drawn from the simple The can be fools class.^ European folk. characteristics of this early type of popular summed up in the word The childishness. other oppressed worker could without efi'ort mirth slave or throw ofl and chastisement in his play hour. Towards master and his treatment of him, his attitude seems to ideas of toil his have been on the whole the resignation of a He life-long habit. might, not improbably, enjoy a quiet joke at the expense of his overseer, but he seems to have entertained towards him none of the deeper animosity. way to a less people " began to include This naive form of popular laughter gave when goodly number childish type " the a of common free-men who were able to form opinions of their own, and bold enough to assert the right of expressing these. It follows from what has been said above that the newly gained freedom would naturally give rise to some laughter-bringing criticism mood of authorities. crowd was by the authorities who waged war using the weapons of a repressive censor- This tendency of the mirthful of the instantly perceived against ship. it, We have an example of this censorship in the police regulations which hampered the introduction of from Athens into Rome. It was required by the comedy authorities that the scene of the play should always be laid outside Rome as if to 1 guard against a direct attack on Roman Doran, History of Court Fools, pp. 18, 37, 75. in- LAUGHTER 292 stitutions and A like persons.^ a free and quite SOCIAL EVOLUTION IN hostility to the pranks of unfastidious mirth was shown by the may This mediaeval church. well have been in part the outcome of honest moral reprobation of the scurriKties of the songs, the contes and the Yet rest. it looks as the if prohibitory enactments originated for the most part in the alarm of the mind It was the laughter its force. ecclesiastics for the security of their hold however, an easy matter to silence popular not, when this had once heard itself and recognised Aristophanes and his laughing public were, for a time at least, stronger than the ridiculed. on of the people. No doubt the civil demagogue and the whom ecclesiastical they power have again and again succeeded in half-stifling for a time Yet the complete the ruder sort of laughter. of it the Middle Ages, we are rise suffocation communities has proved to be impossible. in free now and told, In the atmosphere of fun would men again to a kindling heat, so that holy themselves would join in the not too decent songs.^ modern history of Political Satire force of popular laughter. abundantly The illustrates the Thus, in the Stuart period, satires were produced which were a popular protest against the grievance of monopolies.' ground is illustrated by they have failed to oust to turn has it now 'Tyrrell, comedy to their own How firmly it maintained the fact that the politicians, it its when from the stage, have endeavoured ends.* If the been driven from the stage, more scurrilous sort political caricature The scurrility of the early Greek p. 43 ff. being diaoountenanioed by Pisistratue. As Prof. P. Latin Poetry, led to its Gardner reraarks, " Tyrantshave no sense (Qreeh Antiquities, of humour, and dread ridicule " p. 666). Ward, Engl. Dram. Poets, ii., pp. 392-3. Wright, op. cit, p. 44 ft. CoUey Gibber's satire " Non-Juror " is said to have brought him a pension and the office of Poet Laureate (Wright, op. cit., chap. xxii.). 2 * •* ATTEMPTS TO REPRESS LAUGHTER flourishes vigorously 293 and has dared to attack royalty itself within a measurable period.^ The people has undoubtedly been the upholder of the Taking the peasantry, the wholesome custom of mirth. workmen, and the lower middle " class as representing the people " of to-day, one has to confess that its merry note seems to have been The lost. reservoir which in the past supplied the stream of national gaiety has certainly fallen and threatens even to dry up. But of this more by-and- by. (c) have As a last effect underlying the composite attitude. we needing to be emphasised here, laughter of By this I a people a curiously mean an agglomeration mental tendencies involving different maniires de different standards of the fit voir, of and and, consequently, of the laugh- able. In the preceding chapter we saw how the choral laughter of the savage followed the directions of the self-conservative tendencies of his tribe. mood the mirthful through all This unconscious self-adaptation of to the ends of the tribal life has persisted the changes introduced by the play of fashion and by the movements of social evolution. We of to-day who travel so much more than our ancestors in foreign lands, and may even learn to speak their languages, retain the tendency to English. resist the importation of In certain seasons, say the blood and foreigners is what strikes us as un- when the war-temper heats feeling for what criticise, this national grows distinct and vivid, and reflects itself un- mistakably in the manifestations of such mirth as seems to be compatible with the mood of the hour. This point of view of the tribe has always coexisted with ' George III. was caricatured again and again by Gillray (Wright, op. cit., dhap. xxvii.). LAUGHTER 294 SOCIAL EVOLUTION IN the narrower and more relative one of the group, illustrated above, though Has in ordinary circumstances been less it prominent in men's mirthful utterances. laughter at the priest, one may conjecture, The medieval was now and again directed from the national or patriotic point of view, him the servant as the people began to discern in of a foreign power. it Not only so, deems the " we may which of a people's laughter at —the laughter of what " — the point of view of the tribe or society call it is still much but in absurd it is " common-sense," as and this holds good of the larger community in the van of the march of When we smile at what appears to us a faradopted : part, at least, of a civilisation. fetched view, or a quaint habit of by the standard, " life, we are really guided what people round about us say and do and expect us to say and do". This contented reference to a vaguely formulated custom, without any scrutiny of its inherent reasonableness, holds good, indeed, of the judgments passed by ordinary men on the laughable aspects of the immoral. Promptness in paying one's debts, for example, will for most men wear a reasonable or a foolish aspect according to the custom of their tribe class-standards laugh may make themselves —though distinctly felt ; here two and so the be turned, as the custom changes, from him whose tardiness in discharging means otherwise liabilities carefully concealed, to an ungentlemanly haste in matters suggests straitened him who displays of a contemptible smallness. It seems to follow that the adjustments of laughter to more universal norms, things, are a kind of to ideas artificial instinctive tendencies. enjoys the spectacle of an inherent fitness in addition to deeper and more The ordinary man, even when he some laughable folly or vice. of STANDARD OF POPULAR LAUGHTER 295 hardly transcends the point of view of custom, from which what men do all seen to be right. is made apparent a higher culture has It is only when the universality of the laughable, as of its resort to ideas becomes frequent. This clarifjdng of our infusion of ideas in a special manner, the by the laughter work opposite the reasonable, that a conscious is, of experts, namely, the moralist, the literary critic, and, most of domain the artist whose business all, it is to illumine the This function of art will form of the ludicrous. the subject of a later chapter. In this chapter we have dealt merely with what I have called choral laughter, that of There is, individual when company alone, or in the This also has friends. groups, smaller or larger. however, another kind, the private laughter of the social evolution just its touched upon. Such independent laughter would, possible in the of sympathetic pre-conditions in the processes of it is evident, be im- In the lowest stages of this evolution. savage or quasi-savage state an oddly constituted of a tribe — if seized with a such a being were possible spasm of — liable to be ridicule at the absurdities of tribal ceremonies would certainly encounter serious risks. needed ages of member It has social progress to establish the conditions of a safe individual liberty in the indulgence of the jocose temper. This freedom in choosing one's own modes a part of has gradually asserted itself as by individual Perhaps, indeed, liberty. as the highest phase This is and completion of not the place for a full it all of laughter that may we mean be regarded this liberty. inquiry into the complex conditions on which the development of a freer individual laughter depends. It may be enough to point to the need LAUGHTER 296 of IN SOCIAL EVOLUTION an advance in ideas and the least, to implies. among form individual judgments, which A man who would laugh begin by developing his A capability, fuller own his the few at this advance own laugh must perceptions and ideas. understanding of the pre-conditions of an inde- pendent laughter will only be possible to one who has carefully examined its characteristics. In the following chapter I propose to analyse that variety of the laughing temper which seems in a peculiar the developed individual. way to be an attribute of This attribute is what designated in these days by the term humour. is specially 297 CHAPTER X. LAUGHTER OP THE INDIVIDUAL HUMOUR. : In the preceding chapter we have seen how the advance of civiUsation has tended to laughter. still take an aifronb too seriously. he has the louder choral voice of Yet man's best friend known how not of the sort to is Driven out from the crowd, to disguise himself and to steal back and there a human and perfectly safe enjoyThis new endowment, this last into the haunts of men, touching here spirit and moving ment of things laughable. it to a quieter inspiration of the mortal by the god, is what we mean by Humour. —and seems to —would be harder to define Perhaps hardly a word in the language be exclusively an English word with scientific precision than this familiar one. used with the greatest degree of looseness, as it It is when a often man endowed with humour because he laughs readily.^ Yet any one who takes pains in using words knows how far this is from being accurate. A chronic garrulity of laughis what Mr. Meredith calls the " hypergelast," marked contrast to what careful speech As its etymology might teach us, indicates by " humour ". the term connotes, not so much the common endowment of ter, typified in stands, indeed, in ' This has no doubt arisen in part from the fact that no other single English word expresses directly and clearly the subjective feeling or disposition which lies behind laughter. 298 LAUGHTER OF THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR as a "risibility," certain plexion of sentiment, organisation. We kind of temperament, a commore, nay, a mode of psychical cannot, therefore, think of the race as humorous, and should even find difficult to generalise it endowment so far as to speak of humorists as a class. The humorous man or woman is so, primarily and essentially, by the unpurchasable possession of an individual the mind. This fact of a quite peculiar mixture of elements in the humorous person dooms must never be this person to a expression a feeling which of The idea among humorous persons communicative. who if lost sight of. It comparative solitude in the vocal primarily social is and of a large unison of utterance not entertainable. is A man has developed his humorous bent will be thankful he finds in his stand, and, social circle now and who one or two can under- again, join in his quiet chuckle. Yet, though essentially in every individual case a unique blend of elements, humour has certain What when we sort of agree to call Shakespeare, Cervantes, Goldsmith, Lamb, Dickens, and George Sterne, One thing we can say far more Again, old brutal its It and Its laughter is not only quieter but farthest person : it is utterance tones. It charged with a deeper in difi'ers and contemptuous shout. and almost tender is is tone from the It voices itself in the in it nothing of the low laughter altogether removed from the standpoint there ? wanting diffused laughter. has a slower movement, and meaning. is reflex gaiety of the child removed from the swift the unthinking adult. Eliot humorists confidently, that it in certain characteristics of the is common characteristics. temperament and mind are we thinking of of the interested crowing over the van- quished, hardly anything of a consciousness of the superior- CHARACTERISTICS OF HUMOUR ity to may which the uplifting of laughter at the make valid claim. Hence, one may hesitate name humorist to a writer in whose laughter commonly spoken of as humour a note of tempt begins to grow prominent. 299 moment to apply the —though — it is derisive con- These contrasts point clearly enough to certain positive moods of humour. A quiet survey of characteristics of the things, at once playful and reflective amusing shows which seems in its ; mode a of greeting moderation to be both an indulgence in the sense of fun and an expiation for the rudeness of such indulgence ment of the spirits something an outward, expansive move- met and retarded by a like kiiidly thoughtfulness themselves as some of At ; first it its dominant ; cross-current of these clearly reveal traits. seems impossible to view this subtle and com- plex mental attitude as a development of the naive and Yet a rather coarse merriment of earlier times. slight examination of the choicest examples of what the discerning call humour would suffice to show that it finds its pasturage very much where the Greek or the mediaeval populace found fall it. Topsy-turvyness, especially of things from a height of all kinds ; human tive dimensions ; oddities ; when it involves the stumbling and awkwardness when they grow all self-inflation to provoca- with a view to force a reluctant notice; the manifold masqueradings of mortals; the unfitnesses of things to the demands of circumstances extravagances, perversities, and the multitudinous men ; these which cachinnation move move follies of man to his unconsidered humorous man to his slower and the rough also the sotto voce note. As our great woman humorist has genealogy derful and may it : " Strange as the seem, the original parentage of that won- delicious mixture of fun, fancy, philosophy and LAUGHTER OP THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 300 modem which constitutes feeling, humour, was probably the cruel mockery of a savage at suffering enemy —such is ! the better and more beautiful " ^ In asserting that gentle humour has such an uncouth ancestry, imply that we must its descent from not be supposed to genesis has been a sudden or a simple its As has been process. complex. writhings of a the the tendency of things towards suggested, the sentiment is highly It presupposes in its possessor the presence of a particular assemblage of qualities which may be expected to be rare; and a study of the development both of the individual and of the race qualities is, tells us that this grouping of of all the products of nature's laboratory, one of the most delicate, one exacting from her a very special effort of preparation. Although humour its most apparent, development correctly described as a sentiment, is not most important condition, if of intelligence. It is plainly is a an example of what Mr. Meredith calls " the laughter of the mind," an expression which makes the large presupposition that we have Yet It thrives best at the level of ideas. this mind. the element of intellect which imply subtlety of mind, is vital still less to humour does not the presence of ideas remote from the plane of ordinary men's understanding. What is observes needed — it sufficient life is may a mind given to musing on what be that of a shrewd housewife it — having a and independence of movement to rise above the dull mechanical acceptance of things, to pierce these with the ray of a fresh criticism. The distinguishing contemplation is _ intellectual element in humorous a larger development of that power grasping things together, and in their relations, which 1 George Eliot, Essays, pp. 82, 83. is of at INTELLECTUAL BASE OP HUMOUR 301 More the root of all the higher perceptions of the laughable. particularly, it is a mental habit of projecting things against viewing them in their complete their backgrounds, of tings —80 far as which, as set- this involves those relations of contrariety we have allowed, are of the essence of the This compre- ludicrous, in the stricter sense of the term. hension of the setting is dependent on a process of imaginative reflection ; for the background which humour requires is not the same as the visible background, but has, to a considerable extent, to be reinstated, or rather to be constructed This introduction into humour of something in the nature of a thinking process or reflection has this curious conse- quence, that it does not merely play about the realm of the and simpler laughter serious, as the earlier prehends, assimilates, and becomes toned by something does, but com- down into half-play of the weightier import of things, of their value and their bearing on our welfare. This is the paradox, the secret of the humour-loving soul, irritating at once to the merely serious person and to the light-hearted In order to understand how this is eflfected, we trifler. shall, as will be seen presently, need to look at other elements besides the intellectual. Yet we shall do well to note the fact that the possibility of this meeting of the playful and the serious in the mood of humour has its intellectual condition in an enlarged mental grasp of things. Our man analysis of the objects which entice the laugh from has suggested that the risible aspect nearly always The kind of physical defect amusing may also be wrong aesthetically or coexists with other aspects. which is hygienicaUy, and so on of the rest. And though writers from Aristotlp to Bain have been careful to point out that the laughable defect or degradation must in its magnitude be below the threshold of the painfully ugly, the blame- LAUGHTER OF THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 302 worthy and so forth, it is perfectly clear that given a quick and comprehensive perception, and a turn for musing on what is perceived, the serious tendency in that us will come into the margin of the which amuses field of vision. who have developed In this way, in the case of those the requisite combining organ, a kind of binocular mental vision has become possible. sentation of Don We enjoy pensively the pre- Quixote, of Uncle Toby, and the other great humorous characters, just because in which, while giving ourselves we up to we mood are in a an amusing spectacle, nevertheless embrace in our reflective survey, and are affected by, A full would something of its deeper meaning. account of the humorous way of regarding things trace out all the subtle interpenetrations of merry merry fancy modes of com- fooling and serious inspection, of a light and A and a sober reason. hint, only, on their bination, can be given here. A finer appreciation of contrasts, ally, will often and of relations gener- A palpable instance of the laughable. on the falls down is observer fall also, by a serve to enrich the impression given floor with sonorous efl'ect : small child the sudden flopping fraught with entertainment for who can plump The men. all contemplate thoughtfully, enjoys the but more quietly and with a larger process of mental assimilation. His mind discerns in the trivial incident such things, perhaps, as the compact sturdiness of nature re-establishing itself by vigorous duly efibrts announced by grunts, and the harmlessness of when falls bones and joints are young, as compared with those of the old, of him. which in many respects the child's fall It is a train of ideas of this kind, consciously pursued, which gives to the of its value for the humorous observer. may remind though only thumping fall half- much EXTENSION OF FIELD OF LAUGHABLE 303 Again, the development of the intelligence to a large and varied activity will, lations, by quickening the faculty of open up new and spacious quiet contemplation. for the fields for To one bringing seizing re- the humorist's a mental eye focussed amusing juxtaposition, and a temper disposed on what he itself in sees, common how much sights, to may of the entertaining muse reveal such as that of a thin wheezy man joining in shouts of a full-blooded Jingo crowd, or that of a woman, whose head has just been pommelled by her rightful lord, turning upon and "slanging " the bystander who has foolishly tried to rights.^ The curb an excessive assertion of marital man possession of ideas, again, will help a at once sympathetically to realise and to transcend limited points of view when they come into collision, How gather much ruminating amusement. and so to large a scope, for example, for such quiet entertainment opens rejoinder of Mrs. Flynn, an Irish lady up in the who had been brought before a magistrate for assaulting her husband, and com- miserated by that compassionate functionary on her sad plight with one eye closed and the head bandaged " Och, : yer worship, just wait till yez see Flynn ". of the real proportions of a zest for battle The recognition and a taste for compassion in the stalwart Irish dame, unsuspected by kindly magistrates, at once gives us the point of view for a half -serious, half-amusing contemplation of / human ks, these illustrations suggest, the point of humorous observer is not a ness, the sense of liberation will come by applying a fixed one. of the Sometimes the fresh- from the stupidly commonplace, rational idea to things which are not accustomed to the treatment. intelligence relations. view At other times, when the happens to be more sprightly, the new point of 1 The opening scene of Le Midecin malgri lui shows that Moli^re had observed this quaint form of wifely loyalty. LAUGHTER OF THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 304 view reached by a flight of fancy which loves to perch on some outlook far from that of a rational criticism. is itself The humorous mind sort of delights in the play of inverting ordinary arrangements, say, of making and son, exchange places, or, as in man and beast, father Lewis Carroll's delightful instance of an ideal experiment, of putting the sane people in asylums and allowing the lunatics to go at It follows that humorous contemplation large.^ will have many In some instances, the proportion shades of seriousness. of the rational element leads us to speak of laughing, — " ridentem verum dieere " ; it as wisdom in others, in which the predominance of a capricious fancy brings the expreswit, to describe it rather sion near that of sportive laughter sobered by a word said that in every state of wisdom. whu^e mind on a may The humorous it as may be which we describe as one of humor- ous enjoyment the rational element alliance, puts Yet itself, affected by its half- festive attire, so that after all the be said to join in the play.^ state is, however, much more than a peculiar It cannot be by a mere train of cold perceptions and ideas. It means that the whole consciousness is for the time modified by the taking on of a new attitude or mood. The play of young fancy about the grave elderly form of reason^ which is half- coaxed to play too, comes from this new tone modification of the processes of intelligence. constituted of the whole mind. This mental tone involves a peculiar modification of the conative processes. All laughing scrutiny of things, as a play-attitude, is a sort of relaxation of the set concentration Sylvie and Bruno, Part II., p. 132. Hence Addiaon'B remark {Spectator, No. 38) that humour should always be under the oheck of reason seems, In what one is tempted to call a char' ' acteristic way, to miss the mark. HUMOUR ANALYSIS OF Whenever we of a conative purpose. 305 laugh, we with a child at the jocosities of a clown, be only if it are freed from the constraining force of the practical and even of the which commonly hold and confine our theoretical interests minds when we observe In such moments closely. abandon ourselves to the tickling play of the object perceptions and ideational tendencies. In humour this abandonment takes on a shade is less complete, that of a is even when ally reflective that, self- of seriousness, not because the relaxation of bhe conative effort because the self-abandonment we on our is it mind at play, but so habitu- it does not wholly lose sight of the serious import of the thoughts which minister to its entertainment ; because cognises the worth of the standard ideas, allusion to of which it is it dimly by the re- lightest able to indulge in a playful criticism what is presented. The deeper secret of the mood of humour, however, lies in a pecuHar modification of the feeling-tone of conscious- In ness. this, it is once at evident, with a special example of complexity. with something akin to sadness tones ; of tones, too, we have to do The laughter tinged a mixture of feeling- is which seem directly opposed and likely to be mutually repugnant. The gaiety of laughter begins to be complicated with an undertone by the half-intrusion into consciousness of To be aware, however the serious import of things. world has distinctly, that the its the child's note of pure mirth, serious side, is is in- to lose to have a touch of sadness added to our laughter. The more serious complication comes, however, the regrettable side of the laughable object makes felt. The nothing in effect of this common with when itself on the humorous person has that of the exhibition of folly on 20 306 LAUGHTER OF THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR the contemptuous person. feeling of one who It is the very opposite to the rejoices in another's discomfiture as such. It is a sense of the implicated " pity of it pletely humane humorous is ". A person com- essentially sympathetic, skilled in the art of transporting himself to others' standpoints, and words in the warnLlight thrown by the human affections By some, indeed, sympathy is regarded as the great distinguishing characteristic of comprehending men's doings of humour.i But it seems well to add that it is the infusion amount of the sympathetic into our blithe things which carries us far in the path of humorous of a proportionate survey^ of appreciation. of fun to A sympathy of a step too quick for the sense keep abreast in friendly comradeship Flaubert says happened in his case in later life,^ will, as make an end of laughter. from It is but a step ness of this recognition of the regrettable- what amuses us turn, tones down to a discernment of what, in its the sadness of regret, of the fine threads which attach the laughable worth. Humour, defect to elements of real of the richer kinds at least, certainly includes something of consideration, of a detection, in the laughable quality or is its attachments, of suggestions of what estimable and lovable. The disposition to think well of what amuses us may come in the first instance from an impulse of gratitude. So ready are we in general to acknowledge another's entertainment of us that, even is known to when the pleasure bestowed have been given quite unwittingly, we cannot quite check the impulse to tender thanks. ' See, for example, Hoffding, Outlines of Psychology, pp. 294, 295. ^ Quoted by Dugas, op. ciL, p. 98. Flaubert here indicates, perhaps, one great limiting condition of the growth of the composite sentiment of humour. HUMOUR AS FEELING 307 Again, that which amuses us will often, fully considered, show estimable. It really itself to is when thought- be bound up with what is exaggerations of good qualities which are so amusing, especially when through sheer obstinacy they tend to become the whole man, and to Comedy provoke while they entertain. in will sometimes the figure of Moli^re's Alceste, for example — exhibit to us this clinging of the laughable to the skirts of excellence. But it mood only to the more reflective is humour, to which comedy, as we of shall see, does not appeal, that this coexistence of the quality and its defects, fully discloses itself. Sometimes, too, even though we fail to discern its partial redemption through an organic connection with a worthy a laughable defect trait, may take on the appearance of a condonable and almost lovable blemish of character. it is Thus with the small imperfections seen in men recognised to be substantially good, imperfections nearer to us and so too, is it make them which bring them comprehensible. Thus, with the ignorances and simplicities of children, which, even while they bring the smile, disclose their worth as pure expressions of child-nature. By speaking of a sentiment of humour we imply that the kindly feeling somehow combines with the gaiety of laughter in a new type of emotional consciousness. This com- bination, again, seems to involve a simultaneous presence in two elements, and not merely a rapid two phases of feeling. It is this simultaneous rise and partial fusion of a gay and a sad tone of feeling which differentiates humour proper from the feeling of ages to which the proximity of the laughable and the pathetic in consciousness of the alternation of things was familiar enough, as from Pope's lines on Addison : we may see, for example, LAUGHTER OP THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 308 Who but must laugh if such a man there be ? Who would not weep, if Attious were he ? Again, as a harmonious blending of elements the sentiment humour of contrasts with that mere mixture of pleasurable and painful ingredients which Plato thought he detected all in laughter.! The psychology state, One of the emotions and we know very little is backward in a still about the laws of their fusion.* two points may, however, be touched on. must be remembered that two feelings simultaneously excited may clash and refuse to combine in a peaceful whole. This commonly happens, indeed, when they are or It repugnant in kind, e.g., pride and tenderness, and this repugnance is somehow overcome, emotive processes combine in some that the constituent new current of con- Not that the elements need be wholly sub- sciousness. merged when Emotional fusion means that both are powerfully excited. in the product ; they in a chord, half-disclosed, may remain as tones remain though profoundly modified by Such a state of partial fusion may be our moods of memory, in which delight in the their concomitants. illustrated in recovery of lost experiences The is tempered with regret. conditions of such a peaceful, harmonious confluence The of dissimilar feelings are various. by thered elements; objects, effect may the presence of points of aflBnity whence such the as love sentiments be fur- among which dignify the their and admiration, readily combine. This holds good to some extent of the constituents of humour, since amusement and something gard for him who amuses ^PMlebus, Jowett's translation, 'One us are plainly iv., p. 94 like tender re- allied. Yet this ft. the best recent discussions of this subject will be found in the work of A. Lehmann, already referred to see pp. 247-261 and 259. of ; FUSION OF FEELINGTONES 309 consideration does not seem to help us in understanding how the two polar moods of hilarity and sadness should be able to combine. We may be helped here by setting out from the fact of a simultaneous appeal to the dissimilar feelings by the same presentation. When this again and again, occiu-s probable that organic modifications may it is be effected by the Nobody simultaneous action of the double stimulus. begins by feeling amused and sorry at the same moment. The boy and the savage may have a moment of mild pity for an ugly piece of deformity ; but this moment comes is over. The co-presentation of the sad and the amusing had, we may be sure, to be repeated during many generations of men before the two currents could join in one smooth flow. Those who find the core of an emotion in a widely difiiised after the laughing may organic process reason that such repetitions of a com- plex emotional stimulation in some way, so may modify the nervous system as to allow of the combination of some parts at least of the bodily resonances characteristic of the For one thing, the emotional constituents. fact, already community of physiological process in the case of laughter and of the expression of grief, may help us, to some extent, to understand the combination.^ Yet mutual inhibition by the two sets of organic alluded to, that there is a certain processes involved seems to be the principal agency in the case. The more energetic movements of laughter are with- out doubt restrained by an admixture of sympathy. Perhaps understood the physics of organic processes, we might if \fre speak here of an " interference," or, at least, of some anta- gonistic action between the motor-impulses of the laugh of the sigh. 1 Of. above, p. 70. and 310 LAUGHTER OF THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR One Where other condition seems to be important. emotions are widely dissimilar and likely to be antagonistic, it is necessary that they should not both be excited in We may succeed a high degree. in getting a blend between a gentle laugh and a mild pity, though certainly not between r a state of mirthful excitement and one of deep compassion. The moods of humour run low keys, laughter and kindly in down sentiment being each toned as for if smoother con- This need of a reduction of the force of consorting fluence. emotions may, too, find explanation in the conditions its which have to be combined. of the organic processes This does not imply, however, that the two feelings which unite in humour As hinted are of equal strength. above, humour seems always, even when an almost poignant sadness pierces it, to maintain itself at the level of a quiet enjoyment. It answers to the mood which has been called the luxury of which the sense of pain has shrunk away to a pity, in scarcely heard over-tone, while the ground-tone of allevi- ating tenderness sounds out clear and This analysis may full. help us to understand dith has called the laughter of Shakespeare why Mr. Mere- and Cervantes "the richer laugh of heart and mind in one".^ help us, too, to interpret some things said by the It may German Kant, for instance, redeems metaphysicians about laughter. the poverty of his general theory by a memorable passage on the amusing aspect of a know how does not case there is to hide the customary spect, as we He behaviour which allows that in this mingled with the laughter poses to arise from of naivetfe of itself. —something reflect —which he sup- an annihilation of the expectation that of earnestness what is and of infinitely better re- than accepted codes of manners (Sitte), namely, purity of natural 1 Op. cit., p. 95. ^ COMPLEXITY OF HUMOUR disposition (Denkungsart), not wholly extinguished in is human nature.^ Our analysis of humour may well-recognised facts. 311 help us to understand some It teaches us that a sentiment, at once complex and implying a mature reflection, must not be looked for in the young ; the prerogative of the years it is which have hoarded experiences and learned to Nor, as implied in what was said above, for in the and youth of the world. That humour is fullest utterance at least times, the period ushered in trio, Rabelais, Cervantes saying that, like music, new —the —in its clearest modern possession of by the appearance and Shakespeare, it fits itself reflect. to be sought is it is of the great explained by into the ways of our spirit. The apprehension complex basis of humour helps of this us, further, to understand somewhat the curious variations of the attitude among races and peoples. There are regions of civilisation where, so far as literary expression gives us the key, laughter seems to remain little at, or at most only a above, the level of the child's simple merriment. appears to be true of certain This portions of the East, where a considerable love of fun coexists with a predominant gravity mind without of Among interpenetration, almost without contact.^ certain races of Southern Europe, too, which have produced a rich literature of amusement, the blending of the serious and the playful, which is of the essence of humour The gaiety of Frenchman who, the seems to be but very imperfectly reached. the mediaeval Conte is the gaiety of Pbr the whole passage, written perhaps with an unconscious reminiscence of the Bousseau period, see the KriUk 0/ Judgment, Dr. Bernard's 1 translation, p. 227. ^ in the East of the comic spirit as expressing itself in the comedy, a point noted by Mr. Meredith, is of course not conclusive The absence art of with respect to the existence of the humorous disposition. LAUGHTER OF THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 312 two in spite of one or keep his literary exceptions, likes to thinking and his mirth distinct, in their original purity Frenchmen, such as M. Taine and M. Scherer, netteti} have fully recognised the fact that what we mean by and humour a is characteristics region, it may product of the triste may germ hypothesis that a vigorous racial in this of be found in the laughter fertilised disposition to brooding melancholy always tends to by a generate something of the nature of we growth Perhaps, the closest not be easy to say. approximation to an explanation What nord. to further its have served shall presently see, utility does humour ; and something for that, as its preser- vation. of the complexity of the sentiment The consideration may throw light, further, on its modifications among the peoples which are correctly spoken of as endowed with These differences are roughly accounted for by saying it. that the proportions of gravity and gaiety, of serious reflection and playful fancy vary indefinitely. different, let us say, They are American, the Scotchman and the Irishman. sideration does not account for humour is many all Yet this con- the dissimilarity. Since playfulness modified by the whole serious temper man, we should expect of a certainly in the case of the Englishman, the it to differentiate itself into shades according to the trend of the ideas, interests, impulses and the rest which distinguishes one sort of mind or character from another. We can only fully understand the contrast between American and English, or between Irish ' and Scotch, humour, when we understand the M. B^dier has a Conies ; touching on its delicate characterisation of this its joyous good sense, and want its just, op, cit., p. 278. French differences. spirit in the depth and arrUre-pens4e, its spice of malice, irony, which though a little coarse is yet precise of HUMOUR AS NATIONAL An amusing of character. to say, is which is TRAIT Irish or Scotch story, one, that produced for home-consumption, seems to be redolent of the whole temperament, acter of the people. How by mind and char- It is this complexity of the sentiment which makes the amiable of other peoples 313 effort to the illustrate humour published selections a pathetic futility. can one expect, for example, the ordinary Englishman to get into touch with that fine product of child's fun, quick fancy, alert sympathy, open-heartedness, and a deep brooding sentiment which meets him in the humour of the Irishman It is ? enough to remember how he laugh his superior laugh at an Irish necessarily an unconscious " is to bull, as if this were may be, in howler," whereas it charming expression of a most amiable reality, a wont trait of character.^ -A due recognition discloses to of the complexity of the sentiment us a point of capital importance : humour, in the sense of a perfect fusion of play and gravity, of the aggressiveness of laughter and kindly consideration, as is, already hinted, pre-eminently an endowment individuals rather than of races. of temperament which, though certain racial characters, is of It presupposes a basis it may be favoured by only realised where nature upon a particular proportion among the elements by the mixing of which she produces an individual and 80 nice an operation is this mixture, that humour, of the full rich quality at least, is perhaps less frequently handed hits ; down from The parent to child than specific forms of talent. old writers treated humour by help of their general 1 This redeeming q^uality of the Irish bull is indistinctly perceived by the Edgeworths in their essay on the subject, in which they speak of the Irishman's habit of Using figurative and witty language. See The Booh of Bulls, by G. E. Neilson (in which the Edgeworths' essay is included). LAUGHTER OF THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 314 theory of temperaments as compounded of certain physical The learned Burton, elements. for instance, in the chapter already quoted, discourses agreeably of pleasant vapours which break from the heart, and thinks that these why explain melancholy the The passage suggested. are witty, valuable as indicating is may Aristotle as that antiquity recognised the connection between laughter and Modern testimony might be the melancholy disposition. Thus added. humour, as Landor Savage well as true wit, remarks genuine that sound a requires mind, which is always a grave one Tennyson notes that hiunour " is generally most capacious ; ^ and and fruitful and most solemn human spirits ". ^ The need of this deep and massive seriousness, if not of a marked tendency to sombre reflection, seems to be borne out by what we know of the great humorists. in the highest Sainte-Beuve regards Rabelais, who was a grave doctor, and who worthily represented in his public lectures at Lyons " the majesty of science," as writing with the quite serious purpose of throwing out in advance certain ideas of deep import {de grand sens) " dans Much the same is true of Cervantes, the assertion has been challenged his delightful un who —to rire immense ". said is —though have conceived of romance in the dreary surroundings of a sponging-house. ^ The germination of a mirthful sense in the soil of a serious character has been noted, indeed, in the case of a fact some who represent the to seriousness spoken of in an ^ Quoted by Meredith, ' See his son's Life, chap. 'The question Kelly. lighter which points to the more general is left op. cit., moods comedy earlier chapter. Thus Sainte- p. 87. vii. (vol. i., p. 167). an open one by his biographer, See Life of Cervantes, of relation of laughter p. 207. J. Fitzmaurice- THE HUMOROUS TEMPERAMENT 315 Beuve, writing of Moli^re, says that he was called contemplative (tristesse) " ; and was wont " the to be taken with sadness and melancholy when he was alone. Victor ^ has somewhere spoken of him as " ce moqueur pensif Hugo comme un apotre ". was remarked It other dealers in the mirthful by Sheridan and of who knew them those that they seldom even smiled. It is easy to see that the transformation of laughter which we find in humour will carry with modification of the range of enjoyment. it a large While, as has been admitted, the changes of feeling and mental attitude involved will tend to restrain the earlier reckless merri- ment, they will also add vast regions to the territory of the amusing. With regard common to restriction, one must protest against the misapprehension, that the development of spoils the taste for simple sad-looking humorists modes of mirth. who were valuable capability of joining in humour humour have known well endowed with the children's undoubtedly restrain does I fun. laughter which smacks of the brute and the bully in On the other hand, the field of objects What any tendency is in man. over which humour wanders bee-like gathering its honey is vastly greater than any region known to the rougher and more brutal merriment. The introduction of a reflective element and of higher points of view expands the horizon to an incalculable extent. This change in point of view means at once that we penetrate below the surface of things, reaching the halfveiled realities, relations. and that we envisage them in a network of The former is illustrated in the humorist's finer contemplation of behaviour as a i-evelation of character. ' Causeries du Lundi, vol. iii., pp. 3, 4. LAUGHTER OP THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 316 An amplitude o£ enjoyment that, secured is even in the case of the way moral weaknesses have a by the circumstance self -vigilant, intellectual of peeping out convenient for a humorous onlooker who which is and most has his mental When, for example, a young by an examiner to explain " congenital eye duly accommodated. asked teacher, pleasant ment : the tendency to be congenial and " It is tendency," wrote, children vary in this characteristic," the entertain- of the error for the reader lay in the naive disclosure of the preoccupation of the writer's Or fortunes of her profession. date from the same a teacher, wrote when another candi- class, in describing the qualifications of He " : mind with the chequered again, with the workings of a should be as intimately acquainted child's mind as the engine-driver is with the engine," the fun of the comparison for the reader came from the detection of an unscientific habit of mind, natural enough in an over-zealous worker, intruding, unobserved, into theoretic reflection. These innocent self -revelations the humorist everywhere meet the watchful eye in the haunts of like hoar frost in the sun men. They of lie on his surroundings, on which he unwittingly casts a reflection of the habits of his mind and of the directions of his taste ; as when in a large town bizarre juxtapositions of the vulgar heroic strike the observer's eye in the names of streets, or of loose engines on a railway. To this finer penetration the vision for relations judgment. What we indeed, always to implied above, milieu it is humorous faculty adds a which distinguishes the higher kind of call the ludicrous in character is, some extent a matter of relations. As the view of some trait set in a particular which brings the entertain because of its smile. The hidden weakness may juxtaposition with something that AMUSING REVELATIONS OF CHARACTER is worthy, or at least has an appearance of worth. closes In a kind of impulsive person, for example, there certain dis- humorous eye an almost admirable to the itself 317 consistency in the recurring inconsistencies ; while, on the other hand, in another sort of character, that eye will rather spy an inconsistency within the limits of a quality, as when a person, on the whole generous, lapses into a kind of niggardliness in certain small particulars of expenditure, show that even a moral as if to quality, firmly planted, In needs the sunlight of intelligence. many cases entertainment in observing character comes, not so the much through a perception of the juxtaposition of something worthy and something unworthy, as through a slightly some discrepancy between the character and assumed at the moment, as when a self-assertive detection of the rdle sense of justice, in " a child of larger growth," reveals itself in the quaint exaggeration of doing No oneself. imperfectly of persons Perhaps masked who it is will be found than that of the manners a certain kind of woman who shows humorous reading life, the of character, as sets herself to decipher the palimpsest of in one educated rather late in earlier justice to are quite above suspicion of serious fault. greatest skill in this when she more than better terrain, indeed, for a chase after the manners detecting traces of the cramped hand below the thin caligraphy of a later culture. To a finer perception of relations, again, must we ascribe the readiness to enjoy the large and variegated presentment of unsuitabilities situations in of men to their circumstances. which the merry god, who seems The to arrange the puppet show, often chooses to place us are pregnant of humour. what nature never intended ironical suggestion to the contemplative eye of The necessity of confronting 318 LAUGHTER OF THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR that we should confront makes us an amusing spectacle to the twinkling eyes above us. is How delightful for example the variety of social juxtaposition which brings embarrass- ment to the encounterers. When it is not accident but a man's foolish impulse, unmindful of limitations of capability, which pushes him into the awkward situation, as when his plunges him into discourse in a foreign language civility with a fellow-traveller, or when the most undecided of attempts to make situation for the men a proposal of marriage, the value of the humorous observer is greatly enhanced. As with the topsy-turvyness of momentary situation, so with more permanent incongruities between character and surroundings. In this case a more special gift of humorous insight is needed for to the many what lasts grows seemingly right by its mere durability. You may make a ; highly unsuitable person a bishop, or the editor of a comic journal, and you will find that, for most onlookers, time will soon begin to invest the position with a sort of suitability. Even an ill-matched connubial pair will take on something of mutual appropriateness through this influence of the customary on human judgments. the humorous onlooker, guided with stripping by But the eye of ideas, entertains itself off the trappings of convention and use. This humorous quizzing of the characters and of the revealed mental processes of those about us has grown, in the ease of a few, into a chief pastime. The development in these days of a keener interest in character, which is modern fiction, has led these few to something like a sustained and methodical survey of their acquaintances and their friends, in which partly reflected in, partly the product of, the quiet laughter of the humorist A may find ample room. part of the temperate mirth in this case springs out of the delightful surprises —the result of the complexity of organic CHARACTER-STUDY AS PASTIME 319 products and of the limitations of our powers of prediction. The appearance of moral metamorphosis when a a comes under the influence of some new the invasion of his social world force, man say a wife, or by a war-craze, may amuse much as the semblance of a physical transformation amuses him. In this habitual contemplation a humorous observer by a humorous person of those he knows, there is, a blending of amusement with kindly interest. indeed, the note of much " of the evidently, That is, psychologising " at which many, instructed by the best fiction, now try their hand. The combination of the playful with the respectful attitude is nowhere more plainly seen than in our new estimates of diversity of character and of individuality. The contem- new experiment of nature human type, will always bring plation of the result of some in the variation of the something of the gaiety which is provoked by the sight of yet our new regard for individuality, as a fresh oddity discriminated from eccentricity, brings down the mirthful utterance to the low tones of humour. There is another way in which the development of the ; humorous faculty enlarges the sphere In of the risible. the simple nature of children and uncultured adults, fun and seriousness tend to dwell apart. serious element into the mood The introduction of amusement, which of a is at the basis of humour, makes a breach in the dividing wall. As a consequence, the humorist, though a profoundly serious person, will show a readiness in the midst of grave occupa- tions to digress for a suggestion. women Good moment talkers at the prick of and some ludicrous letter-writers, including with the quick ear for the bubblings of fun, are thus given to momentary interruptions of serious discourse by side-glances at amusing aspects, and many persons who take themselves to be humorists are apt to be shocked at LAUGHTER OP THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 320 making laughter permeate the sphere succeeds in serious, is is without loosening its of the deep-laid foundation of gravity, one of the best measures of the vitality of his humour. this by humour which has made a good Of this, more anon the present to call attention to a work of of the serious deal of modem may It perfectly respectful invasion of the resolute yet domain it man Yet, in truth, the extent to which a the proceeding. literature possible. suffice for mine dealing with a subject which might well a friend of seem to be dismally serious — logic a itself, work which attempts with conspicuous success, while maintaining the its heaviness by a good number of amusing remarks and illustrations.^ Yet the expansion of the range of enjoyment when mindless mirth gives place to humour is not wholly due to the One chief limitation of absorption of a serious element. the more common kind of laughter arises from the cir- dignity of the science, to relieve cumstance that who it is apt to be disagreeable to the person This dislike, again, object. is its is due, as we have seen, to a natural feeling of resentment at being down and treated as an inferior. taken So long as the laughter retains a distinct vibration of the old note of contempt, must resist it are ready to ; but when withdraw the it objection. having fun poked at our terrible in our petty misfortunes, so long as face is is There drowned in a way is nothing so foibles, or we know hiding behind the laughing mask. gives the assurance in his we grows mellow and kindly we even at that a friendly If a person of laughing that only contempt more genial sentiment, he may laugh at his when they grow old children, aye at his parents, too, even and infirm. Nor is a previous knowledge of friendly dis- position always needed. 1 There are a few whose mellow Logic Deductive mid Inductive, by Carveth Bead. KINDLY LAUGHTER 321 —in laughter will instantly disarm resistance in a stranger the street boy, for example, though and of the young. sensitiveness of the poor From frank acceptance of others' overtures of a this friendly laughter to the practice of a there would seem to be but a step. some degree he has the double If humorous self-criticism, humour always involves of sympathetic self-projection into the object of contemplation, should not be it ous glance upon one's of various kinds, and turn the humor- difficult to own foibles. Self -inspection there are varieties of it is a thing (for example, the performances of the "moi spectateur" in the case of that curious young lady, Marie Bashkirtseff) which are re- moved by the amplitude of the sky from humorous self- quizzing. The last is perhaps the most rarely practised. Before he can accomplish developed a " higher ego it, " a person must not only have capable of criticism in the light of ideas, but have learned to see himself as others cially humorous onlookers difl5cult —see — espe- him, a feat hardly less than that of getting a glimpse of the crown of one's head. That the doings of the lower ego, or rather cluster of egos, are fitted to afford an ample supply of the amusing goes without saying. Human even in the best of detect incongruity nature us, that it is so oddly compounded, only needs the clear vision to and the masking of the real. Thus, it is frequently easy to spy the stealthy advances of rudimentary tendencies which seem hardly to belong to us, and which we more frequently, to light inconsequences which are due to are disposed to disown on a whole crop of little ; still the complexity of our soul's workings, and to the irremovable circumstance that, however predominant some better part of us seems to be for the moment, the suppressed forces turn out to be only half -suppressed. 21 It is well when such LAUGHTER OF THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 322 on without any risk of encountering forms of ugliness and of ill omen, which would make self-scrutiny can be carried speedy end of the amusing exercise. The quiet fun that may be enjoyed by at ourselves is so palpable, that occasional glances hardly seems conceivable it how any true humorist should fail to pluck the tempting Yet when one finds a man who is wholly incapable fruit. of accepting another's playful laughter, inference that he will be found to it seems a fair lacking in the disposition amuse himself with conning own his doings. The re- sentment which a distinguished purveyor of mirthful entertainment will sometimes exhibit at being treated with a humorous freedom, say by a lady interviewer whose overtures have been rejected with needless emphasis, suggests mind may train itself in the detection of the ludicrous the larger show outside, and yet remain blind to all the that a in comic aspects of the microcosm within. Perhaps every humorous contemplator of things has some "blind spot," of the existence of which he retinal blind-spot ; and is just as ignorant as of his if this failure of sensibility chances to render invisible the whole of the humorist's the contraction of the field of vision is own behaviour, certainly a considerable one. We have seen that the earlier forms of have their uses as contributing to the human laughter stability or the im- social group. When, however, we turn to the milder and more complex sentiment of humour we appear to lose these social benefits. As has been implied, the development of the sense of humour in any vigorous and fruitful form is a rarity, so much so as to provement of a society or condemn its possessor in a large measure to a solitary kind of satisfaction. The change may be expected to efi'ect a transformation of the serviceable function of laughter, to USES OF SELF-LAUGHTER make 323 and in the main, a thing wholesome, refreshing it, edifying of character, to the individual himself. It is true, no doubt, that a refined humour is capable of being turned at times to the same social uses as cestor, the elemental laughter of the people. an- its One may the journalism and literature of the hour, foibles, see, in exaggerations and other amusing things dealt with in a humorous or quasi-humorous temper. The gentleness which humour inclines allows, indeed, of attacks on to parties, and personahties which would otherwise run the Yet something of risk of being condemned as " bad form ". a serious practical purpose, namely, to hold up to ridicule, schools can always be detected in this kind of writing: whence it is correctly designated, not as humour, but as " social satire". On the other hand, the moods of humour are admirably fitted for that indirect adaptation of the individual to This which we call self-criticism. humorous self-quizzing may be started by the spectacle yet this, as of comedy, as Lessing and others suggest social conditions ; we shall see later, is not to be counted on. wants promptly to detect the first flecks If man a of dust on the bright surface of character, he must be habitually ready to note this surface. This in office of humour in helping us to nip evil tendencies the bud may be viewed, in part, as the vicarious discharge the critical self of the restraining function of the com- by munity on the individual. None of us can safely wander far and long from the point of wholesome contact with the community, that is to say, with the good sense and the right feeling embodied in a community. the not whose too easy art of seeing ourselves as judgment we should care —see us To master others is —for surely LAUGHTER OF THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 324 eminently is fitting for those who desire to laugh at what objectively laughable. must not be supposed that in such we are always at the social point of view. Humour is the outgrowth of a pronounced individuality its possession seems always to imply that a Nevertheless, private it self- correction ; own person forms his of course by ideas of the value of things, guided the world's teachers, but caring his views agree with those ^ little whether which happen to obtain in his community at the moment. Here, again, in the high service rendered by a vigilant humour, we find the work of reflection carried out by the help of ideas or ideal conceptions, which are in part a product of the individual mind. The laughing rebuke administered to some folly, which lifts its head once more after many repressive blows, comes from the ideal self which, though it must have nourished itself in some " communion of saints," becomes in the end free and self; " legislative. Correction " seems too strong a this prophylactic function not readily lend What ; for, as word to use for we have seen, humour does an instrument to serious purposes. itself as the habit of a quick humorous perception does for subject here a pure is its best described, perhaps, as the fostering of and wholesome atmosphere in the soul, in which disease-germs must perforce die of inanition. We may now turn to those uses of humour, into the con- ception of which the thought of a practical aim can hardly intrude. cheering. Humour as amusement is something agreeable and It has the refreshing laughter and much more ; for, as a properties of primitive mood that reflective contemplation, it is consolatory a feeds itself on and sustaining in way in which mere gaiety, even when it persists as a temper of mind, cannot be. Apropos of Voltaire's saying that heaven had given us two things to counterbalance the many CORRECTION AND REFRESHMENT miseries of have added laughter, able men were Kant remarks " He could the means of exciting it in reason- hope and life, if 325 sleep, : only as easily attainable, and the requisite wit or originality of humour were not some so rare" (as other endowments).^ When the humorous bent will stand its is lively and way, amid the toilings and moilings of "original," it more than one possessor in good stead in life. Seeing that always in a measure a throwing aside of serious laughter is pressure, we should expect to it come to our aid in the work- aday hours. But it is only when the eye for the sparkling of fun in things has been instructed by humorous reflection that the alleviating service of mind-play is fully realised. For one thing, the possession of a large humorous insight will greatly extend the scope of the conciliative function of laughter. All cajoling must be good-natured, or at least conceal the sting of laughter; but the finer disarming of men by banter requires the reflective penetration of the humorist. One may easily see this in the art of conciliating opponents, political and other. The winning force of a manifested good-nature will sometimes act on those who are far from appreciating the play of mind involved. The by an awkward situation,^ the tendencies make for loss of interest, for weariness, for a falling away from a perfect sympathetic touch, in all human re- gSne introduced that lations —these things find their most in occasional intrusions of the here of one no longer among us, with privilege of co-operating in a long public business • ; and of how all effective counteractive humorous and I once difiicult I think had the piece of weariness was kept out of Bernard's translation of The Kritik of Judgment, Good illustrations will be found in the story The Lake of Wine, chap. ii. and chap, xxxii. 2 spirit. whom of p. 226. Mr. Bernard Capes, LAUGHTER OF THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 326 by laughing sight side-glances at threatening absurdities, frequent enough to have suggested a premeditated plan had they not been so delightfully spontaneous. Perhaps, the stoutest obstacle to the smooth flow of social intercourse some men the tendency in is The superior personal importance. much to be as on their to lay stress airs, which seem with de rigueur as their correct attire, are sadly inimical to companionship, whether the would-be companion be a man's wife or a contributor to his journal. The one sure safeguard against the stupid clogging of the social wheels, which this chronic stiffening figure alert introduces, eye would at once note a possible laughableness of One may deportment for onlookers. humour see this function of illustrated in that instinctive readiness of has had a perfect social training to dismiss conversation the first and the of the gift of a lively humour, whose is one who laughingly from appearance of an allusion to himself his claims. In all this, an end, because though there it is may utility is not social be no conscious aiming at wholly wanting. Yet just an individual temper, humour confers chief benefits on its possessor in the privacy of solacings and its refreshings channel of a new and genial life. its Its come to him through the manner of reflecting on his mishaps and his troubles. Most men who have developed any appreciable fund of humour must know how the petty annoyances of life can be laughed away, almost as soon as they are seen advancing. When, for example, your lost pencil in its hiding-place sulted book ; or, discovered on the other hand, after endowing various sorts of mischievous close is between the leaves of a rarely con- by you on the desk, flight, where you perceive it it it with lying has been dutifully LAUGHING AWAY ANNOYANCES complying with its proper law of inertia 327 you may snatch ; a compensating laugh from a moment's reflection on the small ironies of things, or on the vast wastefulness of Your vexation the world in the matter of hypotheses. who at the children are at play in the road in front of your bicycle and refuse to you sympathetically retire way third time, instantly gives till your the point of view shift bell rings a to an agreeable smile as by recalling The now and the fact that they are on their proper playground. dreary ugliness of a London street in winter will again be lit up sunshine for you as with focussed for the amusing, as when if your eye is the driver of a slow van goes on nodding in blissful ignorance, while the driver of your 'bus behind, justly proud of him mercilessly with the most It is much his vehicle's speed, pelts awakening of epithets. the same with the small vexations inflicted by our social world. moment when, We may at a concert, no doubt we hurt just for a feel see a big hat thrust itself betwixt our eyes and a face which has held them captive, wearing a look of the tragic muse as over the violin from which to draw the sobbing we may it it leans yearningly seems, like a mother's face, Yet, even as the nerve smarts, tones. half-seize the glorious absurdity of the hat bobbings. Or, again, bit of nice thinking smile for a when an untimely and leaves the nerves moment as we and interrupts tingling, its some we may catch a glimpse of the simple supreme importance of the cause faith of the visitor in the he pleads, a glimpse call sufficient to like "subjectivity" in our own make us half-aware of a estimation of selected tasks. Social bores are vexations which, perhaps, ought not to be called petty. Humorous persons, one suspects, are specially exposed to their attacks, since they are a tolerant folk, pre- ferring on the whole to suffer rather than to hurt others LAUGHTER OF THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 328 But here, also, the humorous have their remedies. It suffices, moment on the droll pathos of the circumstance that persons, between whom and for example, to reflect for a short ourselves we find no attaching sympathies, should Even when for their importunate attentions. whom we throw us together with men and women from from creatures of a species instinctively recoil, as closely akin to ours yet sundered reflective The aggressive self-assertion of a plutocrat, a " sort and the of stare, moment; but rest, devise alleviations. is any buy- for half a quiet pleasure in looking back discovering the clumsy construction of the vulgar in " with his may wound a laughing solace comes on the heels of worry; for there and at once from us by impassable humour may boundaries, a you-up select us the destinies " and snub ; case a playful half -glance at higher measures of worth restores the equanimity. Even close greater troubles may, to the trained humorist, dis- amusing aspects or accompaniments, so that refreshment reaches us even while the blow smile may come by way still hurts. ourselves as pitted against our mighty stance; for it is possible to find fate, which gives the The readers of Miss of superior, circum- The idea zest of life to hearts, helps, too, to bring the reflective play-mood. relieving something amusing, as well as irritating, in the ironies of destiny. a struggle with The of a playful contemplation mind back of brave to the Kingsley's Travels need not to be reminded of the fecundity of amusing reflection which her humour showed have depressed many which would was with a like readi- in circumstances a man.^ It ness to smile that Goldsmith's genial spirit faced the blows of destiny, giving back, as his biographer has 1 (" See for one The Rapids among many of the it, in cheerful instances Travels in West Africa, chap. Ogowe"). ix. ALLEVIATING SERVICE OP HUMOUR humour or whimsical warning what 329 received in morti- it In his celebrated character, Mark Tapley, fication or grief. Dickens has no doubt illustrated how in the rough waters draw humorous entertainment It is this playful shimmer of a of his youth he learned to from massive troubles. light thrown by an entertaining idea on the surface of a misfortune which rids it of the worst of its gloom. By a line of humorous reflection may in all cases of worry and moral consolatory idea that the trouble has, in the it, been grossly exaggerated. sensitive tissue to dimensions ; is the first view moment when of the lacerated the shock of pain blinds us our disappointment fills the outlook, like a The healthy nervous organism thunder-storm. its vitality At we already suggested, disturbance reach the this is often effected by a quick turning show and will in the rapidity of the recuperative process ; of the thoughts to other and brighter parts of the scene which the trouble has for a moment blotted out, A to the other. storm —begins discern its and to the proportions of the one —like the all-enveloping thunder- to retire almost smilingly as soon as we boundaries. In much of which trouble this alleviating service of liberates us from the thraldom a laugh at ourselves. Indeed, one of may humour the laugh the momentary is safely say that the benefits here alluded to presuppose a habit of reflective The blessed self-quizzing. ment relief comes from the discern- of a preposterousness in the forcing of our claims, of a folly in yielding to the currents of sentiment which difi"use their mists over the realm of reality. The coming of the smile announces a shifting of the point of moment ago seemed our world, showing itself now view ; the mal-adjustment, which a to be wholly on the side of to be side as well. on our LAUGHTER OF THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 330 How humour will help a man in throwing off troubles, Even when the flash of bright reflection far one cannot say. fails the darkness, dispel to moment When of respite. it may the trouble has real magnitude, the dismissive smile grows hard for Few valuable secure a all save the elect. of us, perhaps, could rise to the height of serene irony attained by a German musician whose wife had eloped with his master.^ Many might woman who, after illness, remarked that had kept her from be disposed to think that the nursing her husband through a fatal it was only a sense failing, was less of humour which than human. Yet it is highly risky to infer, from the fact of an intrusion of the humorous temper into calamity, the existence of degree of moral sensibility. who this suffer It may a low rather be that those most are beholden in an exceptional degree to kind solacer of men's woes. This service of humour, at once consolatory to suffering and corrective of one-sidedness of view, is perfected by a development of that larger comprehensive vision which is when the standpoint of egoism is transcended. Even the beginning of humour implies some getting away reached from the point of view of the individual, so far as a momentary comprehension to gain of others' points of view. great educative value of being laughed at is that it compels attention to the fact of a multiplicity of such points. good a lesson, one thinks, it The How must have been for the Scotch professor to hear his disgusted caddie remark can teach Greek, but gowf needs a heid ". : " Anybody There remains for brief illustration another service which humour renders its possessor, though in truth it may turn out to be only a further development of the one just dealt ' The story of Hans von these circumstances is Billow's almost superhuman behaviour under told in the National Observer of 17th Feb., 1894. CONTEMPLATION OF SOCIAL SCENE 331 Laughter at things, being primarily an accompani- with. ment of observation, remains in its highest forms chiefly an amusement at outside spectacles. The resources of a mature faculty of humour may lend themselves to an enjoyable contemplation of one's The value and as a whole. parts social world, the end of both in humour when of dual can, indeed, only be rightly measured possibilities of its to the indivi- entertainment which the large in criticising one's lie surroundings are borne in mind. The enjoyment which a humorous observer is able to gather from the contemplation of the social scene implies that he make his own standpoint, that he avoid the more turbulent part of the social world and seek the quiet back- waters where he can survey things in the calm light of ideas. One who lives wholly in the giddy throng will never be able to see things in the perspective which humorous Nor appreciation requires. he this all; if is move and live, have his being in the commotion, he will be forced to re- and to show the hurrying figures press mirthful impulses about him a certain respect, since any generous indulgence would be in the joys of laughter unpleasant That there is much in the social only to the eye of one half -retired " society," of him into which falls likely to bring collisions. is spectacle certain. The vagaries in the conventional sense of the term, are one of the traditional matters of laughter ; our comic journals have enlightened even dull minds on this point. It is pleasant to a humorous contemplation high pretensions of the "fine instance, and 1 all it assumes that it the good talkers in See, for example, a, letter world" holds its from a all service titled to note the how naively, for the men of brains ; ; ^ pleasant, that is lady in The Times of the Ist June, 1894, in which this claim of " society " to the services of " the pick of blood and brains " is prettily assumed. LAUGHTER OP THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 332 who to say, to one bears in mind some of the characteristics of this world, such as a certain emptiness in the matter of with something of the readiness of a certain ideas, together kind of dog to follow any self-appointed leader, and an amiable impartiality in crowning any sort of trumpeted, whether potentate happens to be East or to note " showman from the West. It how enclosed it remains within is " that from the hero entertaining, too, purely arbitrary its standards, being rather shocked, for example, to find when travels that there can be such a thing as " society " in it Italy which not a is " dining society This, ". and much more, will often draw the eye of humour, oddly enough, in the same direction as that of an awe-struck flunkeyism. It is an agreeable pastime, too, for our half-retired observer to watch the fierce struggles of men and women in these days to gain a footing within the charmed circle. Here, surely, the gyrations of the moral figure reach the height of absurdity. Nowhere does there seem to reflec- tion to be quite such a disproportion its between efibrt and doubtful reward as in these labours of the hot and panting to win a footing on the fashionable terrain. What makes the scene the more pathetically droll that success never seems to satisfy in is men their is the necessity of getting followed by a no less dire necessity of keeping one- self visible in of ; the tightly-packed crowd. The sensitiveness of high position to the least sign of neglect in goddess is something that cannot fail to tickle a It is said that high officials once humorous fancy. passed unhappy days and nights waiting for an invitaThe occasion was a national festival, when tion to dinner. some inventive dames, taking themselves apparently quite seriously as representative women each to invite a representative male. of the age, proceeded So do the gods give VAGARIES OF SOCIETY 333 us harvest of laughter by sowing vanity with minds spitefulneasea in the men, and setting of its " small society " them to her thraldom. To the dispassionate eye of reason, no " society " which is founded on birth or on a mixed basis of birth and wealth has seemed quite worthy of this servile attitude. Certainly to lure when, as the Berlin Hofschneider in these days, have observed to Prince Bismarck at the Opera is mixed rather (ein bischen gemischt), rational is said to Ball, society men might be expected to leave this kiad of homage to the weak- No minded. doubt men been ready to admit this when they set down mind caught of ; yet it may be in the snare have questioned whether, their endurance of the boredom of the diner-out to the social ambition of their wives, they evade the laughter of the gods. Pity may visits these it find a place at the side of laughter has been said, show when peep behind the masks she will, here, too, the thinnest pretence of Dull with something of the dulness of death are gaiety. many A absurd scenes. of the older faces, even when they force themselves to produce grimaces and spasmodic cacklings, thin and anaemic like themselves. It looks as if it and not which these pleasure, are seeking ment itself ; only to has grown find, were a dram of excitement, loyal worshippers of society perhaps, that the hope of excite- illusory. Yet, in speaking of the entertaining aspects of the social spectacle, scene. " monopoly one need not confine oneself to the fashionable in the matter of the incongruities. of the Great Middle Class and even of the Masses their amusing aspects for the unprejudiced eye. of social who is, has no The doings Society," charmingly irrational as she life, indeed, may have All phases yield rich entertainment to one has the mental vision justly accommodated. LAUGHTER OF THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 334 What first human play of vralue of folly, less violent for its coveted column seems hardly is show to Many and wonderful are which known the if movements and sounds children, feeling themselves overlooked, to resort in order to compel notice efforts of Appar- win the only for an in- yourself, to pestered and rather jaded eye of a crowd, to fully alive to the than that for the fashionable gathering. the supreme necessity stant. -the fine dis- perverted ingenuity, and uncontrollable The struggle vanity. ently, The newspaper, oddities. is things new, gives welcome to the self-revelations human of strikes the eye here, perhaps, men and women have been yet the frantic : to advertise themselves to the public eye are, surely, not less numerous or less strange. Even when they have tisers will sometimes still you an autobiography, account of all the social scene these self-adver- left try to seize your eye consisting largely, the dinner parties attended for the historian, perhaps, if it by sending may be, of an —a priceless thing only the writer had happened to be a politician. The vanity in this self-advertisement does not always lie on the surface, a partial self -blinding being of the of it. A person may humour be pushed on to the advocacy of a bottomless craze by a belief in a special mission so earnest, as completely to hide from him the which lurks in the attitude ; quiet onlooker, of this malicious from men so large a part the corners of the The absurdity inflated self -estimation and the recognition, by the way of Nature's, in hiding own motives, draws back of their mouth yet farther. of this forcing of oneself on the notice of the public, like that of pushing one's grows clearer when we object of pursuit. opinion. Yet reflect way on the It is the fashion just into "society," real value of the now spite of the classical dictum, to deify public it is not always SELF-ADVERTISEMENT AS SHOW A the deity to identify the two voices. to flattering 335 modern democratic the same plasticity society to the much apt to exhibit very is hand of the crafty moulder as that on which the wise Greek sprinkled his dainty irony. To be able to demos " forms " see through the pretty pretence that the opinions, its men, generals and other is to and that have one chief qualification How show. when an its verdicts on states- notabilities are consequently sacred, for enjoying the fun of the entertaining, for instance, is the proceeding editor invites a census of opinion on books, or other things which postulate some discernment. humour of it who are lured case, too, the lies in In this the circumstance that the good people into the trap honestly think that they are giving their own individual judgments. Still more •delightful with do these performances become when an his sense of the value of celebrities, and entertains names us, say, editor, fully awake, applies to with a church dignitary's conception of the ideal Music Hall, or with a popular jockey's views on the proper dimensions of a scientific manual. These exhibitions of authority for the. guidance of the public sufficiently testify to demos, assisted by open its its dociUty before any kind The very bigness of proffered leadership. of the modern "holy simplicity" of mind, lays to the wiles of the charlatan. How it can one expect the worthy tradesman reading in the solitude of his back parlour to gauge the authority of his newspaper guide is more than he can Sunday instructor. to entertain him in do, perhaps, to take the ? It measure of his He who reflects thus will find much the way of make-believe, when he examines the foundations of imposing reputations, or of the proud boast of political leaders that they carry " the Country'' with them. The newspaper, highly respectable institution as it un- LAUGHTER OP THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 336 doubtedly ment news is, entertains those in search of in other ways Its too. very standpoint as issuer of amusing exaggeration leads to an anything which happens to thrust of An moment. aye and a fallacy idea, will secure attention if only to bring we see it on its somebody with a name happen the neomania which Yet more exhilarating rest. to humorous the naive assumption of the newspaper and everything happens in order to furnish clients that them with news. I seriously contending, remember a paper, not when case, a new trial of a low class, a disagreeable cause cdebre had to be re- tried, that, since everybody had on the head up at the too, old as the ages,^ hands, the absurd exaltation of the latest all is of the importance its Whence comes up anew. novel and the inspection humorous enjoy- was most made up his mind The frank regrettable. suggestion that the proceedings of our law courts have their final cause in the satisfaction of a craving for news readers of journals was, doubtless, an editorial slip; the assumption The point of often discoverable to a penetrating eye. view reminds one of the joyous Italian children its is in yet antics of the who follow the cavalcade of the diligence and "supplements" as it descends southwards to the level of the olive-groves, sure in their glee that the rattling procession, and the "soldi" too, have come for their delight. In view of the entertainment afforded by the press in these days, one " may comic journal Humour will sometimes wonder whether the expression " is not growing into a pleonasm. keep at our elbow, too, if we push deeper, and, lifting the wrappings of convention, insist on seeing the realities. The involutions of public utterance when, say, a dubious appointment has to be defended, are in themselves no less entertaining an exhibition of naivete disclosed through elaborate wrappings than the romancings of a THE SOCIAL SPECTACLE OF TO-DAY naughty child beating about spectacle, perhaps, is more No an excuse. for 337 kind of uplifting to a spirit given to the right sort of reflection, none too which has a larger promise of unwearying variation, than the wrigglings of the human mind when tangled in awkward and forced to find something which looks appearances, way like a of logical escape. As all who read are aware, the vagaries of "society" and the no new spectacle. Other times drolleries of public life are and patterns of society have had their entertaining aspects fixed for us much by the half-retired chronicler. Yet there is to suggest that the social scene of to-day bears the palm, as illustrator of the volume and the many-sidedness The bigness of the laughable. instability and other and " go-aheadness," of our social scheme, its its —these reckless activity by the eagerness of people to gain doings and a corresponding readiness of features, aided publicity for their journals to accord it, appear to secure for the quiet onlooker to-day the enjoyment of an exuberant crop of personal oddities, pushful pretences, disparities qualification, between position and and the other amusing features of the social scene. Much on of the drollery of the social spectacle here touched may be enjoyed with a certain detachment, and even with a soupgon of the malice which characterises the laughter of those outside the social group, within which the merry show- man is erecting his stage. The kindlier note of humour enters here only as a subordinate element, as a good-natured toleration of folly, supported comprehension of sadly perverted. it It by a more or less distinct under the head of worthy qualities must be otherwise if the bizarre and provocative spectacle of folly's head obtrudes itself into a season of national storm and stress, say of war-commotion, 22 LAUGHTER OP THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR 338 things cannot, unless he be an unsocial when the observer of any longer consent cynic, bility of a laugh, or The very to be detached. possi- even of a smile, might seem to be excluded as a desecration. If it is only be possible, it can through the discovery of a modus vivendi between the mirth- and some of the deepest and most absorbing of ful impulse Our our feelings and impulses. analysis of humour has prepared us for a considerable penetration of the mellowed kind of mirth into the heart of the serious, for a fine and rapid detection by the practised eye of amusing aspects of and experiences which appeal directly and power- situations fully to the acuter feelings and to the sterner attitudes. may, perhaps, find the crowning We illustration of this inter- penetration of the serious and the playful in the possibility of a humorous glance depths of every The much at things truth, that a state of that is which must stir the heart- true citizen. war good and admirable, ciently recognised will develop in citizens has, perhaps, been suffi- while, on the other hand, its ravages ; and its sufierings have been a frequent theme of the eloquent Less attention has, for pretty obvious reasons, lip and pen. been paid to those aspects and accompaniments of the state which seem to some, when regarded from the point of view of the normal type of consciousness, to illustrate folly in one of its which, when seen if larger manifestations. human These aspects only for an instant by the qualified may be said to grow in distinctness community rises in the scale of civilisation. Since, moreover, the humorous person has trained himself in the swift detection of the accompaniments and the relations of the objects which he inspects, and has a habit of looking at observer, must entertain, as a the neglected sides of things, be found now and again it may among be expected that he will those who in the troubled THE WAR-TEMPER AS SPECTACLE preserve something atmosphere of 339 the faculty of clear observation. The fundamental observer is humorous factor in the situation for a the temporary hypertrophy of the most powerful of man's instincts, having its roots deeply seated in the primal impulse of self-conservation, appearing in the organic milieu of a higher type of social consciousness with its fixed habits of estimating hypertrophy gives and judging things. rise to a The state of group of extravagances which have something of the dimensions of a burlesque. many exaggerated forms of hatred, with denunciations and vilifications, and of a correlative credulity, its brood of suspicions the swollen dimensions of incredulity, with regard to things which touch the patriotic passion more is — and much this probably an inseparable accompaniment of the national psychosis, certainly so is The expansions of the boastful, self-sufficing temper, the challenged, if the dignity of " our cause " whether from within or from without. In these larger manifestations of the war-temper such organic milieu as the surviving normal consciousness can supply takes but a small part. What movements gence are observable are pretty plainly of an of intelli- intelligence subjugated by the dominant passion, and made to work for it by foraging far and wide for food-stufFs to satisfy its appetite for provocatives and solaces. Yet this is but a small part of the humorous aspect of the between the new temper and and judging nursed into vigour and endurance by a long course of civilisation which introduces the really amusing feature. For the quaint thing is that drowsy intelligence will now and again try to sit up and situation. It is the collision the habit of feeling give a nudge to its rather noisy bed-fellow. position and interaction of two tendencies It is the juxta- of widely removed 340 LAUGHTER OP THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR moral levels, and quite disproportionate in their strength In this which supplies the rich variety of the entertaining. way, for example, we obtain the droll spectacle of an overconfident advocate of the cause suddenly brought to silence by a foggy suspicion that his hearer not responsive is enough, a suspicion which instantly brings to light the residuum of the normal man's desire 'for others' support. Or — enemy older runs away with again, the powerful impulse to belittle the than the age of Goliath him a patriot, carry —may, when to the point it from which he dimly discerns the edge of a dialectic precipice, the fatal concession that victory of the is enemy robbed of — all its glory. Or the fancy preferred to a study from —may bring so dear to the war-temper quandary that he its life portrait because it is possessor into the finds himself quite incapable of carrying out the necessary business of understanding that enemy's aims and methods. A slight examination will illustrate most show that the previous chapter. the look of a vainly seek to when wUl big "mess," from which the participators extricate themselves. emotional and conative attitude as spectacle forms of the laughable recognised in a The whole situation may tend to assume of the is The high-strung certain to lead to futilities, confident predictions strike against the hard sub- stance of fact. contradictions, The situation will, further, be prolific of including, not only the fundamental one already dealt with, but the discrepancies of statement which arise as the ratio of the intensities of the normal and the abnormal varies within the limits indicated above. That the psychological situation will give rise to a large display of pretence, has been already suggested. The survival of a partially stupefied intelligence in the bellicose patriot will, indeed, be chiefly manifested in the somewhat FOLLIES OF THE WAR-ATTITUDE 341 onerous task of covering the unsightly faces of things with bespangled ones veils, and the methods show themselves of the war. aims in dignifiying the if possible, These efforts will plainly calm observation, for the most part, to at least, not as conscious hypocrisies, but as self-deceptions following from the interaction of the two selves so strangely forced to consort. It is hardly needful to say thatdisorder, topsy-turvyness, confusions of_rdZer_and,- generally-j form an relations, inversions of _es^ential. feature of the men world so altered from the normal pattern that to a golden silence take to a speech that " leaders " assume the onwards by unruly flocks inconsistency appears to virtues ; orderly. is hardly silver ; that a certain kind of moral have won its place among and that those versed in the divine have fail to A given droll aspect of shepherds forced the inverted part of justifying the cannot which normal spectacle. ways to men of the assume to God, look disordered to a calm eye trained by the There would seem to be no room in such a scene, where men are wont to divest themselves of their individual characteristics, for a display of personal oddity. observation will dencies which show make that, in spite of the Yet a closer powerful ten- for uniformity of behaviour, shreds The prevailing temper seizes on men, as a fever seizes on them, according to their individual of individuality survive. constitutions ; and one may watch the process of assimilation of parties, sects, much as a and individuals to the type of the hour, shrewd physician might watch the quaint modifi- cations of a malady in a case of strongly marked family or individual peculiarities. It was said above that the possibility of this humorous observation implied the discovery of a modus vivendi with the serious and more sensitive part of us. This means that 342 LAUGHTER OF THE INDIVIDUAL: HUMOUR the observation can be no quiet, prolonged pastime, but must rather resemble the side of things, momentary amusing intuitions of the which help us when we battle with worries and encounter its tion of the laughable as greater troubles. is life's Such apprecia- possible in the case is rightly humorous when it accompanies a complex serious attitude which, on the one hand, discerns both the hurtcalled fulness and the pitifulness of and on the smile, other, the folly that brings the makes an effort to which repels and to descry estimable under The smile it. will bring a strain, as in other cases The humorist hold fast to that qualities hidden momentary away relaxation of where mental and moral tension is upon him because reflection enables him, in a sense, to comprehend, by recalling, for example, what Plato, Montaigne and others tell us high. will suffer it to steal happen when men are captured by a more inclined to be tolerant, if history comes to his aid, as the history of a patient may come to that of an anxious physician, assuring him of recovery and as to what crowd. is He likely to will be resumption of normal functions civic division, lacerating brought him near to the ; still social more, part men and women whose to sweeten the ferment of the hour, if a time of of him, has gentleness seems and whose henceforth appear to him in comforting vision faces — wiU earth's angel faces whose smile comes not with the brightening mom but with the deepening blackness of night. 343 CHAPTER XI. THE LAUGHABLE IN ART: COMEDY. We have traced the development of laughter in the dividual and in the community with It has been as possible to the influence of Art. that the feelings which move in- as little reference assumed and us to laughter are primal, capable of expanding and deepening independently of this At the same time, influence. it is We human development. of life the figure of the " certain that the educative work from lead of the artist has been at a very early stage have found even in savage funny man," the expert in lifting by means of jest and the sluice gates of social laughter pantomime. Within the historical period, the practice of engaging jesters for banquets, and social entertainments generally, appears to go back to remote times The simple social conditions.^ exercise of men's gift of laughter must have been a potent may now comic by factor in and very and more methodical finer these skilled choragi its We development. glance at the evolution of art on its amusing and side. This is no occasion for probing to its dark bottom the 1 On the employment of buffoons and dwarfs in the palace of the Egyptian king see Maspero, Dawn of Civilisation, pp. 278, 279, On the Greek and Boman jesters {yeXioroirowl, iipeTa\6yot, mimi, sourrse) see P. Gardner, Greek Antiquities, p. 335; [c/. Doran, Court Fools]. On the mediaeval jester or fool see Wright, op. cit., chap. vii. ; Laoroix, Middle Ages, Jusserand, English Wayfaring Life, p. 187. p. 233 ff. ; and THE LAUGHABLE 344 COMEDY IN ART: problem of the function of art. If we keep to the be- ginnings of the art of ministering to men's laughter, as we may study them among savages and our own children, the theories which look to art for the expression of an even of an emotion seeking for resonance, seem idea, or to have but It looks as if the relevance. little of that simple social act which a play- challenge, as illustrated in the game art grew out of reciprocal Hence, the play-theory of art serves particularly tickling. The quality well for our present purpose. productivity which to amusing have called I have grown an is distinct, as of beneficent may essential of art be supposed soon as an individual of superior cunning in playing on the mirthful organ found himself with an audience. vis-d-vis No impulse of an art- social like character strikes out its visible and audible effect more and more impressively than the desire to directly raise a laugh. Taking we this view, see that the art which moves us to mirth illustrates the conative process in art-production. To amuse men, to raise their spirits to the treble pitch of gaiety, pre-supposes the desire to please. In all simple art-performance, this essentially social motive works consciously " and directly : the partly unconscious art of the fool " being here, of course, overlooked. the will to move men merrily in normal cases, it may is, In higher forms, I believe, and controls the whole always present art-process, though not be consciously realised at every moment. In the case of the comic actor, at any rate, a volitional control of his own necessity. aspect to feeling This and is expression seems to be a prime sufficiently illustrated commonly assumed by the popular add to the mirthful It its in the solemn jester, in order effect of his utterance. would be an interesting inquiry, if our limits allowed SCOPE OF LAUGHTER of it, for to examine the means which moving us IN art, as ART 345 a whole, possesses This would open up the curious to laughter. question of the symbolism of colours and tones, and of their combinations, as expressive of mirthful and of feeling jocose intention. That laughter has for its men and proper excitant their doings, at once suggests that only those arts which represent human field ideas and actions on a large for the exhibition apart from sculpture, as the expressive art Architecture, heavily handicapped here. is excellence, 'pa/r narrowly limited range of rhythms, characteristic have a considerable scale the ludicrous. of as effect, such may be seen in the combinations as Music, has a certain though of light staccato with deep-pitched notes, incompleted phrases and so forth, which tickling effect Some do duty in comic opera. due, not to certainly is of this an expression of jocose feeling, but to the bizarre aspect of the combination And of sounds. amusing are the same effects of common probably true of the slightly is such grotesque combinations of colour as in the costume of the harlequin, of the prince of mockers, and of other more or less comic figures. The grotesque and amusing in dress, that of the clown for example, is manifestly based on its suggestions, especially wrong sex, wrong age and the like. Passing by the comic directions of pictorial art, including the highly developed process of modern political and other those of caricature, the great rdle in stimulating men's laughing susceptibilities falls to literature, literature and the procession of human variegated amplitude. fain laugh our and pre-eminently to dramatic its interpreter, fill the stage. follies Here, only, can display something of its Hither must we come, if we would and know what resources art possesses for playing on the whole gamut of our "risibility". THE LAUGHABLE 346 would be well It literature. may It if COMEDY IN ART: we knew the beginnings of jocose be that the jest-books preserve for us forms resembling those which these beginnings have taken. A short descriptive story of smart bit of repartee, some practical joke, or of may have grown some naturally enough out of the evening fire-side talk and become fixed and handed down new to may (fabliaux) and fragments stories The Mediaeval generations. of talk. This short anecdotal story would allow a certain scope for mimicry and A elocution. its rise in its facetious dialogue, by an acknowleast, would enforce The bits of dialogue, at amount of mimicry of tones and The beginnings of The humble Greek comedy was the village revel harvest home was no actor, —of gestures. comedy, so far as we can get back to them, bear out these conjectures. of its; would naturally the rehearsal of such a story ledged expert. a certain a crude art of rudimentary form of comic acting, with mimic gestures and take Contes- be viewed as a slight expansion of such the vintagers. only a leader rilous impromptus".^ farce began with mocking "who At —a first, we merry read, there let off coarse Or, as another writer has songs and birthplace, sort of ironical and scurit, Greek speeches during processions, the Greeks being quick to mimic and ta improvise.^ The dawn process. It of our was own comedy shows a somewhat similar in an atmosphere of mirth that the child, half-seriously quizzing things in order to laugh the more,^ was born. This may be seen by a reference to the mirthful and their riotings which were a feature of mediaeval English life. The " feast of fools " was the great occasion societies for satirical songs, and, later on, for ^ dramas in which tha P. Gardner, Greek Antiquities, p. 666. ^Bergk, Oriech, Literaturgeseh., iv., pp. 9, 10. ORIGIN OF COMEDY more clergy were shall see, there especially taken existed in the No off. old 347 doubt, as we and miracle-plays moralities a simple dramatic form capable of being trans- formed into comedy. possible by Yet this transformation was made some the spirit of mirth and revelry, which had time before rudely broken into the solemnity of the miracleplay.i The full of the rise comic drama has had social its Mr. Meredith has pointed to some of them, conditions. particularly the existence of the recognition of woman's an intelligent middle class, status that of her conversational wit.^ ; to and which one may add, To these social conditions might be added a national mood of gaiety, coming from some new sense of lightened shoulders and a freer breathing. The value comedy as chief ministress to our laughter be seen by a mere glance at its many resources. It seems able to present to the eye and ear all varieties of the amusing. As a show, it carries on the fun of children's of may make-believe play. It can set before us the most grotesque aberrations of dress, carriage and manners. figures, again, choosing the character. presents to us it full variety of Lastly, it in In forms its of human own its laughable traits of mind and of can exhibit in its plots the "^ 1 l \ j whole j gamut men of teasing in real We may and practical joke which amuses ordinary life. defer illustration of the comic treatment laughable traits of character, and look for a moment of at the ways in which the incidents of comedy carry on the movements of primitive fun. A ' glance will See Wright, op. tell cit., us that these incidents are woven out chaps, xii. and xiv. Essay on Comedy, pp. 24-5 (on Molifere's audience); pp. following (on the recognition of woman). ^ 8, 47 and THE LAUGHABLE 348 of the play and the IN ART COMEDY : merry youth. practical jokes of The boisterous fun of the spectacle of a good beating, for which the lower savages have a quick sense, and which dish at the circus, in the popular is is a standing a frequent incident in comedy, both and boisterous variety of Aristophanes and and more intellectual one of Plautus, and in the quieter Moli^re.^ Another variety of amusing incident drawn from childplay and the popular fun of the circus is words, gestures or other movements. These repetitions grow particularly a repetition of funny when they take the form of an alternate going and coming, or of ending and recommencing a discourse. Amusing already in their semblance grow more purposeless play, they sometimes of assuming a look of irrepressibility, as Pancrace in Le Mariage force is when the droll by philosopher again and again pushed behind the coulisse and returns to renew his discourse. It has been pointed out that such movements have something known of the amusing character of the toy the-box. Another tions, also manner as Jack-in- ^ class of repetitions, which we may call imita- frequent on the comic stage, seems in Hke to reproduce easily recognisable features of child's Nothing is more young animals and in the play-mood play. characteristic of in children alike than an imitative • A Examples will be found in Le Midecin malgri lui, L'Avare and others. delightful introduction of the all-round beating of the circus is that of Le Bourgeois gentilhomme. M. Bergson, who gives a delightful account bhe Professors in ^ to the eflect of comedy, seeks to connect of these mechanical aids them with his theory that the the monotony of the machine laughable consists in the substitution of for the variety of the organism {op. cit., p. 72 ff.). I suspect, however, that they owe much of the spell they cast over our laughing muscles to suggestions of child's play. COMEDY AND CHILD'S FUN The propagation of movement. child's The an excellent example. faces is for these imitations shows how closely with primitive fun. imitated This plain is of making it o, remains in touch enough when the action see in the rebuffs and The repeated beatings of counter-rebuffs of the circus. the wife-beater in Le game liking of the stage we may disorderly, as is 349 MMecin malgre lui have something of this diverting effect. The amusing repetitions wrought into the mechanism of comedy are, as Moli^re may tell us, commonly far less aggressive. The reproduction of the series of exclamations of Cldonte on the perfidy of his mistress by his Bov/rgeois gentilhomme, and the valet, Covielle, in Le counterpart to this, the slightly varied repetitions of the reproaches of Cleonte's mistress by her maid, are quite delightfully suggestive of a plot on the part of reduce his victims to one level of imbecility. Comedy, both ancient and modern, dupery. A whole play may is full Love to ^ of trickery and ^ be one big piece of fooling, ending for the most part in a merry scene in which the deluded victim or victims come to their senses again. spectator, who is The in the secret, enjoys sympathetically the laughter of the plot-maker. One of the simplest outgrowth from figures of and comedy towards not gifted with when whom it our laughter make is The guided are and a small amount of meets and complete deception. of Shakespeare comic devices, another seems to be a disguise. the finest of visions, disguise, especially suffices for earliest child's play, flatters their desires, Classic comedy and that large use of such trickery. 1 Compare the breezy fun of the scene in Le Twrtuffe, where the maid, Dorine, has to tackle in turn each of a pair of lovers urging the same grievances in almost the same vyords (Act II., So. iv.). L|-^ THE I.AUGHABLE 350 COMEDY IN ART: But a strange dress and other means of disguise are by no means always necessary for the befooling. When the credulous mood is on, the victim, whether fish or man, will rise to the crudest of artificial imitations, on its when they victims and comedy fastens are in this mood, as in the case M. Jourdain and the rest. Sometimes the comedian prepares for the needed deception of Malvolio, by throwing its victim into a fit of absent-mindedness. A good example may be found in the scene between Arnolphe and the notary in Moliere's L'J^cole des Femmes, tongues of the two gether, while the state of perfect make where the a pretence of running on to- two brain& that move them remain mutual misunderstanding. in a It is another kind of amusing self-deception when the comic figure, again showing his descent from the clown, undertakes to do something, and instantly displays a complete inability to carry out his undertaking. This is illustrated in a less obvious manner in Le Bourgeois gentilhomme by the be- haviour of Cl^onte, who, after quarrelling with his mistress, and begging sustain his resolve to love, hand " to his spite and to bear down any remains of his foolish his valet to " lend a instantly afterwards protests against the obedient servant's depreciations of the lady. C, The comic person must be mercilessly attacked now and again, if the spectator is to get his Moliere again gives us the illustration. fill of merriment. The scene in which the miser's son, Cl^ante, playfully holds the father as in a vice, as he takes oS" the ring from the old gentleman's finger and offers it as if in his behalf to the lady they both desire to wed, has the full flavour of the retaliative joke. The laugh which is "malicieux" though not "amer" comes in a large wave when the deception of traces which have become galling. is a kicking over The tricking of the SOME DEVICES OF COMEDY 351 by Terence severe guardian, parental or other, illustrated in the Adelphi, and by Moli^re in L'Ecole des Femmes, L'^cole des Maris and other works, yields a lusty A gratification as a an oppressor. practical joke directed against good deal of the fun of comedy may easily be seen to flow from a bizarre placing of a person, especially the set- ting of him in a situation where he has to do what he not accustomed to much so Tip, do. the better. is appearances have to be kept If false The by which the sham tricks doctor Sganarelle tries to play up to his part in Le Mddecin mif,gri may Im are of the broadly comic. A diverting situation lovers who have and are in the most doleful of moods have to The subjection of the arch -hypocrite TartufFe to the be obtained in other ways, as when fallen out meet. watchful eye of Orgon's son As already social laughter chapter. hinted, pregnant of comic reflects those which have been dealt with The works one who seeks is comedy effect. movements of in a previous of Aristophanes are a storehouse for illustrations of the popular attitude the new, when this The comic stage is towards lends itself to a buflbonish inflation. conservative in the sense that it is ready to ridicule whatever wears the look of a bizarre novelty. The importation of foreign dress and manners has been a well-recognised source of merriment in modern plays. With grotesque innovations may be set the affectations of superior manners, fashions of speech and the rest, for which the laughter-loving public has had a quick eye. The exposure of an excessive fondness for using fine expressions, especially foreign ones, has always, one suspects, exhilarating effect on an educated audience. of Moli^re's of " dames lives as the great The had an preciosity example of a culte the fine shades," carried to the point of the irresistibly droll. ^ THE LAUGHABLE 352 COMEDY IN ART: The well-recognised social antagonisms, again, lend to comedy all their store of the amusing. The droll side of the bloodless feud between man and woman comes into view development of the in all stages of the vary in course, its mode of presentment with the conditions of the time the status of woman. it represents, and more especially with is a constant source of incidental and a main motive of two plays. ^ by woman in the Greek assumption ing frankness. social In the comedy of Aristophanes, the mutual chaff of the sexes effect It will, of art. dialogue is Yet the part taken of her inferiority meets us with a The notion The exceedingly small. ^ charm- of her rising to a higher place handled with a buffoonish extravagance which must have delighted conservative husbands. When the poet wishes to show up the folly of the Athenian war-party in civic life is he invents a revolt of the dames, who by certain effective measures, connubial and other, manage to the lasting shame The triumph of their betters to bring about peace. inferior here the savage reminds one of the hilarious victory women in the art of as a whole treated abuse ^ ; rowing. women, including of the won by The Greek comedy hetaerae, with copious woman now yet in Latin comedy, at any rate, the and again gets the better of the man. In the Asitiaria of Plautus, an amorous old man, one of the favourite figures of comedy, is finely chastised by the wife who surprises his secret. it The interminable contest of man and woman the rivalry of the home and the tavern say to-day, the Club. In Plautus, ' Moultou, Ancient Glass. Drama, p. 344. " " In Aristophanes the very few (Neil, ^ — who carries or, as we with should goes for a large maiden figures that appear are dumh " The Knights of Aristophanes, Introduction, p. xiv.). P. Gardner, Greek Antigmties, p. 353. REFLECTION OF LAUGHTER OF GROUPS licence in pleasure, the opposition is emphasised. 353 Terence, by introducing a more becoming conception of feminine nature and married life, prepared the way for a more equal intercourse between man and woman. It is, however, only under the improved conditions of modern family and social has that the verbal duel of the sexes in life grown keen and comedy brilliant. Another and primitive and young, amply displays its possibilities of fun on the comic stage. In the newer Attic comedy, we are told, representations of the old became frequent, now as austere and avaricious, now as fond and " tender-hearted.^ The contrast of the severe " Governor " and the fond Papa," which we have seen illustrated in or, in its special relation, that of old form, of father and child, Terence and Molifere, clearly points to the fact that comedy, merry youth, favours the and seeks to relax the paternal leading strings. as play designed expressly for son's case, Just as the too weighty rule of a father laughingly pushed master. The aside by comedy, so is is apt to be that of the comedy is down to the intriguing, cheating valet of Latin many the ancestor of a domestic swindler, Mr. Morgan whose sudden disappearance was regretted by Major Pendennis. husband, is The outwitted master, Uke the outwitted a comic figure that excites but little haps, because the getting the better of one in his subordinate is pity ; per- power by never wanting in the agreeable look of \ Other a merry equalising of things. " humours " of__social groups, that of^trader^_moijfiy-lender;-aiid-th©iK-clien.ts, for/ example, are, as suggested in an earlier chapter, reflected' in comedy. The same flavour is of fun, the same kinship to child's play/\ recognisable in the speech of the comic stage. 1 Mommsen, History of Borne, vol. 23 iii., p. 144. Word/ THE LAUGHABLE 354 play here has much IN ART: COMEDY merely the lighter interlude in what as a whole is of the character of a game, the contest of rapier- comic dialogue. like tongues in Men have written weightily on the nature of wit and and relation to intellect in general courses seem hardly to capture by the discussion humour. to Their its dis- Locke started its finer spirit. well-known distinction between wit his and judgment, the former consisting in a bringing together of ideas with quickness and variety wherein can be found any resemblance or congruity and separating in the main, is ; the latter in discriminating Addison, ideas. ^ bound to add who that, accepts this definition though wit produced by resemblance and congruity of often produced by is generally ideas, it is very Hazlitt follows Addi- their opposition.^ son in including likeness and opposition. Wit, according to him, "is an arbitrary juxtaposition of dissonant ideas, for some lively purpose of assimilation or contrast, gener- ally of both." ^ All this, though it hints at a distinctive manner of intellectual activity, misses the itself in the main with the question mark by busying of a particular kind of relation of ideas. The rather solemn treatment writers is characteristic. the head of false wit, of puns by these serious Addison deals with them under and bravely attacks the ages for For thus spurning the humble upholding the practice.* by the god of laughter- to the mode of intellectual play. the word suggests, wit is not so pun, he was rendered blind real nature of wit, as essentially a As the etymology much of a special faculty concerned with a particular class of relations, an attitude or manner of behaviour of the as , Bk. II., ohap. * Spectator, No. 6. 2 xi. 'English Comic Writers, Leot. I., " Spectator, No. 62. Wit and Humour", ANALYSIS OF WIT a whole. intelligence as and and agile gait, is 355 her most lively by readiness of mind, illustrates It characterised quickness of perception, ingenuity in following out hints unexpected contrasts, of quite reasons, tending to sportiveness, own similarities, sake, the whole it and revels in sudden game of verbal hide especially developed transitions, doublings, and seek.^ is a talent by a proper and entertaining variety, and which has been exercise of one of the chief functions of the .social animal, conversation. talk, This has which when the perfection of an art becomes a kind of game. is As idea. loves an intellectual chase for its According to this view, wit light aims, causes, and the other apparent belongings of an its it reaches A subject tossed out like a ball and each side then tries to strike in turn and so keep the game going. purpose may subject, but the main interest Something it of serious be behind, as a half wish to illumine the lies in the game itself, in the exhilarating pleasure of crossing the intellectual foils with a worthy opponent. commonly carried on by persons who are not merely fellow-players. As we have seen, witty dialogue flourishes when some force of repulsion as well as of Yet, though a game, talk attraction is is involved, as that between a would-"be seller and needy yet stand-off buyer, or between a wooer and a woman concerned not to make winning too easy. Where, as his between two rivals, wit will be apt to the situation conducive to warmth, the As Addison reminds us, often developed in an unequal game, between a " butt wit is and his assailants, the butt John is grow pungent. Falstaff", The how " to knowing now and again, art of witty exchange, like that of using implies self-restraint 1 ; like Sir get the laugh of his side".^ and Cf. supra, pp. 112, 113. foils, clearly in both cases the desirable cool^ Spectator, No. 47. THE LAUGHABLE 356 ness is COMEDY ART: IN by the presence of the impartial that husband and wife first learned greatly furthered spectator. It is possible to spar jocosely by having to carry on disputes in the presence of outside hearers. Taking view of wit, we this inevitably comes into it. may The pun see how word-play of childish years, which merely tricks the ear by an accidental doubleness of meanneed not be considered here. ing, guity has value for laughter, merry purpose, that it It when is it only when " art. Word- Some of the comes under the eye of play clearly tends to run into thought-play. best-known the ambi- can be turned to some mots " will be found to involve the double- sense of the pun, like the praise awarded King to one of his courtiers never in the way and in the by the witty remark that he was never out of the way. It is the deep sense discernible through the verbal appearance of a self-contradiction It which charms and entertains here.^ seems to follow that the laughter excited in spectator or reader by a display of wit something of the is new, rather startling, and child's is slightly complex. It has in laughter of admiration at what it fine, of his gay response to a play-challenge, and of a sympathetic rejoicing with the com- batant who, by showing his skill, obtains an advantage over his antagonist. The dialogue of comedy and the comic point of view will of the fiction make which adopts use of these verbal sports, these doublings of the intellectual chase, at the hint of ambiguous language. They are refreshing, they enlarge the scope of the witty combat, and they help to maintain the mirthful temper of the spectator. Their use may 1 An elaborate olasaifioation of the various kinds of word-play found in an article by Dr. Emil Krapelin, in Wundt's Philosoph, 2er Band, s. 144 ff may he be Stiidien, WIT COMEDY IN 357 throughout the history of comedy. illustrated find in the comedy sexes and punning. merry comedy of Aristophanes The same is much we In the true of Plautus. we have of Shakespeare Thus, chaffing of the an abundance still of puns, also a great advance in the art of the verbal foils, especially as crossed on the side of the by man and woman, more Moliere's latter. thoughtful discourse, though now and particularly quieter then and more room finds it for a pun, illustrates the finer art of witty combat, in which the foils seem to have been tipped with a softer button. We have so far dwelt on those elements of comedy which seem plainly derivable from simple forms of fun, as seen in child's play and the laughter There remains what in is of primitive folk. some ways the most interesting feature, the comic presentation of character in action and speech. It is cident, must customary to classify comedies into those of In- Manners and of not, present in every comedy. Such a division The three ingredients are of Character. however, mislead us. If Aristophanes depends largely on incident, he only gets his fun by choosing comic characters —the sophist, say, or the commercial explorer endowed with wings. In the so-called comedy of Manners of Congreve and his school, the persons, such as they are, form a main support undoubtedly of the entertaining action. Moli^re, though he relies chiefly on character, can only give us comedy by inventing situations in which his figures will have flashed hat i s meant on them the droll light of the comic stage. by the above classification is pretty plainly that in some comedies the characters are more central, are more finely W evolved, and attract a much larger attention. That the evolution of comedy an advance in the presentment has, in the main, been of character, as judged THE LAUGHABLE 358 IN ART: COMEDY both by the variety and the complexity of the person- and by the fulness and definiteness of the It presentation, is just what we might have expected. alities depicted, seems certain that, with the progress of civilisation, men and women have grown more complex and more varied, both and morally, and further that the and the capability of understanding intellectually interest in character it have developed concurrently. A word on the general conditions of a presentation of comedy. For one thing, dramatic construc- character in tion, compared with that as of prose fiction, has certain The obvious limits set to the delineation of character. art is too wise to attempt a full presentment of so com- plex a group of traits as It illustrates, ality. we find in a developed individu- however, degrees of fulness in the may presentation of personality, and the finer art of drama much produce its impression of a concrete person very skilful painter does within the limits of a rough sketch by Yet without the actor's few master strokes. bodiment of the part, the full impression of a individual would be difficult as a visible em- a concrete within the limits of dramatic construction. In the case of comedy, moreover, there is another reason for the limitation of the art of developing individual char- The acter. superlative aesthetic value of the ludicrous aspect of character imposes on the writer an unusual degree of simplification, of something like a reduction of the concrete personality to afibrded by an abstraction. The comic entertainment the presentation, say, of a swelling vanity, springs from our keeping the mental eye fixed in merry expectation of the coming developments of the laughable trait. only this core of the character, as the estimates it, is clearly presented and mood If, then, of the spectator sufficiently illustrated. CHARACTER both in its IN COMEDY 359 immediate manifestations and in the rest of the man, a very remainder will its effects shadowy reinstatement suffice. This conclusion seems clearly borne out by the way common of speaking of the great comic figures as " types " view a character to for on of this interested in the as typical ; means that we are person, less as a particular individual, The than as an example of a certain sort of person. common practice of writers of comedy, ancient and modern, marking of their by appropriate names, the characters Braggadocio, the Miser, the Misanthrope, and so forth, shows that authors recognise this typical function. Such comic representation it of type will always have in something of the nature of exaggeration. trait, height, must itself the balancing forces of the normal Yet, to say this between a is lifeless it when are greatly reduced. common distinction abstraction and a living character has There the rigid abstractions of early itself is a vast diflerence between modern comedy, before the from the leading strings of the morality plays, and the relatively figures tends to assume man not to say that the no meaning in comedy. had extricated full its be raised to a higher power and dis- played .m the hypertrophic volume art The laughable in order to raise the tide of merriment to full and freely moving which we encounter in Moliere's plays. On the other side, the always controlled expansion of an amusing trait in the comic character that forcing of expression tortion A with which is is to be clearly up marked off" from to the dimensions of a dis- the essence of caricature. glance at the history of comedy will show us how, its development, there has grown a finer recognition of the comic value of character and a corresponding skill in the presentation of it. THE LAUGHABLE 360 of Aristophanes illustrates the art of comic The comedy character-drawing in muse has not yet where the scene to mid-air, Hades ; COMEDY IN ART: now its left is Here, where the comic infancy. behind her the Bacchanalian rout of the gods, and where the boisterous fun in and where the ; such a pass as to show us competitors for Demos the favour of genial onslaught its spares neither deity, poet nor statesman farcical reaches now now to apt to be violently transported, to the abode offering to blow that worthy's nose there would seem to be no room for the portrayal of character. was And, in truth, the problem of constructing character in a way obviated by calling in living or historical Yet even personages familiar to the spectators. riotous atmosphere, in this where the eyes of the spectator must have been half-blinded by laughter, we may discern the dim beginnings of the art of comic portraiture. Not only have we now and again, as in the litigious old gentleman in the Wasps, hints of a typical comic figure, illustrated in we have the historical figures themselves, Socrates, Cleon, Euripides, a rude art of type-delineation.^ In the later Greek and the Latin comedy selves in a less turbulent scene where the we find our- air is clearer, things can be viewed with some steadiness. and In Plautus, the poet of the masses and the taverns, the spirit of riotous buffoonery proved ment itself to be still alive. Yet the confine- of the scene not only to earth but to its familiar haunts, and the introduction of the love though in its baser form, gave new of comic varieties of character. - motive, even scope for the exhibition Even sketches, not, indeed, of a moral type as in Plautus we we find find elsewhere, but of a representation of some social class or calling, with ^Bergk observes that these are at onoe individuals and types {Qriech. iteraturgeschichte, Bd. IV., s. 91). CHARACTER characteristics its soldier, An IN forcibly CLASSIC COMEDY set forth, as the boastful in the cheating servant, and the stingy money-lender. approximation to the illustration of a moral type may, perhaps, be detected in the amorous old It 361 is, man in the Asinaria. however, in the work of Menander and his adapter Terence that we must Roman look for the real advance. In the plays of Terence, written for the educated Romans, Thus the the figures assume something of respectability. father ceases, as with Plautus, to be a sort of football for filial buffoons to kick about, and grows into a character worthy and the contrast study; of between a foolish excess of authority and a wise lenience, given us in the two fathers than one model for more in the Adelphi, has been the modem writer. In Terence, too, the family by its own in its tussle with the rowdyism and this is no small gain for the comic delinea- begins to come of the tavern, tion of character.^ The circumstance that modern comedy took moralities, with their personifications of readily explains were how evil its rise in and the the rest, certain broad types of ignoble character set in the forefront of its scene. These appear already in the later moralities, for example, ''Like will to Like". In the work which marks the full transition from the Ralph interlude of the didactic morality to the comedy, " Roister Doister " (c. 1550), we have outlined one of the valuable figures in the comic world, the vainglorious cowardly man, the victim of the most entertaining of delusions.^ In the comedy of the Elizabethans, Ben Jonson and Massinger, it is easy to trace this influence, disguised though ' Mommsen observes that in Terence we have a more becoming, though not yet moral, conception of feminine nature and of married life {Sist. of Borne, Bk. IV., chap. xiii.). '^Oourthope, Sist. of English Poetry, vol. ii., pp. 345 ff., and 356, THE LAUGHABLE 362 IN ART: COMEDY sometimes by that of classical comedy. In Jonson's "Every Man in his own Humour," said to be the first important comedy of character in our literature, the source of entertainment is laid, not in a merry plot, but in the it is presentation of a variety of characters which display themselves in odd fashions and novelties of conduct. It may be roughly true, as Taine says, with Moli^re present to his imagination, that the method pursued quality and put together is an abstract to take the actions to which it gives In other words, the object-lesson of the morality rise.i still all too near, and the dramatist has not learned how make his comic characters Yet, tator's eye. if we may see Plautus, move and grow under the we compare Bobadil with is to spec- a braggart of that real progress has been made in the comic grasp and manipulation of character. In the comedies of Shakespeare a superficial reader might, so far as drawing of purely comic characters concerned, suppose himself to be moving backwards. glowing air of is The romance, the removal of the scene from the workaday world, the partial poetry and dream- delight, abandonment all this moods of to the would seem to exclude the setting up of well-defined figures fitted to entertain the mood of a gay contemplation. The supposition would not The " mixture of tones," which comes be utterly wrong. into the poet's comedies as well as into his tragedies, does undoubtedly tend to limit the portrayal of purely comic The romantic background cannot, like the fixed traits.^ arrangements of homely society, throw the versities the figures into sharp of moment how ' Eng, 2 On p. 291. Lit., this Bk. different II., mixture chap. an relief. follies and per- Think aesthetic significance for a and value iii. of tones see Moulton, Shakespeare as Dramatic Artist, COMIC CHARACTERS OF SHAKESPEARE would have attached if it one of Molifere's orderly The mixture melancholy Jaques, to the figure of the had been encountered, not 363 in the solitary forest, but in homes. of tones introduces a softening, transform- ing influence which affects our attitude towards the queer gently brought to reason by schooling men who are women have in their very perversity something amiable. Even Malvolio and Benedick and the other figures themselves. the other figures, whose folly exposed with something of is the unsparing extravagance of an older comedy, catch a saving ray from the We laugh world. warm glow which heartily ; diffused over their is yet the pre-dominant sentiment the play moves us at the same time towards tender of condonation. Must we then say that because he rarely allows us to look on folly and vice in the pure attitude of amused ob- Shakespeare servation, gxeatly matter reflect that in is no comic poet? how we answer does not It the question so long as we the world he has here created for us, at once beautiful and touched with a tender melancholy, charged with the electric current of mirth, we and yet possess some- thing quite as delightful as the well-defined comic scenes of a Moliere. warmth as in we " see of Now and again, moreover, where the rosy romance gives place to the colder light of The Merry Wives " and how keen an dialogue, and realities, The Taming of the Shrew," eye our poet could turn to the comic possibilities of character. a contribution he " made Nor must we forget how great to comic character-drawing in his where the man and the woman, at once attracted repelled, use their witty tongues with excellent and where woman, though now and then large part assigned her in curing developing what is best in him. man effect, chastised, has a of his follies and THE -LAUGHABLE 364 IN ART: For the comedy of character, in we form, are told, and rightly In his world, not only comedy of classic with its disguises is highest and purest to go to Moliere, the uproarious, dust-raising mirth silenced, and its told, COMEDY but the fun of extravagant plot though not absent, errors, is kept It is the familiar domestic world, into within measure. which we can readily transport ourselves. It is peopled for the most part with the sober and sensible. Upon this orderly scene brought one or more of the great typical is . representatives of human folly. In some cases it is an old entertaining figure revived, the exacting and anxious miser, for example, or the voluble braggart. also incarnates as the faux divot and new its idea forms, such his victim, the critic of society turns a sour face on educator of But the comic a rich variety of itself in who conventions, the wrong-headed woman, the ready-tongued quack, the crazy pedant and the others. Nor the enlargement of the gallery of portraits the is only or the chief advance in the comedy of Moliere. fineness of the drawing what is fixes the eye. the old rigid abstractions has disappeared. remain, as all in a way Molifere's first of large is their function that satisfies all, all Typical they yet they are individualised : the conditions of the art.^ supremacy in the comic use of character in the selection of his types, amusing aspect inherent The All trace of is seen, which have each a in the character itself, and capable of being set forth in a sufiicient variety of manifestation. We see this at once by comparing his best- known characters with those of his predecessors. In Moliere we have, what Coleridge tells us is wanting in Ben Jonson, the presentation of the laughable defect as " a prominence ' Mr. Meredith touches on the way in which Moliere developed his characters out of persons known to him (op. cit., p. 53). MOLIERE'S COMIC PORTRAITURE growing out 365 and nourished by, the character which of, The simple-minded ambition circulates in it".^ still of the Bour- geois gentilhomme, the pious over-confidence of Orgon, the intractable misanthropy of Alceste — these, as traits broad- based in the chax-acter, offer large possibilities of comic development. The next point new to be noted in this of presentation of the character which in y/' is art is the mode to hold the eye The pointing effect of contrast what is noteworthy is the the method of contrasting. This amused contemplation. good present, as in all admirable simplicity of is is art ; rendered possible by the type selected and the point of To view adopted. Moli^re, the man taken with vain conceit, the opinionated prig, the unsociable critic of society and the socially are aberrations from rest, adapted person. The a normal type, the Harpagons, the Orgons, the Arnolphes, the Alcestes, the Sganarelles and the others, have their amusing lop-sidedness, their characteristic tendency swollen to the ridiculous proportions of a tumor, by the the normal members of defined from the set to first antithesis in society. which they are The orderly world, pleading for a reasonable accommodation to the usages of men, e.g., is sometimes represented by the judicious friend, Arnolphe Alceste, Madame Jourdain of Sganarelle ; ; and, and saucy maid, ; not seldom by the wife, e.g., by the brother, e.g., even by the privileged at other times now and e.g., again, of Orgon, of M. Jourdain. In this juxtaposition the comic poet exhibits clearly enough the anti-social tendency of the inflated characThe outrage to woman in the rigorous treatment teristic. of their wards by Arnolphe and Sganarelle, the harshness of demands on the high-spirited Alceste's ^ Lectv/res and Notes on Shakespeare, girl p. 416. he woos, THE LAUGHABLE 366 COMEDY IN ART: the menace in Jourdain's craze to the stability of the home, the cruel bearing of Harpagon's avarice on his son —all this is made quite plain to the spectator; and the exposure of tendency in maleficent this somehow attitude serves the perverse to strengthen the comic efiect.. In thus presentating the hypertrophy of a moral tendency, Molifere movement gives The avarice of Harpagon renders if this would ruin him. He other parts of the man. him fearful of takes that a theft, as as an insult that he should be called rich, asserting it " embodiment by to the organic action of the disordered part on disclosing the nothing is more false ". This points to that effect of perverted passion which Moliere everywhere emphasises, intellectual blindness, the result of a by compulsory ideas (idees mastery of the mind The often-quoted fixes). in- dication of mental deafness in Orgon, when, to the servant's announcement that illustrates the full mind from the he dreamily iterates the " and " Le pauvre homme his wife ejaculations " Et Tartuffe is ill, " ? ! comic value of such a detachment of realities which are seen by others to be rapping at the doors of sense. This state of the intelligence reduced to something re" sembling mono-ideism " carries with it The normally clear self-consciousness. a loss of the foolish Arnolphe, who, in order to guard himself against the risk of a faithless spouse, subjects the girl he means straints, has the delusion that the hyper-pedagogic note is soft wax.i when he unaware ' " wed to intolerable re- a great reformer, striking is mind made to says that a woman's is acting like a somnambulist, of the consequences of his actions. Comme un morceau Et to Here and elsewhere the spectator see that the queer creature quite he is je lui d.e oire entre puis donner la forme qui mes mains me plait." elle est, It thus HOW MOLIERE AVOIDS ABSTRACTION becomes an exhibition of human folly, 367 and of the and bombastic extravagance which are obliquity droll folly's inseparable concomitants. There is, no doubt, somewhat of abstraction and a tendency complete dominance To give here. to reduce intelligence to the menial position of its servant is to destroy the organic complexity of the man. covering the drollness of moral obliquity judged when still lives, it is in Harpagon's inquiry of his A ing about him. maid his may abstract is, indeed, naughty temper striking approach to the when M. Jourdain shows off to his wife and newly acquired superiority through the covery of the meaning of It lull of coachman, what people are say- more still There child's. something suggestive of the child in a his not adequately The simplified mechanism One might say that the mature mind in a sense. childish occurs is of un- called abstract. reduced to the level of the is method All the same, this " prose dis- ". be added that an escape from the rigidity of the is secured by the development of the obliquity As long as things are seen to grow, they are taken to The expansion of the ridiculous ambition of M. Jourdain endows him with a certain plenitude of life. It may all be very one-sided, and, by comparison with the life itself. be alive. of a normal man, remind us of the yet it is still machine and not a inflexibility of a a deranged organism that acts, mechanism.^ It is to be noted, too, that though they resemble distinctly morbid aberrations from the normal pattern, these characters do not reach to the full height of mania. M. Jourdain, no doubt, gets near the boundary that separates sanity from ^M. Henri Bergson (op. cit., chap, iii.) seems to me to push his helpful idea of a mechanical rigidity (raideur) in Moli^re's characters a far. little too TH^ LAUGHABLE 368 IN ART: COMEDY insanity in the closing scenes of the play intention is careful to keep the droll figure ; ^ but the comic on the right side of the boundary. A frequent termination of the action in this comedy is a climax, in which the folly of the comic character rises to an outburst so voluminous and torrent-Hke as to throw the onlookers in his world into uproarious mirth. befooling of M. Jourdain is an example. The final Moli^re was too artist, and too wise a man, to try in every case compass the end of " poetic justice " by giving to society good an to in its struggle with a mighty and obstinate perversion of liumanity more of a victory than the laugh. Unhappy Alceste has to rush into the desert without his Celimene amid the hilarity of onlookers. are no doubt found out unmasked and gets into trouble. of a general intention to punish. of his pious delusion by Arnolphe and Sganarelle and disappointed; and TartufFe Yet there is is no evidence Orgon, though he is cured a rough surgical operation, receives no more chastisement than M. Jourdain receives for having brouo'ht alien interests and an alien master into the home. Nor does even that embodiment of an ugly vice, Harpagon, get anything worthy of being called a trouncing. In all this, the master shows us keep at the point of view comic. how well he knew how to which he had selected as the Let us try to define this after our study of his plays. When we most contrast the world, quiet part, presented in these scenes of a play of Aristophanes, has been 1 an we are tempted to say, as said, that Molifere sets before everyday of The play plus fou, je life. and orderly for the comedies with the hurly-burly our eyes the Yet the comic figures blown out into closes with the " aside " of Covielle I'irai dire realities A. Rome ". : " Si Ton en peut voir MOLlfeRE'S POINT OF 369 volume are certainly not taken straight out of ridiculous They our familiar world. are always transformations, to they are the simplified embodiments of this extent, that fully VIEW developed tendencies which only show themselves germ-form, and complicated more or less by balancing in which tendencies, in the real world here. We seem thus thrown against a background There is of the real. In Molifere's plays, the source of laughter very intrusion of the ill-shapen into a community of well-rounded forms. It is the intruder on whose unpredictable the eye, for which he imaged said to be no anomaly here when once we get at the comic point of view. lies in this is have an element of the unreal to not made our expectation is background is set. fix world for The serious but does not take a strong hold of our there, is whom we antics in a minds: we are not greatly moved, for example, by the spectacle of the sufferings of the daughters and the wards of testy old gentlemen, or even of the wearing housewifely Madame anxieties of which the absurdly Jourdain. ill-fitted is The proper world, here pitchforked, is into but a background, rendering the valuable service of backgrounds by throwing for into relief and so sharply defining the which the spectator's eye It is hardly is an exaggeration to say that the whole plot of one of these comedies consists in the showing up of the grotesque unsuitability of the comic character to ment. It groups its persons and arranges with the intention of demonstrating the its its move about understand and again mirth, is why in our ordered world. environ- scenes as futility of attempt of this droll figure, lop-sided, and of an gait, to form accommodated. awkward This helps us to Moliere, though, as observed above, he resorts to older if the now and more elemental sources of able to be so economical in the use of disguises 24 THE LAUGHABLE 370 COMEDY IN ART: improbable encounters, and of the other mechanical of The devices of the entertaining show. seem to selves as well as the action mental the facts, Thus, one situations them- arise out of the funda- given characters and their relations. hardly surprised to find Harpagon in the is ignoble part of a money-lender, to whom the son he has pinched betakes himself. The enjoyment a trained faculty. comedy here provided presupposes of the There must be the quick observant eye that catches in side-glance accommodated mixed a all tone, for a blend The sentiment. the relations, and yet remains for the laughable. serious is There no place for is of laughter with melancholy envisaged less as the serious, than as the framework within which the comic figure moves. The mood is one of a purely gay observation, which has no room for pity, indignation, or any other emotion which is ; brightly and coldly intellectual ; which is content with just looking and being amused. For a right understanding of the scope of laughter in comedy, we need to glance at another of In the so-called "Comedy its developments. of Manners," as illustrated in the English plays of the Restoration, we have undoubtedly do with a very special trend of the comic to spirit. In the art of Moli^re we have for the most part the presentation of an individual grotesquely transformed from the common social type which surrounds him. in a few comedies, as Les ridicules, that we have Femmes savantes " sensible world, against less In these, the which the cultivation the fine shades " looks so entertaining, though, of course, Pricieuses spread out for mirthful contempla- tion the characteristics of a set of persons. moderate It is only and Les immediately and is still of indicated, fully. In the plays of Congreve and his contemporaries, we meet THE COMEDY OF MANNERS with a comic treatment of more widespread The sources the hour. There is manners " of of their fun are pretty obvious. something of the utter abandonment to disorder and revelry which we met with phanes.^ " 371 The ordered world, with works in the its of Aristo- interaction of The characters, seems blotted out of existence. normal plot is, as with Plautus, a love-intrigue, and has much of the coarseness and the degradation of situation which mark the popular comedy. Latin feature that Yet frees it it is at men from least marked off by the the sordid business of send- ing menials to bid for the prize, and sets them face to face with the women they again, are not are bent on obtaining. shy maids, but range from experienced wives to the woxild-be simpletons fresh are, The women, They make good show from the country. moreover, while saucy and disposed to untrammelled by any sentimental or other of resistance, attachment to their chains. seems undeniable that this It make good and claims to be entertaining. its stirring " artificial " comedy can It has vivacity movement, the full frolicsomeness of the and it abounds in scenes of voluminous practical joke, gaiety. is Its dialogue at its best has, along an unmistakable ness, But how are we to no ordered world with its coarse- brilliance of wit. define the point of as background? view where there There seems no question here of laughing at the affectations of a few, who are viewed as comic aberrations type. The whole world is affected from a reasonable with frolicsome dis- order. We the are not spectators now for concerned with the mental attitude of whom these comedies were written. ^Mr. Meredith remarks that it was "here and there Bacchanalian beyond the Aristophanio example" (op. cit., p. 11). THE'LAUGHABLE 372 To them, no COMEDY IN ART: doubt, the spectacle was a merry one as bringing a sense of relief from the gloom of the Puritan's may, as Taine suggests, have been served up as a kind of " Appetitsbischen " between meals, in order reign. It the gallants to stimulate the palates of the theatre to ; though it is difficult who frequented to attribute this function what by common consent was intended to provoke What is of more importance is to get the point of view of Charles Lamb and others who avow mirthful laughter. at comedy that they find a true Lamb here. man himself has told us what attitude a He bring to the appreciation of this comedy. is should to regard these " sports of a witty fancy " as " a world of themselves much as fairyland ". His moral feelings are left home with his morning suit. He goes to the play in almost as at order "to escape from the pressure of reality". For him the figures that pursue one another across the stage have no moral substance, and are proper subjects neither for approval nor for disapproval. In other words, Lamb us that the comedy of Congreve and his school is taken as a pure sjiow, holding no relations to the tells to be real, everyday world. This view has been Essay, as subversive Restoration is and intention spumed by Macaulay, in a well-known of morals. To him, the comedy of the a thing that ; is inherently anti-moral in spirit and he proceeds to pound it with weighty invectives. The argument would have been relevant had been a practical one of this kind : if shall the question we put this comedy on the stage to-day for our boys and girls to see it ? As against Lamb's plea it seems to me to be a curious When, for example, Macaulay case of missing the point. complains that in these comedies the husbands are treated VIEWS OF LAMB AND MACAULAY as objects of contempt 373 and aversion, whereas the gallants he might have are decked out with all the graces, re- and bethought him that this was an elementary condition of the artificial world, which His answer to Lamb, is created solely for amusement. membered the old Gontes now and that recollections of morality do steal fantastic this contention, creators world, does not touch the and only shows were not perfect architects, ground, dimly perceived, even here is : Lamb says, a sense which we know cannot at bottom, as from rules real world. we But and this idea of combine tried to is still in the back- the fun of the thing of momentary escape be set aside in the an escape implies that what from must not be dragged into the show. fly Our study of comedy and of the sources of laughter has prepared us to accept Lamb's view. appeals to the may main (so far as it is just) that the The moral order incompatible styles. then into latter's man in the play-mood. see the fun of the turbulent Even when he of Molifere he does not take the waxing indignant, is When spectacle there, he world of Aristophanes and not be troubled by the thought of its realisation. The comic of the undesirability entertained background quite by a play seriously, sympathy with Harpagon's illused son, or with M. Jourdain's ill-used wife. The least swerving from the point of view of comedy, a turn of the mental " eye-glass," would spoil all. He would begin, say, in with Rousseau, to protest against presenting so good a man Alceste in as comedy appeals a ludicrous light. to the the temporary inhibition of It is, The Restoration simplified by same playful mood all outside tendencies. I conceive, a profound error to suppose that either the writer of a comedy or his audience is at the point of view, envisaging behaviour as morally moral commend- ^ THE LAUGHABLE 374 Possibly, the influence of the didactic able or the opposite. morality on early modern comedy this error. COMEDY IN ART: may have helped to foster It is true that Moliere finds his Yet the in certain defects of character. comic material made by selections comic art are not determined by As hinted above, very small and comparatively harmless vices degrees of may moral turpitude. be preferred as having the drollest look on the stage.^ Vanity, the richest of all moral blemishes in comic its and therefore greatly employed by comedy, both ancient and modern, is not judged as heinously possibilities, immoral, like hatred and cruelty, for example.^ may suflice to show how wide an This interval separates the point of view of the spectator of a comedy from that of the moral judge. It seems to me to be much more correct to say, with M. Bergson, that comedy takes up the social rather than the By this moral point of view. I mean that the comic poet is thinking of the look of things to the trained apperceptive organ of the kind of person, according as social appear to be well or ill adapted to the common they practices and opinions of society as discerned and interpreted by more intelligent representatives. social point of view, I must not be taken to mean that either the author or the spectator of the comic scene judging of the behaviour of social values. There is, modem variety, including some plays figures by is seriously a reference to this, not comedy, but in the later serious of Moliere; but the art-impulse it is clear, • See above, p. 92 '^ Coleridge saw clearly enough its basis. of where its undoubtedly, an approach to only in the early of the writer, its Yet, in speaking of the prevents the approximation f. He remarks that the how far comedy is from making morality new comedy of Menander and the whole modern comedy (Shakespeare excepted) is based on rules of prudence and Notes on Shakespeare, Bell's Edition, 1884, p. 191). (Lectures THE SOCIAL POINT OF VIEW view from becoming a of points of Comedy addresses itself to a tion which, though mood 375 loss of distinctness of esthetic contempla- has room for keen penetration, and it even for a dim discernment of a serious import in the back- ground of the puppet show, remains on the whole a playful The spectator is agreeably occupied with the look of things and such social consciousness as is awake in him serves merely to give to his perceptions a precise measure of attitude. ; the seemly, or at most to enable him to glimpse of a sharply corrective expression in the something puckered visage of the comic showman.^ In comedy, the moral comes into view as " mores," as a part, and a principal part, of the customary, as we have it in a civilised society. Yet it is not disengaged and held up as moral. Moli^re, the Comedian of Society par excellence, shows us clearly enough that he is not trying to distinguish the more permanent and universal basis of society in morality from the variable accidents which enter into the manners of The "gushing" mode of by mere acquaintances which irritates Alceste a particular society at a given date. accost adopted is accepted by the poet because as a fashion as a standard of the fitting, just it is a social institution, to be good- naturedly accepted by the social kind of person. M. Jourdain tries to step When out of his bourgeois rank, the laughter he provokes depends primarily on the unseemliness of his ambition. Yet, at the end of the nineteenth is so common we have almost century in Paris or London, such ambition and meets with so large a success that forgotten to smile at Moli^re as a " it. Hence, when Taine talks of philosopher " illustrating " universal truths," he commits an error which may be pardoned, as due to the natural inclination to stretch the achievement of a great ' Cf. supra, p. 139. THE LAUGHABLE 376 What compatriot. 1 COMEDY IN ART: Molifere does is to secure for the rather oddly formed group of customs and practices adopted by the particular society he depicting, adequate exponents, is who, in their advocacy of the system against the social socially perverse, not only disengage and give clearness to the unwritten laws, but may— so long as they do not raise the question of their deeper grounds by —seek to recommend them the most enlightened presentment of the common-sense attitude. Now, in substituting the social for the moral point of view, the writer of comedy necessarily tends to slacken Nothing comes out the cords that bind us in society. more plainly in accommodation of The author plays than the good-natured Moliere's social human requirements to infirmities. distinctly rejects the idea of going above this standard, of trying to improve on customs social —for example, in the comic treatment of Alceste and of Arnolphe. At heart, like Roman his with indulgence against all large tolerance, the readiness to of the easy man of the world. years old So it ; us into an easy frame of mind, in which From manners this point of view, is character as who is we we may it It may adopt the social point of view. ' twenty are perfectly see that the comedy of from that of breaks with the moral order of stable societies, no doubt, and turns Yet " is it is. often maintained. rudely on this order. sides has the written to put not, fundamentally, so different is He excuse and to pass by, must be for comedy content with the world as takes C^lim^ne's coquetries, for example, are accepted as natural in one ". he predecessors, irksome restraint. still, That its back rather in a sense, be said to is to say, it envisages Mr. Meredith is nearer the mark Hist, of Eng. Lit., Bk. III., ohap. i. poet as being " in the narrow field, or enclosed when he speaks of the oomio square of the society he depicts " (op. cit., p. 85). SLACKENING OF SOCIAL CORDS the seemly as that which which happens fitness like that of the savage is, band, for in this whom standard of Its of Moli^re, the customs Macaulay expresses so droU a concern, who becomes the inverted world The large indulgence person. and sour-tempered and suspicious hus- It is the of the tribe. with the code of manners falls in obtain at the time. to 377 common pansion of the indulgence anti-social of this society to Terence is kind of but an ex- and to Moli^re. A sub-conscious awareness of the topsy-turvyness of things is with us as inversion — we look to take serious views In saying that in and the quaint fancifulness ; only like if — Lamb we of the moment distinctly refreshing. is we go can refuse for a meet comedy in the play-mood, to which our habits of moral approbation and disapprobation, and even of estimation more or of social values, are lulled to a sleep profound, less is it not meant that these serious tendencies in us can be ignored by the writer of comedy. As implied above, they mould our forms of the seemly, un- knowingly to us perhaps, even as we And look. more, though inhibited by the play-like mood, they have force and ; showman go should the too far, say in the direction of stripping off the veil of decency, they may wake up and make an end Just as tragic fear of the comic enjoyment. and pity may obtrudes itself, view its laughter. give way so when to physical revulsion in when horror comedy the unclean thrusts ugly head, a sort of physical revulsion The may latitude in these matters conceded to time to comic art will, it is into silence from time evident, vary greatly with the particular ratio between the vigours of the mirthful and moral tendencies. The presentation on the stage us, a is of the comic aspects of men's behaviour narrowly limited. whole people may have a As Sainte-Beuve reminds fit (acoes) of mania. If THE LAUGHABLE 378 this as happen to situation and Indeed, character. " if a person " he will not And by numerous resemblances. have given elements of Jingoism will read Moliere's plays figures shall above, unmistakable been in the midst of a wild head we be the war-fury pointed out COMEDY IN ART: who us, comic has just without losing his fail to be struck here, as in comedy, the have their comical contours and poses thrown into by a social background, as much superior to any single community at a particular moment, as a community to one of its members. Yet no national comedy could in these days foUow Aristophanes and use such promising material, nor are we likely as yet to have a comedy for the civilised world. relief Before leaving comedy, which seem literature we may glance at other forms of approach to point of view. Of comedy of recent times seems more important to its certain kinds of the so-called serious I do not propose to speak. remark that prose fiction the comic point of view. It may now and It again draw near sometimes presents us with a texture of fantastic situations and adventures which reminds us of the Aristophanean burlesque, as in the "Tartarin" series of Alphonse Daudet. This type of fiction gives us elemental laughter, uncomplicated reflection may — though steal by anything in the nature of sad humour Or the tone of the story may approach more sedate comedy, making, indeed, the one a little of the tenderness of in. that of the hardly distinguishable from the other, save through the narrative form. This novels of Miss Austen. holds good, for example, of the The social point of defined and steadily adhered to, and view critical is sharply reflection is confined to the rdle of giving a fuller and more lucid interpretation of the standards of the society illustrated. The comic point of view may intrude, too, and tend to become supreme in fiction which has something of the COMIC POINT OF VIEW deeper and more thrilling import. It present, at times at least, to Balzac, it is employment 37& seems to have been But new and and to Thackeray. we may study in Mr. Meredith's novels that a finer IN FICTION a of the comic attitude in connection with The very subjects the more enthralling kind of interest. —for example, the egoist entangled in the situation which makes large demands system of his for consideration own soaring than his concoction client quences to his family ; ; ; the father with a pedagogic the tailor more successful in M. Jourdain, with certain conse- the gallant cadet of an ancient house with the zeal of radicalism affected —these sound like the And though the writer may allow the humour to be heard now and again he gives comedy. titles of reedy tone of prominence to the fluty note of comedy, with and too. clearness, and something of its its simplicity sound of sharp correction, Occasionally indeed, as in Beauchamp's Career, this characteristic note will be distinctly heard at the end of a story which closes on a tragic disaster. Yet a closer inspection will view of these writers poet, it remains may distinct. show that though the point of approximate to that of the comic This distinctness, moreover, is not due merely to the presence of a large serious interest which gives gravity to the story. It arises out of the circumstance that the writer of prose fiction, by addressing himself to the reflective mood of a solitary reader, and not to the appercep- tive attitude of a spectator, will, even in presenting the comic aspects of his subject, unavoidably tend to transcend the standards of fitness adopted by a particular community, substituting for these the ideal standards of a community of the wise and good. In comedy we have the appeal to laughter in its purity, the child's laughter at the funny show guided by an gent grasp of social customs. It addresses itself to the- intelli- THE LAUGHABLE 380 IN ART: COMEDY many, united by common modes of judgment and a common standard of The writer who amuses us may seem, of another kind. least, to Literature gives us, however, appeals fitness. at be very far from the social point of view, and the mood he induces may be by no means that of pure gaiety. After what has been said in the preceding chapter, a few words must suffice to indicate these other literary expres- sions of the laughing spirit. We may tone (a) : distinguish two main varieties of this mixed the combination of laughter with the attitude of serious attack, as illustrated in satire ; (6) its combination with meBjOwing feelings in what we have recognised as modern humour. The distinguishing note of satire is the angry one of reproHere vices and follies are no longer set before us as bation. a diverting spectacle, but emphasis indignity. judge ; The satirist is at is laid on their moral the point of view of the moral only, instead of the calmness of the judge, he has something of the fierce attitude of the prosecutor who aims at exposing and denouncing the turpitude of an ofience. This being so, we see that laughter enters into satire as an expression of contempt and ment. It assumes its ridicule or derision. as an instrument of punish- most pungent and most dreaded form, It is thus less a spontaneous feeling than a volitional process satirist he controls his personal indignation by an : the satirist wills to mock. As artistic purpose, such a presentment of his victim as will excite in his hearers or readers the full laughter of contempt. Hence, the large license he takes, in the employment of exaggeration and the devices of caricature, in the in- vention of degrading situations, and in the appropriation of humiliating comparison, figure of speech and the other resources of his art. LAUGHTER IN SATIRE It is clear that the mirthful spirit itself to the purpose of to the point of or with Swift it thus lends damaging attack becomes modified To laugh with Juvenal transformation. to feel is more of a bitter malignity than of We may say that satire gaiety. when 381 takes us back to the brutal laughter of the savage standing jubilant over his prostrate Or we may foe. describe the laughter as a feeling of "sudden glory" deeply tinged by the dominant angry attitude of the laugher. Yet the intrusion of laughter into invective, just because it is the solvent of all serious moods, tends, as we have seen, Hence the gamut of dissimilar tones in satire, which at the one end is furiously denunciatory, at the other almost playful and to develop, if only for an instant, a lighter tone. The early popular "farce" of mocking and ironical speeches, and the good-temperedly jocular. the Greeks, with satirical its songs of the Middle Ages were apparently pieces of rollicking fun, like the the satirical note was comedy Where, however, the composition serious purpose may which of Aristophanes, in half -drowned in buiFoonish laughter. is palpably a satire, the be seen to dominate and to colour the whole expression. The characteristics of satire, thus roughly indicated, hold good alike whether the vices exposed be those of an dividual, of a social class, of a society at a particular or of mankind as a whole. In any case, the point of clearly that of a supposed moral judge in- moment, view is and sentencer. The presence of a purpose of serious exposure is not by any means equally clear in all cases whence the denotation of the term satire is not sharply bounded. Comedy itself ; has been said to have a strong satirical element, and this seems certainly true of the compositions of Aristophanes, which, as Bergk remarks, contain in their mixture of tones THE LAUGHABLE 382 COMEDY IN ART: ' and a " bitter irony "} Romances, as pictures of men and their manners, are often described as satirical, presumably because a free delineation of human vices is taken to imply the condemnatory attitude and the a " biting scorn " intention to castigate. Yet here the castigation may be of the mildest, as in Gil Bias, which, according to Sainte- Beuve, does not hold up wicked and M. Taine dulness.^ men in the mass to ridicule as but rather exposes their meanness and foolish, finds the satirist's lash laid on heavily in the English school of fiction, even in the writings of Thackeray.^ Yet judgments as to a on the prevailing tone seem subjective and Satire proper, is of the world where the purpose whom he portrays are apt to capricious. a very different thing. Juvenal, of writer's intention based We of ridicule sit He is works satire the its of always in a strangely on his lips more serious and poignant a shrill note of malignity from this confessed, see this in the Prof. Tyrrell writes, " rage and a laugh seems to is In ".* laugh takes mental entourage. on- The virulence of the satire of antiquity has since been softened. This frequently effected by allegorical disguise. is mediaeval satires, the fable of the Fox, are examples. and The such as that on cunning and treachery in The satires of Voltaire of the English satirists, including the bitter and un- sparing Swift, illustrate the same tendency. This throwing of a fierce attack, whether political or moral, into the form of an allegory, though the veil point. blow of the assault, really it gives seems to it more In the attacks of derision, at least, a back-handed may shoulder. 1 direction often hurt more than one straight from the The reader's satisfaction includes Op. cit; Bd. IV., B. 2. 'Hist, of Eng. Lit., vol. 2 no doubt an See his " Notice " to Gil Bias, pp. iv., p. 173. * Op. cit., p. 240. xii, xiii. DEGREES OP VIRULENCE SATIRE IN element of admiration for the finesse of art 383 yet more : Swift could not have shown us the seems to be involved. absurdities in our social and political institutions half as well by any them direct attack on shown us by The indignity of as he has the indirect attack in Gulliver's Travels. made a familiar vice or folly seems to be is thus ridiculed under the guise of some Further, our laughter at the vice new it semblance. reinforced is when palpable by that which comes from the detection of the make-believe of The playful element probably takes on the allegory. something of malice from the prevailing tone of the satire, and in the end we may laugh yet more cruelly at the victim who ever being anew detected, so to speak, under the is literary mask. Much simile, satire. the same kind of remark applies to the effect of innuendo, irony, and We have But the head of Comedy. word commonly is all that we mean by wit in touched on the playful side of wit under this is only a part of Even implies. what the in comic dialogue there women something of attack, and the witty of the Re- tongue. and other writers have now and again a rasping Yet it is in satire that we see the deep malignity of wit. The witty sarcasms storation of Voltaire to be imps of malice disguised as toys. meaning out verbal slip of and the rest seem The sally of cruel what looks harmless nonsense, or a mere — as in the polished rebuke of a Master of Trinity to a too confident Junior Fellow, —has the youngest of us"that of a direct mode " we are all fallible, even a wounding force greater than of statement. The efiect is still greater where failure and disgrace are exhibited under a thin ironical veil of glorious achievement, as in Pope's lines on the Lord Mayor's Show be the finest piece of wit he —said knew : by Leigh Hunt to THE LAUGHABLE 384 Now night But In all COMEDY IN ART: descending the proud scene is o'er, numbers one day more. lives in Settle's such ironical inversion the satirist manages by a suggestion of the worthy and honourable to drive with added force the humiliating truth of Cicero, apropos of an elderly but forty years old " : I ; dame who must believe her say so any time these ten years "} as in the home remark said that she her, for I was have heard The presentation in something hidden, immediately followed by an uncovering, may evoke an echo of the " bo-peep" laugh of this case of infancy, which should, one supposes, tend to introduce a milder and playful tone into the attack yet, owing to the ; predominance of the attitude of fierce derision, this very element of playfulness appears, somehow, to give a new pungency to the satirical thrust. Nothing could be more unlike the laughter of virulent satire than that provoked by the expression of humour in literature. As our analysis would lead us to expect, we humorous writer the mellowing influences find in the truly of good nature and sympathy, and a large understanding and acceptance of that against which he pokes fun. While satire, sarcasm and their kind seem to be trying to push things away, or at least to alter them, humour, curiously enough, looks as which if it entertains illustrate these it. tendencies, the humour quality of were tenderly holding to the world Yet while all humorous writings is subjective and personal seen in the circumstance that every writer brings to bear on what he sees a new temper and attitude. The contrast view may be ' of the satirical and the humorous point of conveniently studied by glancing at the current Quoted hy Bacon, Essays, " Apothegms," 181. WIT AND HUMOUR 385 and much-discussed distinction between wit and humour. That these do not logically make a pair of contrasting Per- species has been implied in our analysis of the two. haps nowhere do we find the more strangely misled by the words than in this case. human mind to have been fact of the existence of two Wit, as essentially a manner of deportment of the intelligence, can stand in no simple and direct relation to No an emotional mood like humour. doubt there are facts which give colour to the idea of an opposition in Thus, this case. it is indubitable that whereas humour specially favours certain kinds of imaginative and reflective activity, wit seems always to prefer, even in its play, the distinction wit which is something in the shape of an incisive But logical process.^ is I suspect that the deeper ground of to be found in the circumstance that the most effective in its stroke, brilliant, of keenest edge, appears always to grow out and most of, and so becomes associated with, those moods of satire and mordant mockery, to which humour as good-natured and tolerant directly opposed. So it is is with the wit of Voltaire and of others of his century. A closer examination will, however, show that there is nothing incompatible between the humorous sentiment and the witty mode of behaviour of the intellect. As play indeed, wit quite naturally allies itself to the attitude of humour. It will be found that much that is commonly described as wit discloses the softening effect of humour, and might, indeed, just as well be called an illustration of Those who really know the Irish will sometimes hesitate whether to speak of their wit or of their humour. humour. The same 1 This is allied is applies, I feel sure, to a large well illustrated by George Eliot, to ratiocination {Essays, " who German Wit," 25 number of Shake- observes rightly that wit p. 81). THE LAUGHABLE 386 speare's " witticisms ".^ when, set in the fierce In mood IN ART: all COMEDY such cases, the wit, which of the satirist has a nasty sting, may take on omething of tempered by an infusion of not only becomes harmless, but when positive kindliness "He is The remark apropos genial humour. person, it of a very correct may has not one redeeming vice," may even, in illustrate the come into a laugh which tells against the humorist, as in the observation of an idler, " I don't like working between my meals "? point. It Yet though in this harmless form, their well-marked forms thus dissimilar, the satirical and the humorous the other in a boundary line. way mood may shade one makes Heine, in some that it difficult to into draw the of his writings, e.g., the poem Deutschland, tempers his mockery with sentiment and humour in such a way that one finds it hard to think of it In places, indeed, this genius, so simple- as a satire. looking yet really so profound, seems to become a con- summate humorist, bringing out with a the laughter and a satirist when he threw behind single touch all Was Lewis Carroll the fun of his children's this playful child's II the tears of things. some deeper meaning which for ever eludes us ? or semblance of a meaning a part of his fun, his stories was all way book of punishing the " grown up " for reading a ? — late Henry Sidgwiok no admitted that several quotations which he had proffered as examples of wit might with equal appropriateness be described as humorous. The germ of the view put forward in the text is contained in some pithy remarks by the late Professor Minto (English Prose Literature, mean remember disoussing the point with the authority —^who Introduction, p. 23). humour and wit, regarded as subjective, Considered objectively as an attribute of a character, wit of a kind may become one ingredient in a humorous presentation, as in the homely and rather born4 wit of the countryfolk in the novels of George Eliot and Mr. Hardy. ^ The reference in the text as elements in the writer. is to HUMOUR SATIRE AND In modern 387 literature, the interesting point to note is the growing interpenetration of the laughing and the serious attitude, and the coalescence of the mirthful spirit with sentiment. The two processes, may on together, as we though distinct, may run The see in Shakespeare's plays. humorous element introduced by the fool in "Lear" and where at once relieves else- the tragic tension, and gives a moment's play to that disposition towards a lighter laughing criticism which is always active when we survey colossal even though the mental eye folly, for its is at the moment The laughter catastrophic effects. is focussed controlled and kept tenderly humorous and half -sad by a large reflection, which does not lose sight, the lamentable ruin. the " fun " and the " pity genial humour follower of when way of combining the master brings a so merrily entertains us. seen, prose-fiction and something of the laughter comes into modate it into who As we have plot " comedy and makes us, with his faithful Bardolph, half-love and more than half-pity the faulty knight spirit even at the relieving moment, of It is only another itself to it may fiercer illustrate the temper of satire. Yet It has to accom- in another form. the presence of serious interests, and of a which involves sympathetic fear and strain. appears in stories which have a mixed tone, as indeed in comedy " comic when this is not heroic comedy," as illustrated the guise of humour. That is pure — for Hence it it does example, — by M. Rostand's Cyrano to say, its gay treble note in is complicated by an undertone, a resonance of the sadness of its milieu. One needs only to think how one laughs at Moses and his purchase of spectacles in the Vicar of Wakefield, A in or at the disfigurement of the hero in Cyrano. novel may, of course, present the grave and the gay mere juxtaposition, so that the interaction and modi- THE LAUGHABLE 388 COMEDY spoken of are only very imperfectly fieation here The notion IN ART: good story entertained by many of a realised. is of one that bears the imagination of the reader swiftly through a series of diverse scenes, A and mirthful need. are now grave and modem large part of pathetic, Stories of wild adventure from Gil Bias to "humorous" now gay fiction satisfies this to the multitude in this sense. Tom Jones Even in the case of a real humorist like Dickens, whose amusing figures are there to touch the heart as well as to enter- tain the imagination, the perfect harmonising of tones A sometimes seem to be wanting. may humorist of another complexion, Laurence Sterne, seems to have missed the judicious mixture of laughter and sentiment in his Senti- mental Joit/rney} The art of humorous writing characters, incidents hibit the intimate connections and that which touches the pity; and to develop the sustains the mood consists in part in selecting and the rest in such a is as to ex- between that which amuses serious sentiments, respect reflective of humour. Vicar and his family way and consciousness which Goldsmith's history of the one of the best examples. Scott's Antiquary and Fielding's Parson Adams are characters which and win at once entertain volve, as Leigh Hunt has within the characters, Parson Adams ;^ e.g., us. Such humorous types in- pointed out, a striking contrast the gUuible and the manly in and the sharpness of this contrast turns on that of the feelings excited by the constituents. The by humorous fiction may be consciously the manner of the Merry Knight, or wholly characters selected amusing, after unconscious of their laughter-provoking power. A valuable part of this amusing portraiture consists in bringing out 1 See Mr. Traill's criticism, Sterne, p. 156 " Wit and Himuywr, p. 11. fi. HUMOUR the fresh and odd-looking dividuals, but of classes IN FICTION 389 characteristics not only of in- and even of races. In addition to this objective presentation of the humorous and its relations, the writer may further by striking now and again undertones of quaint and so introducing an element of subjective The notion that such reflection is out of place aspects of character the effect reflection humour. in narrative art of literature. seems strange to a student of the history If there was room comments for the of the onlooking chorus in Greek drama, and for the yet deeper by the acting onlookers in Shakespeare's room for it in a prose narrative. In reflections supplied plays, there should be truth, some of the best writers of fiction, Fielding, Thackeray and George Eliot among others, make excellent use of reflective named accompaniment. writer In the best works of the we have something this last- of Shakespeare's art of adding a pregnant observation which, so far from disturbthe ing, rather furthers mood needed for a due appreciation of the action. In the great humorous writings, those of Rabelais, Cervantes and —removed by an interval no doubt —Sterne, we appear to find presented a largeness of subject and of treatment which makes direct appeal as as to perception. You must know much to reflection the Middle Ages, which you will even you must envisage Don Quixote and two individuals or even as two types of are being laughingly kicked aside, before care for Gargantua his squire, not as ; as embodiments of two remote levels of and more, of two opposed ways of looking at the world, before you will begin to feel all the humour of these And so of the great contrast between Mr. juxtapositions. Shandy and his brother, the Captain. There is no need character, but culture, for the interpolation of reflection: the scale, the breadth THE LAUGHABLE 390 COMEDY IN ART: of treatment, the wealth of ideas poured out, these compel us to The laughter which comes from the percep- reflect. tions of the utter incongruity of the and attached structures thus juxtaposed And this reflection. even is mental and moral is saturated with more, so right, so likeable, so estimable each of these contrasting characters, with marked temper and maniere de go out towards both. Thus we voir, its well- that our sympathies leave the perceptual level and the relative point of view of comedy far behind us, reaching a standpoint near that of the thinker who embraces and yet may manage to have When, as in Jean Paul's the end. particular points of view, all his own laugh Siebenkds, in and yet more clearly in Carlyle's Sartor Besartus, the contrast seems to open up the great collision in human experience between sentiment and prosaic reality, idealism and the earth-binding instincts of practical life, we stand, indeed, on the border-line between the humour of fiction and that of philosophy. Humour has its place, a respectable one too, in essays and other forms of literature which deal directly with reality and are products not so much of imagination as of thought. In these, the contrast between the serious and the playful appears in transitions from a perfectly grave to a humorous kind of Marked difierences of tone are observThe humorous remark may be but a momen- reflection. able here also. tary diversion of the attention, a playful side-glance, in a serious argument. Browne and of In some writings, e.g., those of Sir Thos. Lamb, the humorous element hardly amounts momentary interruption, but is to a digression, or even to a fused into and half lost to sight in the serious argument.^ Among more living, ^ recent writers, too, we have admirable examples including some yet of historical narrative See Canon Ainger's Introduction to The Essays of Elia, p. 8. HUMOUR may of GRAVER WRITINGS 391 up here and there with soft glow-worm humour. In other cases, the humorous feature and criticism points IN lit be so large as to modify the colour of the whole, as in Miss Kingsley's again, may Travels in West Africa. be as a whole a jett d'esprit An Essay, and the fun seem manner is throughout that more subtle work, as some to preponderate, while the of grave argument of Charles Lamb's, or, ; it in may be best described as fun sand- wiched in between a look of seriousness on the surface, and a who writers A meaning below. real seriousness of tones leaves much to be The desired in the case fusion of of many are popularly regarded as skilled humorists. mere interruption of serious thought by a sort of playful " aside " which does not prove the existence of the gift of humour, is essentially the power of playing on moods not only dissimilar but usually antagonistic in a avoids all shock and sense of discontinuity. way that 392 CHAPTER XII. ULTIMATE VALUE AND LIMITATIONS OP LAUGHTER. Our study has taken us through various regions of research. In looking for the germ of laughter we found ourselves in In the wide and misty plains of biological speculation. we took tracing its development a dip into the pleasant and anthropology, and then tried Having to climb the winding paths of social evolution. reached in this way the heights of modern civilisation, we vales of child-psychology made a special investigation into the social organisation of laughter, as represented in the art of comedy, gradual appearance of a new type and into the of laughter, essentially individual and independent of the social standard, to which is given the name of humour. discovery we have kept Throughout this voyage of view the question of the function in of the laughing spirit in the life of the individual the community. more It remains to determine this function precisely. In order to assign its proper place and its large spiritual tendency such as runs through we must more is and of for a diflScult moment push our value to a human mirth, investigation into a yet and obscure region, that of philosophy. To necessary for more than one reason. begin, we This can hardly hope to reach a clear view of the worth of the laughing impulse without the help of some clearly thought view of life as a whole ; and such a " Weltanschauung PHILOSOPHIC POINT OF VIEW 393 seems only to be attainable at the level of philosophic There reflection. is, however, a second reason for entering more remote and private domain this sophy a carrying forward to is its of knowledge. velopment of that individual criticism of as we far It would thus seem to be desirable to inquire along the road of philosophic speculation this companionship of the mirthful is with which, life, have seen, the quieter tones of laughter associate themselves. how Philo- highest point of de- may This inquiry possible. spirit in her quieter mood conveniently be pursued at once as supplementary to our discussion of humour. As pointed out in the chapter on the subject, reflective humour grows out of a mutual approximation of two tendencies w^ch seem to the unexamining person to be directly namely, the wholly serious turn antagonistic, for wise and the playful bent towards laughter. In philosophic humour, touched on in our survey of the laughable reflexion in literature, this antagonism seems at first sight to be particularly sharp. The plain man, to whom philosophic speculation presents itself as something remote from human a shock interests as he conceives of them, when he hears that at least, if not of a laugh it may all well receive holds potentialities of a smile —for the person who engages in and not merely for him who looks on. It seems to be incumbent on us, therefore, to try to make this drawing together of impulses which look the occupation, that so hostile a little The humorist, is more as to say, intelligible. we have viewed him, is able through the development of his individuality to detach himself many of the common judgments and much of the laughter of the particular community of which he member. tion, He develops his own amusing mode of from common is a contempla- which involves a large substitution for the standards VALUE AND LIMITATIONS OF LAUGHTER 394 of custom of reason. to and " common-sense," of the ideal standards The habit of philosophic thought may be said complete this uplifting of the individual to ideal heights^ and concomitant process, the expansion of the view of its A the irrational, the essentially unfitting, the amusing. word must suffice way to indicate the in which it doe& this. Philosophy, as sciences, we know, going boldly beyond the special pushes on to a deeper knowledge of things, and of what we these in their totality, of call has to envisage things in a effort it the universe. way sopher may do of things by a essentially different The from that of everyday observation. In this modem philo- his best to reach his conception of the reality careful analysis of experience; yet in the end his theory seems to have transformed our familiar world beyond the possibility of recognition. In this philosophic re-construction of the real world, his relation to nature, and It illustrates a powerful tendency to sidered. man, have to be re-con- his history view human and experience as a phase of a larger cosmic movement determined by an ideal end. The introduction of ideal con- life ceptions, by lifting us above the actual, seems to throw upon the latter an aspect of littleness, of futility, of something like the dishonour of failure. The ideal requirement proves hopelessly inapplicable to much, at least, of our everyday world ; so that, as long as familiar things with, —say the and a good deal we remain at its point of view, we happen to be thrown persons in ourselves, social experiments even long — take periods of history grow- popular thought," and ing out of some passing trend of " on the aspect of contradictions, of futile things that at least do not count, if they do not actually delay the fruition of the So, too, when philosophy becomes ideal. distinctly practical. IDEAS AS BELITTLING THINGS 395 Whether we take happiness or moral perfection realisation as the ideal which unfolds of the conduct much cluding shows Much under our eyes, we venture in- and apply an seriously to what men doubtful value, and at least of to be of itself itself of our own, begins to look sadly poor shabby, as soon as ideal as test. or self- end of men's conduct, a large part praise as virtue any at rate to have received a laudation quite disproportionate to its true worth. Lastly, this belittling effect of ideas on everyday realities is seen when philosophy human of which, constructs for us the ideal type of and of that confederacy society, now and again, it has had its of civilised states Under the common- dream. searching rays of these ideal conceptions even the " sense" to which "advanced" communities hold so tenaciously may begin to look something compacted rather of darkness than of The those light. situation would seem to offer room modes of transforming the aspects we have found for some of of things to be excitants of laughter. which If philoso- phic contemplation effects a reduction of great things to littleness, of substances to illusory shadows, of the elevated men to the level of barely passable dignities, it Yet the fact should, one may reason, help men to laugh. that a philosopher has been known to the ages as the laughing one suggests that mirth has not been a common glories of characteristic of his kind. In order to understand facts. a taste this, we must recall one or two For one thing, though seriousness may combine with for the laughable, it is and remains fundamentally opposed to the playfulness of mirth. serious persons arduous of : Philosophers are their constructive thought human activities, is of the most and imposes on those who \ VALUE AND LIMITATIONS OF LAUGHTER 396 undertake tion. an exceptional amount of serious concentra- it Little wonder, then, if marked fondness for the we playful. so rarely find in them a The great and ineradicable gravity of the philosopher has been sufliciently illustrated in his theoretic treatment of our subject. In addition to this general reason, there are others and variable ones, differing with the kind of philosophic creed adopted, and with the temperamental attitude of the indi- vidual towards it. To begin with differences of creed, we must remember that a philosopher's doctrine, while it may invest our common world and our common life with an may at the same time reduce these to mere semblances by setting them in contrast to the ideal region which it regards as the sphere of the veritable reahties. aspect of indignity, In this way, as in Plato's Idealism, we gious tendency to seeming lift evils of the a doctrine, if the may see a quasi-reli- follies, world to the sublime deceptions and Such verities. consistently held, reserves but a small place —save for laughter or escape. men above perhaps for the happy smile of release Plato, the thinker of many moods, was able to adapt his doctrine to attitudes widely different from the half-poetic, half-religious one to which on the whole he leaned; and some of these proved to be compatible with a delicate vein of mirth. Perhaps one munion with whom erring mortals height, : banter. the serene indifference of those on the and a mild good-natured What is itself interest in little difficult is seen to reconcile with their remote altitude and the detachment of ; what to the softer kind of ironical told us of the laughter of the deities always, perhaps, a proper to this find in Plato a the gods his spirit aspired below, which lends is may —to com—towards luckless and reflection of the different attitudes of being, either in its spirit which seems mocking virulence, or HIGH SPECULATION AND LAUGHTER in its close 397 good-natured familiarity, rather too suggestive of a attachment to our race ; for which reason, by the way, and still to philosophers, if they wish to soar god-wards keep a laughing down-glance on their fellows, should beware they soar too high. lest How high-pitched speculation tends to silence laughter by withdrawing the philosopher too far from the human scene may easily be seen by a glance at the historical schools. The Stoic and the Epicurean alike, widely dissimilar as were their views of the good and their moral tempers, took Aristotle had into seclusion them bidden the philosophic combine them participation in the social life about own manner, in his much discreet who remained with its in and much on the crowd. its the Yet striving after a passionless excluded the idea of a laughing, quite imperturbability, as a to realise its self-sufficiency of the unwise the Stoical temper, which life seeking, each ; There, no doubt, they reflected consolations. follies with as of a pitying, survey. Epicurean, though his theory of On life the other hand, the accentuated the value of the tranquil pleasures, did not apparently find in his Garden a corner for the quiet amusement of a laughter- bringing contemplation. In this mode way philosophy, of thought to dismiss it and a new and ideal common mode, is apt by substituting life for the and unreal, and so humanity just because as void of significance to be unable to laugh at ordinary has ceased to be interested in it. Yet all philosophising does not thus belittle the realm of reality, as common it men regard as realities temned as as rational it. Philosophers have been known to regard the same particular things that Plato mere shadows, and what the plain man to reconstruct con- and to justify accepts as his world. When VALUE AND LIMITATIONS OP LAUGHTER 398 this goes so far as to on the goodness of things insist human, and to say that the world as a whole is as perfect as it can be, and thus in a new way, as it would seem, to break away from common view, it the way seriously threatens Nothing, indeed, in the the locus standi of the laugher. would appear to be more fatal to mind than an out-and-out optim- of a theory of life a mirthful temper of the At most, laughter would take on the ism. aspect of the serene gaiety of a happy and thoughtless girl I suspect, in the case of Abraham Tucker, Leslie Stephen claims the character humorist "} ; for as it does, whom Sir a "metaphysical of have elsewhere shown,^ that a It is true, as I genial and tolerant laughter may predispose a man, should he begin to philosophise, to adopt an optimistic theory of the world. Nevertheless, I believe that a firm grasp of such a theory would tend to reduce very considerably the scope of his laughter. Stevenson It is just as well, perhaps, that R. L. —whose predominant cheerful view of things every man is inclination to a hopeful shown clearly carries his ideal hidden away, as the Scotch boys used to carry lanterns in a silent ecstasy than his letters show him to and in his idea that —did not go farther have gone, along the path of philosophic construction. If, on the other hand, the manner of philosophic specula- tion at once accepts the common facts of life as real, yet as inherently and hopelessly bad, laughter effectually excluded. There may, it is is and even more true, be room in the pessimist's creed for a grim irony, of which, indeed, we find a trace now and hauer and his followers ; again in the writings of Schopen- but for laughter pure and simple, or even for laughter mellowed by the compassion which 'English Thoiight in the Eighteenth Centv/ry, ' See my work on Pessimism, p. 428. vol. ii., p. 110. the PHILOSOPHIC CREEDS AND LAUGHTER 399 pessimist bids us cultivate, there seems to be no breathing- The space. state of things is too tragic to allow even of a smile. It remains to determine the relation of one other tendency in this high thinking to the philosophic scepticism, with In possibilities of laughter. its insistence on the relativity of our knowledge and on the impossibility of attaining to rational certainty, we seem to find a denial of rather than a particular species of Mstory of the subject shows, it is it ; all philosophy nevertheless, as the the outcome of a distinct Now and recurrent attitude of the philosophic mind. scepticism does undoubtedly seem to smile. may This smile wear a rather malicious be said to express an amusement at the spectacle of illusions pricked, which tells at least much against the high-soaring thinker as against the man of common clay who relies on the intuitions of his The sceptic's attitude leans, indeed, "common -sense". as more towards that of common-sense, in so far that, while destroying the hope of absolute knowledge, jpractical sufficiency of it urges the we such conjectural opinion as are able to reach. Scepticism thus introduces another standpoint for the\» laugher and adds to the sum of laughable things. This is the standpoint of the practical man and common-sense, so far as this knowledge shaped for the guidance of men common-sense, as social phenomenon. what we the ordinary affairs of in its is of name plainly tells us, is call This life. essentially a Here, then, within the group of ten- —that dencies underlying reflection is to say, the kind of intellectual activity which marks the highest development of the individual point of view we encounter the contrast — between this and the social point of view. able in our philosophic moments to " So far as see the fun of we it," are as R. 400 VALUE AND LIMITATIONS OF LAUGHTER Stevenson says apropos of a modern philosopher, L. the choir of common-sense laughers as distinguished —the from the laughing we joitt laughing realists From idealists.^ their comedy plainly illustrates, all highly abstract speculation looks amusing because of its quaint remoteness from their familiar realities and interests | point of view, as the history of because, too, of a keen suspicion of its being a vain attempt common to soar above the heads of mortals. To pull down the speculative soarer to his proper footing on our humble earthcrust mirth. is always a gratifying occupation to the lovers of Even the soarers themselves will sometimes give- man one another a kick downwards, the of science loving to have his joke at the expense of the unverifiable conceptions of the metaphysician, and the latter being science itself may, by its abstract methods, sometimes how physical manage to strip- lucky enough to turn the tables by showing material things, the properties and laws of which it sets out to explain, of the last shreds of reality.^ A word may serve to define the relation of philosophic humour to the tendencies just indicated. Humour, we have found, is characterised by an inclination to reflect, and to take the large views of things which embrace relations by ; further, a mirthful caprice of fancy in choosing for play-ground the confines of issues felt grows all distinctly philosophic the time to be serious. It when, as in Jean Paul or his disciple, Carlyle, the contemplation of things breaks through the limitations of the surmounts " relative " viewer's particular world-comer, points of view, and regards humanity as a whole, with oneself projected into the spectacle, as nearly as possible as disinterested spectator. ' See Dugas, op. cit, pp. 109, 110. ^ See, for an excellent example ism and Agnosticism, vol. i., Part of this retort, I. Dr. James Ward's JJatwral- THE HUMOROUS PHILOSOPHER We need not look for the philosophic humorist among In these, as elsewhere, zealous adherents of the schools. a fervid devotion tends, through ideas 401 and its rigid fixation of humour, which even in reserve of space for among effect on the point of view, to shut out most serious vein loves an ample wanderings in search of new free The humorist aspects of things. be found its narrowing its students is much more who likely to philosophy of a retain measure of scholarly impartiality in relation to the competing creeds. A full to development of humour in the philosopher seems be impossible, save where the amusing aspects of specula- tive soaring are dimly recognised. This a study of the history of the subject smile at the spectacle of a adding a new handle man may come for ; it is through hard not to refurbishing and possibly to one of the " systems " which have had their day (and more, perhaps) and undertaking once more A to; use it as a deadly dash of the sceptical weapon against the adversary. spirit, also again to see the pretentiousness of an it all, now and would appear to ability be needful for a large humorous enjoyment. One should have, too, at least a side-glance for the fun of the proceed- ing when the human pygmy tries the giant's stride by offering us a definition of the absolute. would seem, then, as if the philosophic humorist needed two opposed points of view that of the thinker who criticises actual life in the light of ideas, and that of the practical man who takes his stand on the fact of primal It to combine human ; needs and seeks an interpretation of things which will satisfy these. He should be able to soar with the Platonist to the realm of Ideas, so as to enjoy the droll aspect which men's behaviour assumes as soon as a of light is made to fall on it 26 glimmer from the Universal Forms VALUE AND LIMITATIONS OF LAUGHTER 402 less capable of taking up the standpoint and common-sense, so far as to discern a practical irrationality which lurks in any and he should be no of everyday reality the element of undue insistence on these Ideas. This combination in philosophic tendencies is humour illustrated in its attitude of the worth of towards the question Since a humorist life. characterised is a certain depth and range of sympathy, he way accept the optimist's easy ings of humanity. to the obstinate At and inexpugnable will not sink into He much human will see in struggle, that which to sadden a compassionate heart, begins to wear the shimmer of a smile as soon as he will be alive reality of our concrete on his buoyant laughter, he even the large spectacle of is by not likely to of getting rid of the suffer- this point, at least, the pessimist's depths of complaint. there is Yet, just because he insists on never losing experiences. his hold two opposed of game played by a sort of as we envisage it destiny against our race. Just as a glimpse of the provoking, almost malicious aspects of the circumstances may stifle which or even a sotto voce laugh ; looks out upon the larger starting sigh checked things. irritate us in the rising imprecation, The our smaller world by bringing up a smile when a philosophic humorist human scene, he may find the so, by a glance at the playful irony mind will indeed readily find reflective of in the scheme of the world traces of an impish spirit that must have fair its practical joke, cost what it may. With a appearance of wise purpose, the destinies have con- trived to combine just the amount to convey an intention of playful of bungling needed though slightly mali- cious teasing. Thus, in the final evaluation of the world, find its place. Perhaps it is not too much humour may to say that the HUMOUR word on man and last humorous VALUATION OF WORLD IN our world, that a humorist, for must always count new Theodicy and say struct a best possible for We " we have as The world amusing contemplation seen, the might almost con- as much, : ir- in the structure of is at least the ". ^ have spoken of philosophy as hovering aloof from common our whom, and the rational seem to be interwoven rational elements spectacle an opening for the his destiny leaves So quaintly do the smile. 403 humour. to erect and life, this idea might seem to exclude of a utility in the exercise of a philosophic all possibility Yet even when men philosophise and so appear about them a new cosmos, they remain in their human world and are doing something towards shaping their relations to it so that, after ; we may all, not un- reasonably look here, too, for some self -corrective function some aid rendered by it to that adjustment which is enforced on us all in laughter, of the self to its surroundings, the exalted thinker no less, let us say, than his faithful quadruped, whose world his master's strange habits make sadly complex. The first humour service of such a philosophic plete the process of a laughing self-correction. when we rise to the reflection and see our own com- figure projected into the larger we cerns with some approximation our to higher point of view of a philosophic whole, that down is It is only are able to estimate omrselves and our con- the vast time flitting part to justness. perspective in the world. we And first As we look fully discern the glimpse of the dwarfed figure we cut in the vast assemblage of things, followed ^ of M. by the Soiierer may reflection possibly how well mean something it can like this work out its when he speaks the humorist's point of view as the justest from which a man's world can be judged (Essays on English Literatwe, p. 148). 404 VALUE AND LIMITATIONS OF LAUGHTER hidden purpose whether or not may scene, suflBee we happen to be on the fully to reveal to us the absurdity in the crude exaggerations of our dignity, of our usefulness and of our troubles, even if it fail smile, and bring to the lips the corrective to evoke the yet more valuable self- purifying laugh. A like helpfulness is when we contemplate brought us by philosophic humour the whole human lot. our world as a dwelling-place for man, there for the exaggeration tion at what hurts In estimating is surely from a natural impatience at us, or being able to do so little when we undertake to pronounce on the moral our species. It is, know, our only one after to better our estate. all, suffice to may worth of we at the requirements bring the smile which instantly corrects a disposition to decry a glance Similarly, our world, and, so far as and a side-glance ; wisdom may of a practical room which comes from a natural indigna- it overmuch. Such save us alike from the sentimentalities of the cultivator of Weltsohmerz, from the foolish bitterness of the misanthrope, and from the sadly unbecoming vanity of the " who teaches that the world and the instituhuman society exist for the sake of the man of A friend of Carlyle tells me that the gloomy philosopher tions of genius. " sage would sometimes, after pouring out one of his long and savage tirades against things in general, hold breath, and then wards to more familiar let suddenly himself be swiftly borne down- levels on the rapid of a huge laugh, almost as voluminous, perhaps, as that of Teufelsdrockh, which he has so vividly described for us. one conjectures, there came to him a lucidity, in In this way, moment of perfect which he saw the absurdity of the overstrained attitude likely to be produced by undue violence of emotion, aided by an irrepressible turn for preaching to one's fellows SERVICE OF PHILOSOPHIC HUMOUR 405 moment when, perhaps, the stubborn realities, which his words had made a show of demolishing, were seen securely a standing and ironically smiling at his impotent rage. In the foregoing account of laughter and we uses, its have sharply separated the individual from the social point Fifty years ago, such a distinction would have of view. required no justification. It seems, however, just now to be the fashion to think of the individual as merely an anatomical detail, too small to be really distinguished, of the " social organism," and of his part on the earthly scene as consisting merely in its best is making a small which at contribution, a negligible quantity, to the eflBciency of this organism. This is At not the place to argue so serious a matter. may venture to keep human values we must the risk of appearing unfashionable, one to the old notion that in counting assign a high one to individuality; the community that, for the a proper freedom for the itself, own mind, velopment of a man's tastes, and sake of full de- character, something which should be secured even at great cost that, were this not so, society's claims have well-defined the right, and owes limits, is and on the individual beyond which every man has to himself as a primal duty, to de- it velop himself in the ; way which his may suggest enlightened by reflection natural inclinations to him. To insist further on this point would almost be to cast a slur on our literature, which contains some of the masterly pleadings for individual liberty. This freedom for individual self -development clearly in- own view of one's much amusement as one can from cludes a perfect right to form one's world, and to derive as a humorous contemplation of it. It could only be something akin to an awe-struck flunkeyism which would make a 406 VALUE AND LIMITATIONS OF LAUGHTER To one who has person hesitate here. cultivated the re- two congenial friends, the following of the tortuous movements of the laughable in all domains of human industry and of quisite observation and taste in the fellowship of one or human indolence the fun so quickly fore is one of the crowning always old in is ; yet we go on it is always new in relishing The indulgence its : we respond embodiments, where- with an unabated keenness. it in this felicities of life essence, wherefore its mode amusing contemplation of I readily grant, in a sense anti-social, that is is, to say, opposed what the laugher's community at the moment accepts as fitting and as good. [When a tranquil observer of his social to world laughs at the pretences, at the feel half -terrified at the or it may be may not improbably futilities, at the vagaries of its high dignitaries, he sound of his laugh ; so firmly has our early schooling set in us a tendency to regard as when they challenge big "cheeky" schoolboy standing up to his insolent upstarts all small things ones: whether a big senior, or a small country confronting a big one, or a "petty" anti-war minority facing a "practically unani- mous " Insolence people. of reason not which great things are their right. dicts of the it may be, yet perhaps to the eye more contemptible than the genuine v^pi^ It is wont in to indulge freely as well within indisputable, as urged above, that the ver- many, when they appear to fix the away some permanent demands of social fruit of experience slowly maturing with the ages, are life, or to store of the precious and a wise man will not hastily dismiss any popular opinion which promises to have persistence. On the other hand, it is no less clear that the views of minwhether singular or plural in number are exposed orities entitled to respect ; — — to special risks of their own. affect the contention that Yet this, and more, does not popular opinion, just because it is THE CLAIM OF THE INDIVIDUAL popular, almost completely relieved of that necessity of is which presses heavily upon finding reasons for its assertions a minority 407 what and, ; is more serious, is subject to various and potent influences which are just as likely to lead to An error as to truth. opinion which may be seen to result from a mental process palpably warped by prejudice does not grow valid merely who adopt it by multiplying the number for the increase ; either of the simultaneous may of those easily be the result, working of a like prejudice, or of the contagion which propagates psychical states, as well as among physical, At the members perfectly inert the individual Judes ing her affection. The limbs of the body poHtic which find by under- feeding, while the belly may bloated with over-feeding, for not joining in the paeans organism. of his have no particular reason for bear- '' themselves emaciated themselves to a with which we are now of remark. even social himself to such a calm retreat. the garden of Epicurus may that amusement must leave failure. game and shrug of the shoulders, and at approaches Those who would enter dealing. grudging and sense of having played the glories of the social this line our Judes or our starvelings betaking laughter which the gateway of this haunt of quiet all perhaps be forgiven on the Yet one need not urge Little chance, alas, of outside claims. community would, allow that she has her favourites, and that some of the obscure " is must urge that and the society have their reciprocal The most extravagant adulator perhaps, of a crowd. risk of appearing insolent, then, one Happy he who lost can, with a merry least half a laugh, He will find one into betake which be said to open, where he can gather about him, at any rate, the congenial friends are always ready to hold sweet discourse with their books ; patient friends whom who him through he cannot offend by an VALUE AND LIMITATIONS OP LAUGHTER 408 unwise interruption, though unhappily they are out of reach Here of the gratitude which he would fain tender them. he may now and again glance through the loopholes in the wall and see each social scene to frhe new day enough of the drolleries of the deepen his content. evolutionist has accustomed us to the idea of the fit, and the elimination of the socially But more forces are at work in the world than our men of science dream of. There is, oddly survival of the socially unfit sort of person. enough, a force which favours the survival of the unfit, widely different from that supplied by others' preservative benevolence : the impulse to adapt one's environment to the organism by turning the world into peculiarities of one's a plaything. How many men communities of to-day in one of the highly civilised may have learned to keep their heads above the water by the practice of a gentle laughter, no one knows or will ever know. It is enough to say that there are such, and that after fully cultivating their gift of humour they have found a world worth coming back to, with their part in which they will be perfectly contented. Some of these, who would probably be called social failures by the faithful adherent to conventional standards, have been known to me, and have been reckoned among the most delightful of my Society's friends. companions and most valued of my neglect of them, or their neglect of society, has at least permitted them to develop the gift of a wise and entertaining discourse. I —d am far from suggesting, however, that this deux, or A peu de gens Even — is gay in our much-extolled age a philosopher will be found who is solitude only for the social failure. sometimes perverse enough to hold with Plato that the mass of society are wrongheaded, and that he will best consult his well-being by seeking a wall for shelter from the THE HUMORIST AND THE RECLUSE Such an one may do worse hurricane of wind and dust. And than betake himaelf to our retreat. may himself man who, a wise enough for others " out the small remnant of life " for like Montaigne, feels that and desires to 409 " live he has lived draw towards appropriately minding the shouts of " " Old fogey ! " its entrance, not which come from be- Nay, more, as already hinted, a man who feels that world may be advised now and again to hind. his place is in the the retreat, enter haply he if may admission as a find guest. It may, however, be objected that even when a man thus detaches himself as spectator from his society he perforce remains at the social point of view in this sense, that the critical inspection which brings the coveted laugh involves a reference to an ideal community. The objector might find colour for his statement in the fact that men, that races, is to say, who have members chiefly dwelt from the crowd. I with such an objector am ; of the most it is French- sociable of modern on the delights of retirement not greatly concerned to dispute it is my enough for purpose to say that the point of view of our supposed contemplator is far- removed from that habitually adopted in any community which one could instance. As such, it stands clearly enough marked ofi' as individualistic. To this it may be added that in that kind of laughter at the social spectacle which pre- supposes philosophic reflection, the point of view longer in any sense that of a particular community become that of a human being, and so a system of communities which composes the I do not will it has citizen of that civilised world. which at the moment he enough to regard himself as a feel no doubt that during this laughing contemplation of the social whole, of serious : is society pulling at his is not part, the individual heels. The detachment VALUE AND LIMITATIONS OF LAUGHTER 410 from his community, though it fall far short of the abandonment of the recluse, will, as already hinted, be felt to be a revolt. When, glancing back at the crowd wreathing a dust-cloud, he laughs with his large itself in from rancour, he laugh free may catch a glimpse absurdity of his critical performances. the we meet the encounter when the between contradiction final and obdurate everyday ceptions facts. of Here, again, It con- ideal is a foot of pure intellect, just as droll it is parting from the solid earth, strikes against the sturdy frame of philistine common-sense, of of is " that which subdues us The individualism philosophers included. all," view in a laughing contemplation of one's when only surmounted draws the laugher's We may now a large philosophic self into of the point social world humour thus the amusing scene. better define the attitude of the humorist in its relation to that of the comedian and of the satirist. The comic projects spirit, placing itself at the social point of view, group of individuals. of an into age, may an object of it is Satire, eccentric when it individual, attacks the derision. like, Humour, though in its as we have may it seen, laughter at the social neither passionately vindictive nor concerned with the practical problem of reforming a world. this or manners be said to project the society, turning sometimes does the scene show an laughable as be by sympathy now added it tends, width of dontemplation To that as a sentiment nourished when something is of philosophic reached, to combine the social and the individual mode of projection by taking up the self into the spectacle of the whole. Enough has been said, perhaps, on the developments of individual laughter. Its point of view seems on inquiry SUMMARY OF USES OP LAUGHTER to justify itself as a distinct some idea of the ways 411 and a legitimate one. With of this, as well as of the larger we laughter of societies and groups, form an estimate of the should be able to final significance and utility of the laughing impulse. Laughter, born of play, has been seen above to possess Throughout the evolution of communi- a social character. from the ties, observed taking a considerable part in the it we have common life, savage-like tribes upwards, first helping to smooth over difficulties of intercourse, to main- what tain to ask valued, and to correct defects. is under what this head, as a social force, is its and what indications of the future can be discovered in the tendencies which social remains It whole value to-day we note in its later developments. These questions appear to be best approached by a reference to the results of our study of comedy. higher forms, has shown of the attitude of a something in though a it its may members which not regard is it This, in its be the clear expression community, when more violent mode dismissed itself to it it would laugh away sees to be as serious unfitting, enough to That which call for is thus lightly always something which looks anti-social, whether or not it of ejection. takes on for moral reflection the aspect of a vice. A common claim for to it it tendency among writers on comedy is to the value of a moral purgative, to attribute the power of effecting directly a process of self- correction in the spectator. Even Congreve and Vanbrugh, Jeremy Collier, pre- in their defence of their plays against tended that they were reformers of the world. This agreeable supposition will not, one fears, bear critical inspection. One objection, just touched on, is that comedy 412 VALUE. AND LIMITATIONS OP LAUGHTER does not deal a blow straight at the immoral, as the language of Aristotle and of some of his citers appears to suggest. This circumstance seems to stand seriously in the its effecting Nor does a moral purification. merry contemplation far from the customary to of correction behind. of the tendency of way of the holding up men to stray too imply a serious purpose social type, Though she may wear a shrewishly Comic Muse is at heart too gay corrective expression, the to insist on any direct instruction of her audience. A glance at her stem-eyed sister. Satire, will convince us of this. On the other side, show makes fatal extremely unlikely that he should at the it moment apply the object-lesson so as to discern the laugh- own able side of his that a we meet with another and more the mental pose of the spectator at the comic objection: man is all One remembers here making such a self-application shortcomings. too slow in even in the serious surroundings of a church, where a remark, pointed perhaps with a significant turn of the finger speak of ruder times), (I is recognised by all but himself we expect as specially aimed at him; and if so, how a spectator at a comedy, in the playful mood which has no room for any serious thought, to rub in the moral medicament supplied him ? can Such purification as is possible can, /When indirect. it is plain, be only Lessing writes "the whole of morality has no more powerful and efiective preservative than the laughable " he seems to imply this indirectness. the provocative lurks in the immoral, laughter at the comic exhibition phylactic. By may we So far as can say that our serve as a useful pro- tracing out, with the guidance of the comic poet, the unsuspected developments and effects of a failing, we may be furthering our moral salvation through the setting up of a new internal safeguard. If the tendencies should MORAL CORRECTION IN COMEDY 413 on thrust up their ugly forms in ourselves, the fact having laughed at them may make a considerable later of our and energy difference in the swiftness The repression. movement of the fear of becoming ridiculous, of which grows and so more serviceable in one who has made acquaintance with comedy, is a valuable side-support of what better defined we is call moderation and reasonableness in entitled to her may Yet we men and comedy ; modest meed as one of our health-preservers. go wrong here, doing an offence to by taking her words too seriously. any rate, as if she wanted much more to easily our gay enchantress She looks, at please us than to improve us. In considering her aim one is reminded, through a relation of contrast, of what Aristotle between pleasure and virtue. said about the connection The good man, he tells us, the more satisfied if though aiming at virtue, will be pleasure comes by the way, giving a kind of unexpected finish to the virtuous achievement.. The art of comedy merely reverses the order directly at pleasure, but is wise to object to furthering virtue collateral result of The comedy, : she aims far too good-natured if and too comes as a this her entertainment.^ at once wise and gay, of a past age seems to have parted from us and one would look in vain to newer developments of the art for any considerable in; struction in the lesser be carried on by such obligations. Nor is the communal laughter likely to social corrective function of a large new forms satire," in so far as these of art as our " social can be said to keep at the point of view of the good sense of a community. The tendency to-day seems to be rather to force a laugh from us at some bizarre extravagance of 1 On manners, which we the moral function of comedy see Bergson, op. and Dugas, op. cit., pp. 149-159. could never cit., pp. 201, 202, VALUE AND LIMITATIONS OP LAUGHTER 414 think of as a possibility for ourselves ; or, on the other hand, to bring us near a cynical point of view, at which the current and of our laughter becomes shallow point of view which has little, if slightly acidulated, a any, promise of a moral stiffening of the self against insidious attack. In spite of this, laughter, remains a social force. that even to believe A or the potentiality of a political checked by the fear of laughter is probable that the men of now " dread laugh of a conspiracy leader —on sometimes is the other side. It good sense in every community are kept right more than they echo of the it, measure of faith enables one ". know by If there the faintly heard is a danger just between a half-affected over-serious- ness on the one side and an ignorant pretentiousness on the other, in order to banish the full genial laugh of other days, We we may be allowed to pray fervently for its failure. have seen a tendency to claim too much in the way of serious function for the laughter of comedy. desire to emphasise its practical utility, which This to is be looked for perhaps in a people too pragmatic to seize the value of light things, is illustrated in a curious mostly forgotten dispute as to the and fitness of ridicule to The debate was opened by Shaftesbury, who maintained its fitness, and was carried on by Warburton, Karnes and others. Much of it reads quaintly be a test of truth. naive to-day. a Shaftesbury's paradox almost sounds like malicious attempt to caricature the theory of Prof. W. James, referred to in an earlier chapter of this work. To suggest that we know a piece of folly, say that of Malvolio, to be folly because we laugh at it, is surely to be thrusting on our laughter a dignity unmerited, and, one may which add, does not become is it. quite This point was not held to in the discussion, which, as I have EXAGGERATION OF USES OF LAUGHTER shown elsewhere, soon became a contest about the and the There restraints of laughter. rights ^ a like risk of exaggerating the useful function is the service of laughter to the individual. in estimating deep penetration of mind No 415 is needed for perceiving that a lively sensibility to the touch of the ludicrous will man expose a 3,3 we have dull, are likely to take offence, the fine shades, a quick eye for drolleries Hkely to bring situations of danger. must be considered in appraising the to a This drawback total value of laughter man. With respect a, so far not with those who, like Mr. Meredith's entertaining ladies, cultivate is all of us, world and consort with those who, being both solemn and if To to considerable loss. to live in the to its function as aiding the individual in healthy self-correction, enough has been said. truth, no small advantage to be able to blow carking care with a good explosion of mirth. world is much with now and again us, we shall be likely to as a protection It is, in away some And if the need laughter from contact with much and much that is unwholesome. Yet, in this case, too, the chief value seems to reside in its immediate result, the gladdening and refreshing influence on the that is silly laugher, which has in consolatory. aside This now and have to " it a virtue at once conciliatory it which makes is it and so good to step again from the throng, in which we too may swink and sweat," so as to secure the gleeful pastime of turning our tiresome world for the nonce into an entertaining spectacle ; amusing ourselves, not merely as ^The reference is to an article, "Ridicule and Truth," in the Gornhill Mctgaeme, 1877, pp. 580-95. Leaaing's plea, in his JSambwrg. Dramatn/rgie (Stiioke 28 and 29), on behalf of a corrective virtue in comedy owed something, I suspect, to the reading of Shaftesbury and the other English writers. VALUE .AND LIMITATIONS OP LAUGHTER 416 Aristotle teaches,^ in order that we may be because our chosen form of amusement has and serious, its own but value excellence. It is one thing to assign to laughter a definite ethical or logical function, another to ask whether among the worthier human some have denounced as a thing irreverent it how it We not come further into the present discussion. only to ask what kind of dignity place would seem, That view does not unclean. if its have seen indiscriminately as it, has it We qualities. have has. It is assumed here that we exclude the more malignant and the coarser sorts of laughter. A considerable capacity for the pure may mirth which the child loves man who be said to provide for the of the child in — supplemented him humorous contemplation of things is, by —and comedy keeps something a turn for the I venture to think, not merely compatible with the recognised virtues, but, in and in the tendencies which itself human This excellences. saying of Carlyle it implies, among the by the certainly suggested No man who " : is has once heartily and wholly laughed can be altogether irreclaimably bad "} may We not be able to rise to the point of view of R. L. when he wrote, " As laborare so joculari est orare yet we may be inclined to think that it is impossible to construct the idea of a man who can be described as decently complete without endowing him with a measure Stevenson, ; " ^ humour. of men Whatever our view of the " Good," reasonable of all schools appear to allow some value among which for pleasure, especially the social pleasures, laughter, even when On jf^ i * iSartor Besarius, loc. seems to retire into solitude, always it keeps a high place. ^ cit. to a capacity its intellectual side, Ethics, Bk. ^ again, as the X., 6. Letters, vol. ii., p. 302. LAUGHTER AS WORTHY QUALITY 417^^ play of mind, the mirthful disposition has an intimate relation to such valuable qualities as quickness of insight and In the light entertaining form of witty versatility.^ talk it takes Best of on a social quality of no mean value. laughter of the genial sort carries with all, it, and helps to develop, kindly feeling and the desire to It please. though is He who too often forgotten that a mirthful spirit, may it offend, is a large source of ^world for those qualify a and it joy to others. produces a laugh of pure gladness brightens the man who to hear him. become one Fertility in jests of the human may benefactors; has been claimed for Falstaff, with some reason, that he " has done an immense deal and promote positive happiness to entertain ".^ to alleviate which gives to laughter much of an educator of the sympathies. misery It is this implied its wish value as Nothing, indeed, seems promote sympathy more than the practice of laughing to Family together. reasonable freedom affection is mishaps and blunders. grows in a new way when a allowed to laugh at one another's One reason for this, perhaps, is that the consciousness of our having laughed at our friends and been laughed at by them, without injury to friendship, gives us the highest sense of the security of our attach- ments. When a friend laughs "as love does laugh" quote Mr. Meredith's Rosamund — with —to the laugh which only half-hides a kindly sentiment, say, a wish to help you more laughter at ^ away what wiU vex or harm you, it binds securely. Even our comparatively soKtary things, when no appreciative sharer is at hand. to laugh hearts yet See what Aristotle says about the witty {eirpdweXoi, turning, nimble-minded), Ethics, Bk. ^Mr. Radford, in an article on literally, the easy iv., 8. Falstaff, in (First Series). 27 Mr. Birrell's Obiter dicta 418 VALUE AND LIMITATIONS OF LAUGHTER may, if itself with and bring into play the sympathetic side of only has the tolerant good-natured tone, connect it If there is in laughter this element of a deeper we shall do well to view jealously any undue imposition of The restraints. dangers of history of popular mirth points to the this. That some regulation social pressure of the impulse, both external and internal by a man's own required, does not need to be argued. is impulse, forms. us. humanity, by self-restraint, The laughing when unchecked, has taken on ugly and deadly If men have endowed their deities with mirth they have also endowed their Society fiends. is right in her intuitive feeling that an unbridled laughter threatens her order and her laws. Specific injuries done by ribald jests, by e.g., may have to be dealt with men know, as also that society to religious convictions, the magistrate. This all when she seeks to maintain the dignity of social by putting down with a gentler hand all unworthy and unbecoming laughter, and to observe vigilantly acts wisely converse the " hypergelast " Aristotle's —a low jesters species that includes others besides (^co/j.o'X.oxot) —who, if he does not, either maliciously, or through sheer heaviness and awk- wardness of gait, will at least kick sharply against some sensitive place, weary decent men with all the weariness of the bore and something more. well to bear in mind that such imposition of reby external authority should be also self-restraining. If laughter has its uses, not only for him who laughs but for him who is laughed at, these should be borne in mind in determining the amount of restriction desirable. This Yet it is straint wise caution is especially needed authority seeks to repress itself. It would never is when the laughter which likely to be directed against do, for example, if the fine world CONTROL OF LAUGHTER BY SOCIETY were at liberty to put down satires on its 419 vulnerable man- Divines of the solemnity of Barrow and Warburton ners. might do much harm, if they could succeed in silencing the ridicule of the half -believers and the sceptics. Those in authority hav^ a special reason for remembering here the maxim " noblesse oblige '' ; and even should they be lacking commonwealth, a in a wise care for the well-being of the measure of shrewdness will advise them that they will do well to pass a self-denying ordinance. Let them not more afraid of laughter than their predecessors, but welcome it, not merely as a symptom of vitality in be rather those who indulge in against surprise story of the it, but as a sign of alertness in citizens by stealthy-footed modem written, it will be " evil. emancipation of Perhaps when the women " comes to be found that the most helpful feature of the movement was the laughing criticism poured upon it; a criticism which seems not unnatural when one remembers how many times like it ; before droll aspects laughed at something of the spectacle of a sex setting assert itself chiefly A men have and not so unreasonable to one who perceives the by aping the ways about to of the rival sex. statesman, having a large majority behind him, would probably best show his wisdom by discouraging the laughter of his own side and instructing it how to welcome that Yet the quaint look of such a of the despised minority. suggestion reminds one that the idea of adding statesmanship is wisdom to as far from realisation to-day as in the time of the Greek philosophers. I have spoken of a community's controlling its peoples own mirth who seem in self-restraint in relation Of the duty of view of the feelings of other to the laughter of its individual members. to have a right to their slices of the planet there should be no need to speak. It may be enough to hint VALUE-AND LIMITATIONS OP LAUGHTER 420 when touching on that a comic journal will do well, delicacy, to exclude some ternational matters of drawings irritating details, such as the figure of a not only but in lest lest from inits monkey the foreigner consider himself to be insulted, one of the very gentlemen for whom some old-fashioned impulse writes, stung it of chivalry, feel tempted to give a too violent expression to his indignation. Of the control of laughter as a part of the self-government of a wise man, little especially one's hearted man own, in a need be may mesh A said. the appetite of wit in is meals. There are the relish for jokes, of cruel consequences. have been found to be trying to their ate keen entangle the feet even of a kind- its families, so importun- demand for regularity of duplicities of laughter sometimes impose even on one who The witty is which may in general a kindly laugher, the note of malice stealing in unnoticed. It is only when the lively tendency to mirthful utterance is found in a sympathetic nature, side by side with a cultured an adequate susceptibility to the pain of giving pain, that self -regulation has known a laugher in may of one Each of be counted on. man, at least, us, perhaps, deserving to be called whose mirthful utterances one would look in who seemed never to be vain for a trace of malice, and surprised I by the temptation to risk a touch on sore places. cannot but recall here one already alluded to seemed to embody the only as the just man, ideal of his teacher Aristotle who it were a law not of set purpose acts justly, but as the refined and gentlemanly being as —one who man who to himself regulates his wit, —from behind whose wistful eyes a laugh seemed always ready to break. If no such kindly laugher, one may study the characteristics of the species in the Essays of Mia. one knows A of perfect self-control in the matter of laughter pre-sup- SELF-CONTROL poses much more than IN LAUGHTER 421 a dread of inflicting pain upon the whether he be the object of the laughter or ready to identify himself with that object. It calls for a fine sense hearer, what of the seemly, of one whose rSle is It is not too is fair. much the detection of the unseemly in others that he should himself avoid unseemliness. well to remember that nothing wrong moment is He will do worse than a jibe at the : Risu iuepto res ineptior nulla When to ask of est. serious things are being discussed the attempt to what might flatteringly argumentum ad risum " is one of the actions hide poverty of argument under be called an which '' belittle men. The wariness proper to one who bears so keen-edged a weapon wiU go farther and prompt him to ask whether the thing which entertains the eye is meet for laughter. For example, our poor language being what a form of words which dissection to hide the use of it is, may be shown by another's under its plain elaborate meaning a second meaning derogatory to the speaker, does not, perhaps, make the latter quite legitimate quarry for the former's ridicule. a fine sense of justice to detect the line is fair from what A perfectly wise is for laughter unfair in such a case. direction of laughter will call for other fine discriminations. game A word or action may be quite proper when it smacks of conceit, though but for this it should have been passed by. is conceit among men, so noxious is it, So rampant indeed so low a degree and of sensitiveness in the moral integument does that even the discreet laugher may indulgence in view of one of its On It needs which divides what it connote, allow himself unstinted unmistakable eruptions. the other hand, a sense of the true values of things will VALUE -AND LIMITATIONS OF LAUGHTER 422 some mani- lead the wise to abstain from laughter where festation of the beast in mode a less gentle Nor man obtrudes and requires itself of expulsion. good man's self-regulation cease when there will a He will see how the habit of a reckless may have a bad reflex eifect on his own nature how, example, it may rob him in one moment of the perfection are no hearers. mirth for ; of an old reverence for something beautiful sweetening the fountains of drop of bitterness ; how it afiection, it ; how, instead may may smuggle of introduce a in something of that pride and that contempt which dissociate men. I have here emphasised the higher moral reasons which will urge the good man to restrain his laughter. add certain prudential reasons. here, laughter is an escape we keep it within One might as has been maintained from the normal, serious attitude which living well imposes on that If, us, its wise cultivation means Only where there limits. is a real earnestness and good feeling at bottom, will our laughter be in the full sense that of the in this full way mind and the at a collapse of dignity retain a respect for the true dignities. To laugh heart. means that we If the laugh grows too frequent and habitual this respect will be undermined, and, as one result of this moral loss, our laughter itself will shrink into something void of meaning and mechanical. The perpetual giggler, to whom nothing is knows the flavour of a good laugh. The impulse to laugh will always take from the moral nidus in which sacred, never its germinates it complexion ; and the good man, tender, and mindful of the dues of reverence, ennobles the mirthful temper. It seems, indeed, in such a moral milieu to become an expression, one of the most beautiful, of goodness. It assures genuineness of virtue, and brings it us somehow of the nearer to us as some- THE WORTHY TYPE OF LAUGHTER human thing and malice, made without touch of pride and beneficent by expansive sympathies. be maintained, then, not only that a may that but all takes on the look of a child's joyousness it large It is to laughter Free from to be loved. 423 thrive in the soil of a good soul this will full rich man's soul, remain incompletely developed This doctrine seems flatly to contradict great it. Pascal and the rest. authorities, that there really is Yet no contradiction it here. may be shown The laughter which Pascal, Addison, and the others denounce, sorts, and, what output of " men to may be claimed to be one of the posses- which they should jealously posed to say what Walpole fashionable aesthetes at said of the as youth and still more bright R and L. it may with a few, Stevenson, comrade on the sick-bed. which good fellowship loves to was any- It supplies diversion ". in age, did with Heine and it doings of the " there never Bath, thing so entertaining or so dull in It cling. what is always tending to grow a which at times the onlooker is dis- world, and of dull mind ". the vacant gaiety into brings not hardly a jot more sufferable, the reckless is Laughter, then, sions of is humorous kind, but the coarse and brutal the genial and It feed. is the remain a manna on And, so many-sided may be recommended as a planer for moral ridges, and it may add the last touch to the character-picture which every man is engaged in painting. It will graciously accompany us when we visit the nursery and try our is it, it cumbrous hand will we betake If at the art of entertaining childhood not forsake us it if we care for its ; and —when company ourselves to the graver occupations. this is true it to put — would seem as if, instead of trying down, we should seek to promote the laughing VALUE AND LIMITATIONS OP LAUGHTER 424 Yet here one must be habit in ourselves and in others. For one thing, the careful. man whom to expected to assist in an effort to render which believe and of self-inflation, on implies lack of a men an of better the spectacle of folly, of make- that else hardly be He knows equal quickness in mirthful response. than any one all counts as it can happiness of ingredient considerable a his laughter is fed, the finer laughter of the mind in all the great majority of his fellows. on his of suicidal madness, then, would be an It act transform part, to try to his social world into a body of laughter-loving men and women. Happily for the " gelast," such a transformation is beyond the powers of any conceivable society of laughterHumorous men must continue with perfect promoters. serenity of mind to put up with being a " contemptible minority ". Not only it in the interests of the lover of laughter well that he cannot impose his merry habit men The wise man alike. sorts all ability to of make our on remember that it takes and that the desir- will social world, the laughing capacity varies greatly with a man's disposition, habits of mind and circumstances. those, for example, who perception, especially dull life, or, if are of sensitive feeling called be a real need appreciation of Some to all the notes of hearts of life's with circumstance, many On chords, resonant music, might break but for the the other hand, only do very well without it, be true of many excellent her transform- many worthy people not but might be at a advantage by possessing the endowment. to may laughable the timely comings of the laughter-fay with ing wand. To and keen on to lead an oppressively like Goldsmith, to wrestle a broad and quick is all This dis- seems men and women whose CLAIMS OP THE AGELAST special bent is and thought towards moral rigorous a on energy 425 some to the world. half shadow of they bear about with them a special kind ; self-consciousness, of Such mission. persons appear ever to dwell in the subduing their cause of concentration sense a Laughter Nor can a sigh. of their indispensableness not for these, is we say with one supposes, find the needed it, and sunlight in persons who hold imposing rank or office, and have to be daily concerned with maintaining air a proper awe in others ; or in those who have a deep- and imperturbable self-complacency, or those who solemnly preoccupied with the momentous business placed are of raising their social Probably nobody, save dignity. perhaps a waiter, has to be set more securely above the temptation to laugh than a man qualifjang for his first dinner parties. The " case of these hopelessly confirmed very strong one. Those of us who prize the free circulation of laughter as that of a sea-air, to the closeness of agelasts " is a and are disposed to object mental atmosphere which seems to enfold the devoted, shall do well to remember how much the world owes to a lack of humour in its citizens. If Rousseau had been a great laugher we should certainly never have had his picturesque and instructive attack on civilisation and all that flowed from it. Would Dante and Milton and the other builders of the vast and sombre architecture of verse have achieved their task if the laughing imp had been pulling vigorously at their coat tails ? How many our valuable social institutions would have been built up of if the beginners had been keenly alive to the absurd aspects of the bunglings which attempts ? Let those are who only from an enlightened wont to characterise first laugh, therefore, be ready, not self-interest, but from a becoming VALUE AND LIMITATIONS OF LAUGHTER 426 " esteem for alien virtues, to allow the agelasts " their place- in the world. in The foregoing considerations suggest that any may waste much precious time in trying the experiment on a member of and if effort A man to promote laughter we should move cautiously. A his family. waggish schoolmaster, too — he is to be found may, meet with nothing but Perhaps some good "tests of humour''' to the credit of the profession he experiment in disappointment. this direction, would be helpful here ; but the daily papers have not yet succeeded in inventing a satisfactory one, and the psychological laboratories have, wisely perhaps, avoided the problem. the business of testing would comprise some Moreover, examination of the quality of the humour " " expressed, lest the pedagogue should be fostering in a boy a kind of growth which he much is for more possible, should be it serious purposes : a person's laughter are one may of the best clues to his character, being allowed for, undertaken the saying of Goethe„ since by that the directions taken differences Perhaps, indeed, this better without. testing of quality, were be found to apply,, raw the to stripling. In undertaking any such investigation of youthful mirth, the investigator would need sounds themselves it is full may suspect that young laugh, early sophistication a as to note the quality of the expressive for one ; and unhindered, at gauging a boy's do worse than remark of one humour is as pure a rarity. in these days of and For a attempt the schoolmaster might, perhaps, select the following test, suggested of my his case, excites the call, by a most learned and most respected one which, in friends, that the situation referred to is the you made a clear of tone first most hearty merriment : " Supposing and having placed your hat on a inadvertently proceeded to sit on it ; how would you chair feel ? TESTING CAPACITY OF LAUGHTER 427 A more manageable problem for the pedagogue would try, now and again, to force back the bolts discipline and approach the boy with a judicious over- seem to be to of It is refreshing to find that this has recently ture of fun. been recommended by a highly respectable journal of the profession which writes by a " It is "} be to encourage boys to Next to this, the below the moral level of the This part of the schoolmaster's business estimable savage. certainly not neglected in our country, little many aim would bear the discipline of others' laughter, so that they fall not even been a work dislike to bit of fun, that is accountable for a difficulty in discipline is no inherent but the absolute necessity of relieving or to the teacher, a dull lesson : and perhaps has overdone. The gift of humour will save a man from many follies, among others that of attempting the office of prophet. This has its proper domain, for example in astronomy, though even in certain ambitious departments of physical science begins to look like presumption. of human affairs To bring it it into the region smacks of a juvenile confidence which has not begun to define its logical not risk the illustrating of Hence I boundaries. my subject by a shall forecast of the future of laughter. It may be enough to say that, at the fraction of a second of the cosmic clock at which we happen to live, certain tendencies are observable which appear to have some bearing on this question. hardly call The most cheerful of men would the present a mirthful moment. We perhaps seem to have travelled during a century or more very far from the serene optimism which dwelt fondly on the perfectibility 1 Tlte Journal of plication, Nov. 1901, p. 687. VALUE, AND LIMITATIONS OP LAUGHTER 428 of mankind. at all, we we grow If enthusiastic about man's future our minds run on the perfectibility of his This fact in itself suggests that we are not let machines. likely to find an exceptional exuberance of the mirthful Writers, too, have emphasised the fact that the spirit. dull, is certainly not gay. An essayist, not long taken from us, has written sadly about the decline of the old frank social laughter i and another, writing of FalstafF age, not if ; says that, though by laughter man beasts, the cares and sorrows him " is distinguished from the of life have all of this distinguishing grace, degrading solemnity but deprived him to a brutal ". ^ That the old merry laughter of the people has lost its full resonance has been remarked above, and it may be possible, while avoiding youthful dogmatism, to conjecture to some extent To how come about. this loss has begin, it popular mirth is seems fairly certain that the decline of only a part of a larger change, the gradual disappearance of the spirit of play, of a to the mood of light enjoyment. full self-abandonment We may see in the rather forced gaiety supplied this not only " upby pantomime and other shows. It is illustrated in the change that has come over our out-of-door sports. the gorgeous to-date " Where is the fun, where is the gaiety, in the football and the cricket matches of to-day an " amusement moment an " ? Could anything be than a match at Lord's Australian team, forgetful of less like —save when for a its surroundings, Even the clapping of hands by the solemn-looking spectators sounds stiff and mechanical. bounds into the field ? This reduction of the past age to a meagre due altogether to a 'Traill, loc. cit., full rillet stream of choral laughter of a may readily be supposed to be growing refinement p. 147. of manners ^Mr. Radford, loc, cit. in all POPULAR MIRTH OF TO-DAY Leaders of the "high society" classes. that loud laughter The middle prohibited is by tell us, as its grows into a solemn from the upper class oulte, : we have seen, code of proprieties. which the imitation of class, in 429 social superiors has naturally adopted this idea and the classes below may be disposed on public occasions to consider Mother Grundy so far as to curb the be to froward spirit of fun. much more than any such conclusion that, even when laugh long and loud as is it unfettered, the people does not once did. may is perhaps too recent to be easily explained. hazard the suggestion that other recent social tendencies tive. it is connected with which seem to be still opera- It iSjvprobably one phase of a whole alteration of temper in the mass of the people. more solid material interests sport had to have while would not the place to attempt an explanation of a change which Yet we the decline seems The evidence available certainly favours the account for. This Still, artificial restraint its It looks as if only the now moved comedy must angle may if for popularity with scenic splen- dours which are seen to cost money. equally deep the miud, as substantial bait in the shape of stakes, Other forces lying not improbably co-operate. The mirth Merry England was the outgoing of a people welded in The escape from the priest, and later from brotherhood. his Spanish champion, had begotten a common sense of No such welding pressure relief and joyous expansion. of has come in these latter days pushing common of the service mirth. hour, especially that leave but of a of little all ranks into a The sharp class-antagonisms of employer and employed, hope of the revival of such a choral laughter whole people. This decline of the larger choral laughter, including the reciprocal laughter of social groups, appears to have for one 430 VALUE, AND LIMITATIONS OF LAUGHTER of consequences a falling off in the part played by mirth its as a tempering and conciliatory element in authority. government into our neutralised of the of the young is, Any humouring spirit one fears, more than " gain arising from the introduction of a by the loss which ensues from the banishment laugh from the relations of master and cajoling workman and mistress and maid. terribly serious purpose world-wide empire upon reluctant incorporation into peoples of degrees of inferiority, all a Perhaps, too, in our of conferring the blessing of an we are losing sight of the conciliatory virtue of that spirit of amicable jocosity, the value of which, as who had to to we have seen, was known to some do with savage peoples. The seriousness of to-day, which pay a long visit, may be found looks as if it had come to have its roots in the move up in the scale of wealth and comfort, together with the temper which this begets, the discontent greater pushfulness of men, the fiercer eagerness to The weariness, the which kill fever, and the fret the capacity for a whole-hearted abandonment to simple pleasures. So far as this is the case, what laughter survives may be expected to take on the tone of a forced utterance with something of a sigh of weariness behind men had no you will time to laugh. find Even it. It is as though at a social entertainment men and women who meet your playful challenge only with a niggardly giggle which they instantly suppress : poor distracted souls unable for a moment to free themselves from the chaos of social claims which haunts them. A yet more sinister characteristic of this later social laughter, reflected more or less clearly even in much of FUTURE OF LAUGHTER 431 what now passes for comedy, is its cynicism. By meant more than the hoUowness of the laughter world-weary: this is of the new sort new way. Thus, implies a readiness to laugh at a it of thing, or at least at the old sorts in a we may hear the unscrupulous member of a profession laughing at some "amusing" bit of conscientiousness in another member. The laughter has its readily distinguishable tones : now the thin wiry note of contempt which issues from the superior person, now the rough brazen sound Such laughter burred by the bolder lips of the roue. the case of an individual, of a class the revelation of the attitude of a its too, how much more old obligations. illustrate moral forces encompass our laughter, termine its key and the depth of is in of a nation alike, mind which has not yet completed the process of discarding The tendencies here touched on and how how closely the directly they de- its sincerity. They suggest, the evil inclinations menace the healthy vigour of our mirth than the good, even though these should up be cultivated These signs There the is to the confines of the saintly. may well make the friend of laughter sad. nothing unreasonable in the idea of a death of more joyous and refreshing mirth. which, perhaps, I have insisted too of a final survival of the it. A utilities all —on —give us no pledge However conwe have examples of highly merry impulse. siderable its benefit to a society, efficient much The communities which seem to do very well without And- the like is probably true of individual laughter. few persons may, as persistence I have suggested, owe to on the human scene of this utility is ; it their yet the evolutional efficacy probably very narrowly circumscribed. In spite of these sinister indications, an eye patient in search may descry others which point to the persistence of a wholesome laughter. Even if comedy and satire seem VALUE.AND LIMITATIONS OF LAUGHTER 432 aad slumbering, the humorous tired productive. We spirit is awake and have in the literature of more than one new country the promise of a development of quiet, reflective laughter. The growth own tion of other literatures than our tones of of a wider apprecia- overcoming the is touched on, to an international apprecia- obstacles, already tion of flavours, so far at least as to allow of a rapprochement of the larger-minded members of civilised nations in a reciprocal enjoyment of their of humorous writings. For the rest, we may put our trust in what have called private laughter. I men who that in the future, more like gay-hearted children If so, They morn-given light, not unlikely they will become than they have to brighten the chamber of blithe is alive to the ludicrous consequences which these introduce. will It think will grow at once more tenacious of their ideals, and still less the growing volume now as life, it are, with the genial glow of humour. will be able to keep the flame alive with fuel from the storehouse serving human and loses the of literature. drawn In this work of con- laughter they will do well, while developing the thoughtfulness of the humorist, to keep in touch with the healthiest types of social laughter, the simple mirth of the people preserved in the contes and the enduring comedies. C If a few men rest, and the will cultivate their own laughter in-this-:way and do their best to make their private amusement that that it of will not die less terrible to face by a few their faithful an inner circle of friends, —though the death than its we may hope of what we love were debasement —but be preserved hands for a happier age. They will have reward in advance, since pure and honest laughter, him that gives, and him that takes. like mercy, blesses 433 INDEX. Abstraction, in representation of Barrie, J. M., 242. character in comedy, 358, 359, Barrow, Isaac, 419. John, 236 note. 867. Absurd, the, as laughable, 110, 152, Bashkirtsefl, M., 821. — Bates, H. W., 223. Beating, as comic incident, 348. Beddard, P. E., 171. Bedier, Jos., 262 note, 263 note, 264, 270 note, 312 note. Belittling of idea, as cause of laugh- 216, 217, 239, 294. Addison, Jos., 30 note, 95, 304 note, 354, 355, 423. Afieotation, in comedy, 351. " Agelasts," 2, 425. Ainger, Alfred, 390 note. Allin, A. See Hall, G. S. Analogy of feeling, 191. Angas, G. ¥., 224, 228. Angell, J. R., 83 note, 86 note. Animals ticklishness of, ; ter, 9. Benevolent, mirthfulness as, 417. Bergk, Th., 846, 360 note, 381. Bergson, H., 7, 8 note, 104, 114, 140 note, 848 note, 367 note, 874, 413 57, 162, 163, laughter of, 156, 161, 170, tricks of, 157 sense 172, 177 of fun in, 158, 160 play of, 158 fi. Apes. See Animals. Apperception, 14, 59, 127, 130, 131, 177 note. ; ; ; ; 135. Bonwick, Jas., 224, 243,-250. Born, Bertran de, 263. Bosanquet, B., 6 note. Bridgman, Laura, 170. Browne, Thomas, 390. Apprehension, dissolved, as cause of Brutal laughter, 89, 97, 143, 231-283, 315, 381. laughter. See Fear. " Bulls," 111, 318. Billow, H. von, 330 note. Aristophanes, 282, 292, 348, 852, 357, Burchell, W. J., 239. Burton, R. P., 229, 245, 253. 360, 371, 878. Robert, 34, 314. Aristotle, 120, 412, 413, 416, 417 note, Butler, Samuel, 115. 418, 420. Art, amusing function of, 343 (Chapter Butt, of wit, 355. XI.) ; origin of, 844 scope for Buyer and seller, laughter between, 270. exhibition of laughable in, 345 humour in essays, etc., 890, 891 Campbell, Harry, 85 note. (see Fiction, Comedy). Apuleius, 290. Arabian Nights, 264. — ; ; comedy, 371 comedy, 373, 377. Artificial, ; world of Capes, B., 325 note. Assimilation in social evolution, 276, 286. Assimilative force of laughter, 272. Austen, Jane, 378. Carlyle, T., 86, 49, 299, 390, 400, 404, 416. Carroll, Lewis, 304, 386. Carus, Paul, 12 note. Cervantes, S. M. de, 282, 310, 314, Champneys, F. H., 165. 22. Bain, Alexander, his theory of the Character, the laughable in, 133, 307, 315, 321 ; incongruity between ludicrous, 121-124, 140, 143 on circumstances and, 318, 369 cruelty of savage laughter, 232 interest in, 318, 358; presentanote. tion of, in comedy, 357-370, Balzac, H. de, 879. Bacon, Francis, on laughter, ; 28 INDEX 434 Ohauoer, G., 30 note. Chesterfield, Earl of, Comic 1. Child, development of laughter in (Chapter VII.) first laughter of — 210 sayings of, as laughable, 106; degradation theory applied to laughter of, 123, 124, 137 beginnings of smile and laugh in, 164168, 188; spontaneous laughter of, 187, 207 extension of field of laughable, for, 191, 192 growth of self-feeling in laughter of, 192, 203, 205; growing complication of laughter of, 192, 193; early laughter of joy, 194-198 early laughter of play, 194, 198-207, 211, 212; early laughter of teasing, 201-203; 83, 198, 200, 204, ; ; ; ; early defiance of order, 203, 204, 211, 213 first roguish laughter, 206, 206 early appreciation of the laughable, 207-217; first laughter at sounds, 209-212 early feeling of propriety, 211- 215. Choral laughter, 247, 258, 295; decline of, 429. Cibber, CoUey, 292 note. Cicero, 384. Class, difierentiation of, 247, 258, 259 changes in, as laughable; 287. Clergy, laughter at the, 109, 262, 267, 294, 346; laughter of the, 283. Coleridge, S. T., 364, 374 note. Collier, Jeremy, 411. Combat, playful, as origin of laughter of tickling, 179-181. Comedy (Chapter XI.), Greek, 264, 291, 346, 353, 361, 389 (see also Aristophanes) of the Eestoration, 283, 287, 370-373, 383; ; in savage See Point of View. Concept, function of the, in laughter, Common-sense. 130-133, 135. 7, 13, Congreve, W., 357, 370, 372, 411. Conservative force of laughter, 257, 261. See Progress. Contagiousness of laughter, 42, 186, 255. Gonte, the mediaeval, 34, 86, 91, 262, 267, 284, 292, 311, 346, 373. Contempt, laughter of, 78, 83, 89, 97, 118, 142, 205, 234, 299, 320, 380. Contests, laughter in, 78, 83 laughter at the sight of, 117; of the sexes, see Woman, Laughter of ; Man ; and. Contrariety, theory of. See Incon- gruity. ; ; of, 250. the, distinguished from the laughable, 86. ; triumph, rudiments art, life, Contrast, effect of, in comic charac- ters, 365. Coquelin, B. C, ain^, 109. cadet, 86 note. Corrective function of laughter. — See Laughter. Counteractives of laughter, 84, 88, Value of 90, 93, 96, 98, 101, 102, 111. Courdaveaux, V., 130 note. Courthope, W., 361 note. Cruickshank, B., 225, 226, 235. Culture, gradations of, 284; spread of, 286, 288. Curtius, Ernst, 277 note. Custom, effect of, on laughter, 84, 294, 318. Customary, the, as standard in comedy, 375-377. Eoman, 291, 376 (see also Plau- Cynicism in modern laughter, 431. tus, Terence) ; conditions of the rise of, 347; elements of Dante, Alighieri, 30, 425. primitive laughter in, 348-357, Darwin, C, 26, 38, 40, 57, 60, 63, 70, of 379; Incident, of 357; 71, 156, 159, 162, 163, 164, 169, Manners, 357, 370-373, 376; of 170, 171, 172, 177, 224, 227, 280. Character, 357-370; Elizabethan, Daudet, A., 378. point 361 of view of, 368-377, David, Mrs. P. W. B., 229. 410 ; mood addressed by, 370, 373, Deformity, as laughable, 89, 231. 375, 377, 412; attitude of, towards moral. See Vice. morality, 372-377, 411 ; limits to, Degradation, (moral theory of 377 ; approach to point of view of, theory), 119-125, 128, 137, 153. in fiction, 378 ; satirical element Dennett, E. E., 251, in, 381 ; humour in, 387 ; correc- Descartes, E., 70. tlvefunotion of, 411-414; Modern, Descending incongruity, 137. 413. Desohamps, E., 222 note. ; ; — INDEX 435 Detaohment in humorous observa- Fiction, prose, comic point of view tion, 331, 337, 407-409 in, 378, 379 addressed to a reDickens, 0., 158, 329, 388. flective mood, 879; humour in, Difference, judgment of, 15 note. 387-390. Digmty, loss of, as laughable, 99, Fielding, H., 388, 389. 119-125, 128, 136, 218, 214, 266. Fitzmaurioe-Kelly, J., 314 note. Discomfiture, the sight of, as laugh- Flaubert, G., 306. ^ able, 117. Pools, 249, 250, 291, 343; "Feast Disguise, in comedy, 349, 369. of," 346. Disorder, as laughable, 94, 266, 342 Pouill^e, A., 137. in comedy, 371. Fox, fable of the, 382. Dog, the. See Animals. French, the, gaiety of, 311. Doran, John, 291. Pun, sense of, in children, 64, 76, 77, Dugas, L., 47 note, ISO note, lid note, 87, 112, 125, 137, 140, 169, 176, 306 note, 400 note, 413 note. 181, 194, 315; in savages, 234, 252; in comedy, 347-350, 353, Edge WORTH, B. L. and M., 313 note. 357, 369. Education, laughter in, 426. Future of laughter, 427. Egede, Hans, 223 note, 249. Egyptians, 264, 265. Gardner, P., 264, 292 note, 343 note, Eliot, George, 109, 271, 298, 299, 385 346 note. note, 386 note, 389. Genetic method, necessity of, in Ellis, W., 224, 235, 237. studying the ludicrous, 154. Embarrassment, relief from, produc- Gillen, F. J. See Spencer, B. ing laughter, 228, 238. GiUray, Jas., 293 note. Emotions, James' theory of, 40 de- Gladness, as expressed in laughter, velopment of, 189; fusion of, See Pleasure. 71, 195. 308-310. Goethe, J. W. von, 283, 426. Epicureans, 397. Goldsmith, 0., 298, 328, 387, 388, Erskine, J. E., 224, 250. 424. Estimable, the, in the laughable, Gratiolet, L. P., 31. Grey, George, 250. 306, 310, 317. Evolutional utility of laughter, 408, Grief, as causing laughter, 66, 67 ; ; resemblance of manifestation 431. Excellence, laughter as an, 3, 416, 422, 423. Expectation, annulled, as cause of laughter, 9, 12, 18, 64, of, to laughter, 70, 309. Groos, K., 146, 147 nots, 148 note, 158 note, 182 note. 125, 126- effect of, on child's laughter, 188, 190 effect of, on emotional reaction, 190. See Custom. Fabliau. See Oonte. Fanciful world of comedy, 372, 373, Hall, G. Stanley, and AUiu, A., on laughter, 28, 52, 66, 83 ; on tick377. ling, 177, 178, 182. Fantastic ideas, as laughable, 88. Fashion, definition of, 273; move- Hardy, Thos., 103. ments of, 273 as restrained by Harmful tendencies of laughter, 37, 46, 415, 418, 420, 422. See custom, 275 as laughable, 276- Habit, 130. ; ; ; Laughter. 279. Father and child, relation of, in Harris, J. C, 251. Hartshorne, B. P., 222. comedy, 265, 353, 361. Pear, relief from nascent, as element Hat, unsuitable, as instance of the ludicrous, 9-17. in tickling, 63 laughter as reaction from, 65, 176, 199 ; as in- Hazlitt, W. C, 137, 138 note, 268, 354. 88. hibitory of laughter, Feeling tone, of sensations of tick- Hecker, E., 184 note. ; 54 of humour, 305, 310 comic mood, 370, 376. ling, of ; Hegel, G. W. P., 5. Hegelians, on the comic, 4. INDEX 436 Heine, H., 386, 423. Heymaua, G., 64. Leonard, 57, 58, 61, 165 note, 169, 178, 179, 188. Hind, H. Y., 225, 242. Hobbes, T., his theory of the ludicrous, 120, 140, 143, 203. HofEding, H., 306 note. Hogan, Mrs. L. E., 188, 209, 212, 215, 217. Homer, 89, 96, 97, 108. Hugo, Victor, 315. Human, things, as object of laughter, 86, 122, 128, 345. Humour (Chapter X.), definitions of, Hill, Inferiority, feeling of, as inhibiting laughter, 143, 320. Intellectual theory, the. See Incongruity, also 153. Inventions, as objects of ridicule, 281. Irish, humour of the, 312, 813, 385. Jackson, John, 250 note. James, William, his theory of emotions, 40, 189. Johnston, H. H., 227. Jonsdn, Ben, 268, 361, 362, 364. Joy, laughter of, 71 ff., 116, 168, 194 flE., 228. See Pleasure. 297 as individual, 298, 313, 824, Jusserand, J. A. A., 348 note. 326; rarity of, 298, 311, 822, Juvenal, 283, 881, 382. 325; origin of, 299; reilection in, 300-303, 324, 387, 393; as a Kames, H. H., 414. sentiment, 300, 307 serious- Kant, I., his theory of the ludicrous, ness in, 301-305, 314, 319, 338, quoted, 125, 9, 18, 126-129, 131 342, 387, 393, 395, 400 blend of 134, 185, 310, 325. sad and gay in, 305, 309, 387; Keats, John, 430. kindly feeling in, 306, 307, 810, Kingsley, Miss M. H., 222, 225, 281, 342, 388 corrective function of, 251, 252, 253, 266, 328, 391. 323, 324, 403-405; consolatory Kipling, E., 98 note. force of, 325-830, 342; relation of, Krapelin, B., 356 note. to wit, 854, 385, 386 subjective Kiilpe, 0., 52 note, 54 note. and objective, in literature, 386 note, 389 harmonising of tones Lack of humour, advantages of, 424, in, 388, 391 (see also Philosophic 425. Humour). Lacroix, P., 343 note. Hunt, J. H. Leigh, his theory of Lamb, C, humour of, 298, 390, 420; laughter, 142 quoted, 383. his view of Restoration comedy, Husbands, treatment of, in comedy, 372, 378, 877. 373, 377. Landor, W. Savage, 314. Hypergelast, 297, 418. Lang, Gideon, 243 note. Lange, C, 67, 189. Idealism and Realism, in relation Language, poetical use of " laugh " to laughter, 394, 396, 400, 401. and " smile," 80 terms for Ignorance, as laughable, 102. forms of laughter in French, 49 Imitation in fashion, 273-276, 278; note; misuse of, as laughable, in comedy, 348. See Wit. 104, 240. Incompetence, as laughable, 102, Laughable, the (Chapter IV.), de240, 245. finition of, 82 universality of, Incongruity, theory of, 7, 9, 13, 17, relativity of, 84, 88, 93, 83, 295 125-135, 136, 141, 150, 317, 318; as 95, 98, 101, 102, 106, 111, 113; laughable, 107-111, 152, 216, 236. distinguished from the ludiIndecent, the, as laughable, 99, 151, crous, 85 complexity of, 87, 114, 285. 153 groups of laughable objects, Individual, the, laughter of, 295, 87; inhibitory concomitants of, (Chapter 297 X.), 393; value of 90, 98, 96, 101, 111, 301, 306; laughter to, 321, 323 ff., 403, relation of, to laughter as a justification of point of 415 whole, 153; field of, 260, 315, ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; view Inferior, of, 405. laughter 819. at superior, 264, 265, 266, 267, 268. of, Laughter, estimates tific of, 1, investigation 416 of, 3 ; scien- ff., 19, INDEX 154; physiologioal oharaoteris- tios of, 22, 26-28, 30, 33-36, 69, 437 Malice in laughter, 78, 83, 89, 97, 118, 142, 143, 231, 283, 381. 227. 227, 309; varieties of, 22, 48, 188, 251 an intermittent manifestation, 26, 74; sounds of, 31, 174, 227 bad effects of, 87, 46, 415, 418, 420, 422 ; mechanically produced, 42, 643., 74; occasions of, 50 (Chapter III.) nervous, 65- Man, B. H., counteractives to, 88, 90, 93, 96, 101, 102, 111, 377 as sign of playful mood in animals, 183184 as instrument of punishment, 250, 256, 262, 380; antisocial tendency in, 256, 406; regulation of, 418 promotion of, 423 as branch of education, 426. See Master and servant, relation comedy, 353. See Slaves. M^linaud, C, 8 note. Menander, 361, 374 note. ; ; ; 70, 116 ; ; ; ; also Mania, approach to, of comic characa whole people, 377. Manners, in comedy, 370. Marsdeu, W., 240, 249. Maspero, G., 264, 266, 343 note. Massinger, P., 361. ters, Development Child, of; Origin of Laughter; Primitive Laughter Savages, Laughter of; Social Laughter; ; ; of of, in Meredith, G., 4, 99, 109, 297, 300, 310, 347, 364 note, 371 note, 376 note, 379, 415, 417. ; Humour; 367 Merry England, mirth of, 429. Mill, J. S., 280. Milton, J., 39, 425. Minto, W., 386 note. Mirthfulness, persistence of, 25, 73, Value of Laughter. 223-226; effect of temperament LePanu, W. B., Ul note. on, 80 expression of, as element Lehmann, A., 172 note, 308 note. in the laughable, 116, 149, 211Le Sage, A. E., 262, 382. 213, 348 decline of, 428 fi. Lessing, G. E., 323, 412, 415 note. Misfortunes, small, as laughable, 96. Lichtenstein, M. H. C, 236, 238. Modern life, decline of choral laughLipps, Th., his theory of the luditer in, 427 seriousness of, 428 crous, 9-17 64, 137 quoted, 94. growth of individual laughter ff. ; ; ; ; ; Literature. in, 432. See Art. Locke, John, his definition of wit, Molifere, 3. B. P., 114, 272, 288, 303 354. Loti, P., 197 note. Lotze, H., 8 note, 18. Loveday, T., 15 note. Love-motive, in comedy, 360, 371. Ludicrous, Schopenhauer's the, theory of, 6, 13, 130-133; incongruity theory of, 7, 9, 13, 17, 125-136, 141, 150, 317, 318; as consisting in the substitution of rigidity for spontaneity, 7, 92, 348 note, 367 Lipps' theory of, 9-17, 64 as consisting in nullified expectation, 9, 12, 18, 64, 125-130; objectivity of, 83; distinguished from the laughable, theories of, 119 (Chap85, 138 degradation theory of, ter V.) 119-125, 128, 137; synthesis of theories of, 136-139; no one theory of, 139, 153. ; ; ; ; note, 307, 315, 348, 349, 350, 351, 353, 357, 359, 364-370, 373-378. Th., 353 note, 361 note. Mommsen, Mono-ideism in comic characters 366. Montaigne, M. E. de, 342. of humour, ticklish, 62 addressed by comedy, 370, addressed by fic373, 375, 377 Mood, the 304 ; ; ; tion, 379, 380. Moore, Mrs. K. C, 165, 188. Moral deformity. See Vice. — — sensitiveness, as inhibitory laughter, 93, 101, 102. ; — plays, 347, 359, 361, 362. Lumholtz, Carl, 224, 249. Morgan, C. Lloyd, 148 note, 160. Moulton, B. G., 352 note, 362 note. Macauday, Muloaster, B., 35. Musters, G. C, 226. T. B., 372, 377. Macdonald, Duff, 221, 252. Majorities and minorities, 406. of See Degradation. theory. Morality, attitude of laughter towards, 92, 372-377; attitude of comedy towards, 372-377 function of comedy in relation to, 411-414. Mystery plays, 347. INDEX 43S NAiVETi!, as laughable, 104, 127, 336 ; children's, 105. Nanaeu, F., 223 note, 2ii note, 250. Philosophic humour, characteristics utility of, 390, 400-405, 407-410 anti-social tendency of, 403-405 ; ; National feeling, 293. of, 406. Nationality. See Race. Philosophy, theoretic treatment of laughter by, 4-6, 19, 396 philoNeil, E. A., 352 note. sophic speculation, as laughable, Neilson, G. E., 313 note. Nervous laughter, 65-70, 116. 5, 400, 401 connection of humour Newspaper, struggle for the, 334, 336. with, 390, 392-410 point of view ; ; ; Novelty, as laughable, 87, 128, 150, 189, 208, 236, 281; in comedy, 351. Obesity and laughter, 81. Object of laughter, 82, 142; dislike of being made the, 144, 232, 256, 320. See Laughable, the. Odd, the, as laughable, 87, 150, 237 comedy, 351. and young, relation in Old in of, comedy, 353. and of, See pessimism. also Philosophy, Order, breach Worth of Life. as laughable, 94, 266, 342. Organism, 36, 45, standard of, humour with, 396-399 ; idealism optimism laughter, 396 laughter, 398; pessimism scepticism laughter, 398 laughter, 399. Physiological aspects of laughter. and and and and ; ; See Laughter. Old-fashioned, laughter at the, 281. Optimism ideal 394, 396, 397; 394, 395 ; change in aspect of reality produced by, 394, 395, 397, 398; seriousness of, 395; obstacles to union of 393, of, laughter on, 3369 resonance of, as factor efiects of ; in laughter, 44, 47. Origin of laughter, 155 (Chapter VI.) first appearance in child, 166, 170 early laughter as expression of pleasure, 169; an inherited ; tendency, 170; first appearance in primitive man, 173 development oat of smile, 173-176 explosive vigour, explanation of, 176. See also SmUe, Tickling. ; ; Pity, as inhibitory of laughter, 90, 98. Plato, 308, 342, 396, 408. Plautus, 266, 268, 282, 348, 852, 357, 360, 371. Play, tickling and, 68, 179, 182184 ; laughter as concomitant of mood of, 76-78, 198-207 teasing as form of, 77, 201, 229; connection with wit, 112, 355 relation of laughter and, 145-153, 194; utility of, 148, 181, 182; of animals, 158 play-challenge, ; ; ; rompish, 198, 199 atas make-believe, 201, 214 tacks as form of, 201 lawlessconnection with ness of, 216 comedy, 348, 349, 353, 373, 375, 184, 256, 344 ; ; ; ; Pabadox, as laughable, 104, 106, 110. 377. Parasites, laughter of tickling as de- Playfulness, expression of. See fensive against, 178, 179, 181. Laughter and Mirthfulness. Parnell, J., Ill note. Pleasure, as antecedent of laughter, Pascal, B., 1, 423. interaction of laugh43, 71, 145 Peacock, T. L., 222. ter and, 44 ff. sudden accession Perception of the ludicrous, moveof, as cause of laughter, 72, 74 ment of thought in, 11, 13 as fi., 141, 145, 184. perception of relations, 18, 107, Poetic justice, 868. 192, 300, 302, 316-318 necessity Point of view, relativity of. In laughof distinct imagery to, 14, 131 ter, 84, 88, 93, 95, 101, 102, 106, as immediate, 15 as antecedent 111 of common-sense, 110, 294, of laughter, 42, 50 as emotional, 876, 395, 399, 400; tribal and 43, 125 effect of subjective connational, 238, 256, 271, 293, 294; ditions on, 84, 88; as intellecof humour, 303, 315, 324, 330, tual, 125 connection with primi338, 341 403 note, 409, 410; tive laughter, 116, 140, 142, 144, social, 823, 374-377, 380, 399, 153. 405, 409, 410; of comedy, 372; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; INDEX 377, 410 ; of pUloaophy, 393, 894, 396, 397; individual, 399, 405, 409, 410 of satire, 410. Pope, Alex., 307, 383. 439 Restoration, the, literature comedy of, 282; of, 283, 287, 370. Restraints on laughter, by the community, 418-420 by the indiviPowell, J. W., 248 note. dual, 420-422. Practical joking, 78, 129, 160, 229- Retaliative joke, among savages, 230 231. See Teasing. in comedy, 350. Preciosity, in comedy, 351. Retirement. See Detachment. Pretence, as laughable, 101, 148, 151 Reverence, laughter as destructive in play, 147, 158. of, 422. Prayer, W., 49, 160, 164-170, 178, 188, Bibot, Th., 171 note, 193 note. 205, 206 note, 209, 211, 212. Riohet, Charles, 52 note, 53 note, 60. Primitive laughter, necessity of con- Richter, J. P., 8 note, 390, 400. sidering, 28 forms of, tickling, Ridiculous, the, distinguished from etc., 50 (Chapter in.); elements the ludicrous, 138. of, in appreciation of the ludi- Robinson, Louis, 51, 53, 55, 57, 58, crous, 140-146, 153 humour as 61, 68, 162, 177, 178, 179-182. development of, 299 in comedy, Romanes, G. J., 161. 347 ff. Rostand, Edmond, 10, 387. Progress, as hindered and furthered Roth, H. Ling, 224, 227, 228, 230, 232 by laughter, 257, 279-283 social, note, 236, 240, 241, 242, 246, 247, 279 as object of laughter, 280, 249, 251 note, 252 note. ; ; ; ; ; ; ; Rousseau, 283. Public opinion, deification of, J. J., 373, 425. 834. Punning, in children, 112, 217 wit, 354 in comedy, 357. and Sadness, as disposing to laughter, 70, 314; in humour, 305, 309, ; ; 387. Eabelais, ¥., 299, 814, 389. Sainte-Beuve, 0. A., 314, 377, 382. Baces, diversities of laughter and Salutary effects of laughter. See humour of, 311-318. Value. Radford, G. H., 417, 428. Sarasin, P., 222 note, 282, 245. "Ralph Roister Doister," 361. Satire, playful element in, 153, 383, Raulin, J. M., 228. 384 among savages, 244 funcRead, Carveth, 320. tion of, 282, 380 political, 292 Real, the, in comedy, 368, 369, 372. social, 323, 413 point of view Reflection, in laughter, 8, 251 in of, 880, 410; laughter in, 380, humour, 801, 302, 393; appeal 382, 383; mood of, 881; in to, in humorous writing, 379, comedy, 381 in fiction, 382 allegory in, 382 wit in, 383 389. ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ironical inversion in, 383, 384. Relations, as laughable, 13, 107, 300, Savages, laughter of (Chapter VIII.), 302, 816. difficulty of understand220 Relief from strain, in nervous laughlaughter on solemn ing, 220; self-restraint of, 221; ter, 65-70 amount of laughter of, 222-226 occasions as, 80, 118 in laughter nature of laughter of, 227, 252 at the indecent, 118 in laughter as explainprimitive forms of laughter of, degradation, 140 at 228-235 teasing and practical ing explosiveness of laughter, jokes of, 229-233; brutal ele176 in children's laughter, 196, ments in laughter of, 231-233 198, 204 ; in laughter of savages, dislike of laughter among, 232, 228; in laughter of art, 282. 233 appreciation of the laughEengger, 3. R., 226. able child's laughby, 235 ff. ; laughter of, at on Repetition, eSeot of, emothe foreigner, 238-244 ; intraon effect of, ter, 188, 190 tribal laughter of, 244 fi. hutional reaction, 190; as comic mour of, 246, 251 organisation incident, 848. of laughter among, 247-251 use Respiration, laughter and, 30, 33-35, of laughter by, in expiation of 42, 69, 142. ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; INDEX 440 crimes, 250; more thoughtful Social group, 259 ff., 288. laughter, organisation of, 247-251, laughter of, 251. conciliating force of, 255, Soherer, Edmond, on humour, 312, 290 development 256, 266, 269, 271 403 mte. censorship of, 291 288-291 of, Schopenhauer, A., his theory of the attitude underforce of, 292 ludicrous, 6, 13, 130-133; relying, 293 reflected in comedy, ferred to, 135, 285, 288. 351. Sohutze, J. St., 19. scene, the modern, 337. Scott, Sir W., 388. Self-advertisement, the humour of, Society, failure to comply with social requirement as ludicrous, 139 334. laughter in evolution of, 254 Self-criticism, humorous, 321-324, (Chapter IX.) progress of, effect 329. on laughter, 254 restraint of Self-deception, in comedy, 350, 366. laughter by, 258, 269 differentiaSelf, laughter at, 143, 272, 320-322, tion of social groups in, 258 ff. 329 dislike of others' laughter differentiation of ranks in, 263 at, 144, 232, 256, 320. ways of, as laughable, 331-333; Sellar, W. Y., 282. Serious, the, as opposed to laughter, permanent basis of, in comedy, 21, 395 in play, 153 in comedy, 375 individual and, 405-410. 369, 373, 375, 377 in fiction, 379, Solemn occasions, laughter on, 79, 141, 152, 242. 387 in satire, 381 in humour, see Humour Spectator of comedy, attitude of, 371, Seriousness, the, of modern life, See Comedy. 373, 412. 428 ff. Spencer, B., and Gillen, F. J., 243 — ; ; ; ; ; — ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; See Social Group. Sex and laughter. See Woman. Shaftesbury, third Earl of, 414, 415 Sets. note. Shakespeare, W., 2, 32 note, 39 note, 67, 104, 298, 310, 311, 349, 357, 362, 363, 386, 387, 389, 417. Shelley, P. B., 46. Shinn, Miss Milicent, 165, 167, 168, 173, 175, 195, 211, 218. Shooter, Jos., 225, 230. Shyness, recoil from, producing laughter, 205, 206, 228, 238. Sidgwiok, H., 386 note. Sigismund, B., 165. Simoox, G. A., 266. Situation, as laughable, 96-98, 117, 120, 317 in comedy, 351. Slaves, laughter of, 265, 266, 291. Smile, the, physiological aspects of, relation of, to laughter, 26, 165 26,. 28, 29, 168, 170, 174, 175, 193; in animals, 161-163, 170, 177 first appearance of, in child, 164-166, 168; development of, 165, 188; as expression of pleasure, 168, 183 an inherited tendency, 170; origin of, 171173. Smyth, E. Brough, 244, 248. Social failure, laughter as preservative of, 408. ; ; ; ; — note. Herbert, 68, 137, 175, 265, 267, 274, 276. Sproat, G. M., 233, 247. Stanley, H. M., 159, 184. Steinen, C. vonden,;223, 235note, 248. Stephen, Leslie, 398. Sterne, Laurence, 298, 388, 389. Stevenson, E. L., 398, 400, 416, 423. Stoics, 397. Stout, G. F., 15 note. Strain, relief from. See Eelief. Sturt, C. H., 224. " Sudden glory," 74, 78, 116, 117, 120, 143, 198, 203, 210, 229, 381. Superior, laughter of, at inferior, 263, 264. See Inferior. Superiority, feeling of, as cause of laughter, 78, 118, 120, 121, 143 laughter as assertion of, 144, 241, 263, 320. Surprise, as cause of laughter, 9, 12 18, 64, 125, 126-130, 142, 169, 197, 201. Swift, Jonathan, 381, 382, 383. Sympathy, laughter through, 117 118, 122, 149; in humour, 306; laughter as promoting, 417. Tainb, H., 312, 362, 372, 375, 382 Tarde, G., 259. Tears, laughter and, 37, 67, 70. INDEX 441 Teasing, 77, 157, 184, 201, 229. See Vanbrugh, Jnc, 411. Praobioal Joking. Vanity, as laughable spectacle, 92, Temperament, as basis of laughing 374. disposition, 80; as basis of hu- Vice, as laughable spectacle, 91-93, mour, 313. 133 degrees of, in relation to Tennyson, Alfred, 314. comic value, 91, 374 attitude of Terence, 351, 353, 361. laughter towards, 92, 372-377. Thackeray, W. M., 379, 382, 389. Visoher, T., 19. Thompson, H. B. See Angell, J. B. Voltaire, F. M. A. de, 324, 382, 383, Tickling, as cause of laughter, 50 ff., 385. 169, 177 sensations of, 51, 63 feeling tone of, 54-56, 58 motor reactions to, 56-59, 163, 177, 180, Waitz, Th., 229, 249. 183 mental conditions of, 59-63, Walpole, Horace, 423. War-temper, as laughable spectacle, 178, 181 as form of teasing, 77 child's first response to, by laugh338-341, 378. ter, 178 origin of laughter of, Warburton, W., 414, 419. Ward, A. W., 281, 283, 287, 292. 178-184 as playful, 179-184. James, 400 note. Ticklishness, relative, of parts of body, 51-53, 57, 177, 178, 180- Wilkinson, J. G., 266. 182; of apes, 57, 162, 163, 177, Will, efiect of, on laughter, 48 control of laughter by, 420. 180 of other animals, 177, 180. Tolerance, of humour, 337, -842 of Wit, as a form of the laughable, 111113 in children, 112, 217, 218 comedy, 376, 377. as play, 112, 355 word-play in Traill, H. D., 388 note, 428. relation to, 112, 356; Bain's 350. Trickery, in comedy, 349, in theory applied to, 124 Triumph, laughter of, 78, 83, 118, relation of, to savages, 248 143, 198, 200, 204, 210, 381; humour, 354, 385, 386; anipresentation of, as laughable, mosity in, 355, 383 in comedy, 117. 371 connection of, with satire, Truth, ridicule as test of, 414. subjective and objec383-385 Tucker A. 398. tive, 386 note. Turnbu'll, John', 224, 233, 248. Types, characters of comedy as, 358- Woman, laughter between man and, ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; — ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; ; 245, 246, 259, 260, 264, 267, 269, 352, 357, 363 treatment of, by comedy, 264, 352, 361 note, 363, 371 wit of, 267, 347 status of, 280, 284, 347, 352. Wood, J. G., 280, 233, 238. 361, 364. Tyrrell, E. Y., 264, 283, 292, 382. ; Unfaie laughter, 421. See Value. Utility of laughter. Value of laughter, as ; ; an excellence, Word-play, as a form able, 111-113 ; 34-36; its social utility, 139, 244, 245, 257, 268, 271, 283, 419 as sign of playfulness, 183 its persuasive force, 252, 266, 269; its corrective value to the individual, 323, 324, 403 ; its evolutional utility, 408, 431. See also 124 ; 416, 422, 423; its plied to, effects, ; Comedy. ; in comedy, of the laugh- Bain's theory apin children, 217 353, 356. salutary 3, Worth of life, philosophic question of, 398; relation of philosophic humorist to, 402. Wright, Thoa., 234, 261, 263 note, 270, 282, 292, 293, 343 note. Wundt, W., on tickling, 52. THE ABERDEEN ONIVEBSlTT PBBSS 28* Ll.MITBD.